The red and blue lights of the police cruiser were flashing as the police officer pulled the car over. It had been weaving some, and the policewoman knew she had another drunk driver. Once both cars had stopped, the policewoman stepped from her car and approached the other one, being very cautious, even though she knew she could handle herself. Her mind wasn't just on the stop, but she was also thinking about the interview she had in the morning with the Captain. She was trying to get promoted to Sergeant and it had come down to just two people. But, right now, she had to get this drunk off the streets before he hurt someone. She yelled from the back of his car, "Get out and keep your hands in the air where I can see them!" The man stepped out, stumbled some, but was able to stand on his feet. She approached him, always watching his hands and glancing into his car to be sure no one else was in it. She had him move to the front of the car and lean against the hood, with his hands spread apart. Then, stepping up behind him, cuffs ready, she put her foot between his and said, "SPREAD 'EM" She forced his feet apart, and then began the search of his body. She ran her hands over his body, and couldn't resist checking out the package he had in his pants. As she reached his crotch, she lingered a little longer than normal and squeezed his cock. "MMMMMMM," she quietly moaned, and then continued on to the rest of his body. She finished the search, cuffed him, read him his rights, and informed him he was being arrested for DUI. She escorted him back to her patrol car and got him in the back seat. She retrieved his ID and radioed in to let them know she was bringing in another drunk. She also requested a tow truck for his car. Then she drove to the station. Getting him booked was easy and soon she was on her way home to clean up and change into a fresh uniform so she could meet the Captain for the interview. Now she could think of nothing else but becoming the first Asian female to make it that far. And she knew that her record since joining the force, along with her education, would help her. The other cop didn't have near the things she had, so she thought it was all wrapped up and she would soon be wearing Sergeant stripes on her uniform. She got to her house, took a shower, put the clean uniform on, then headed back to the station. She had plenty of time, but as always, she wanted to be early. Pulling into the parking lot, she saw her competition walking toward the station house. She watched him for awhile and thought he looked pretty confident, but he was kind of sloppy in his appearance. She had more arrests than anyone on her shift and almost surpassed everyone else at the station. She was very confident that she would have the job and she would be a great Sergeant. At least until she was able to get promoted to Lieutenant. Sue Lee had been very positive that no one else knew of her past. Especially the times she wasn't so good. She thought back as to how she got to the U.S. and what she had to do to help her parents through the tough times when they first arrived. And how she got all those good grades in school and in college. But that was all behind her and she would now be in charge, never having to worry about her past again. Sue sat in the lobby, waiting to be called in. The other cop was first to go and as she saw him walk out, she noticed he had a big smile and was looking right at her. He said, "Good luck in there. The Captains pretty tough. But it won't be long and you'll have to work for me." He laughed and walked away. She sat waiting to be called in and it wasn't long before the Captain stepped to the door and said, "Officer Lee, please come in." She stood up and walked with confidence toward the door. He held it for her and once she was inside, he shut the door. However, she hadn't noticed that he also locked it. She sat down in front of his desk as he went behind it to sit down. All was silent while he looked through her folder and then he said, "Officer Lee, you have quite a record here. You are tops in arrests, tops in public relations, and tops in a lot of other areas. However, I see there are some problem areas, too." Sue couldn't figure out what he meant by that and asked, "Problem areas, Sir? I don't understand." The captain laughed as he opened an envelope and pulled the contents out. He looked at them for a moment before he spoke again. "I see here that you entered the U.S. illegally. As a matter of fact, both your and your parents' passports, visas and citizenship papers have been altered. You are an illegal alien." she started to say something, but he held his hand up and continued. "I also see that you are quite the little slut. These pictures show it all. You should be ashamed of yourself. You are quite cute naked, you know." Now, she knew her whole life had come to an end. she was going to jail or get deported, or something. "WWWWWhhhhhhheeerreee did you get those?" she stuttered. "That doesn't really matter right now, bitch! What does matter is what I am going to do with them," he stated. "You see, I can take you with these things to the chief and you will be on your way to jail before going back to China. Or, maybe…" "PPPPPPPPLLLLLLEEEEEAAAASSSSEEEEEE," she cried, "don't let anyone else know about this. i'll step down and won't even try to take the Sergeant's job. i'll leave and go someplace else. Anything, just don't let those things out. Please." The Captain laughed and said, "Did you say anything? ANYTHING!" "Yyyyyeeesssss, anything to keep out of trouble," sue was trying to fight back the tears, but it didn't work. "Well, I am going to give you these things to do whatever you wish with them. But you are going to be mine for awhile before you get them," stated the Captain. "iiii don't understand sir," she said. "Well, let me explain it to you. First, I haven't decided who will be my new Sergeant, yet. I really wanted you, but with these documents, I am not sure. And I really would like you to be the Sergeant. But, sue, it will be hard now, unless you decide to do what I want for a period of six months." she had stopped crying and couldn't figure out what it was he really wanted. Maybe she would just have to be real tough with the others. Maybe have to find things out about some of them, especially the ones he didn't care for. she didn't know what, so asked, "Sir, what do you mean by doing whatever you want?" He said, "What I mean is, if I tell you to do something for me, you'll do it without question, no matter what it is I want." "What would I have to do for you?" she questioned. "I'll tell you once you have agreed to my terms. However, if you don't, I will have some other officers come in here and arrest you." "OOOOKKKKK," she stuttered, "i agree to do whatever you say, but please don't arrest me. i can't go back to China. Please,Sir." "Very well, sue. Now, all you have to do is sign this paper. It says you are agreeing to do whatever I want for a period of six months. You are doing this willingly and there is no pressure from me. And it also says that you will be promoted to Sergeant. However, if you fail me, the Sergeant disappears and you're on your way to China." The Captain pushed a paper in front of her. sue didn't read it all, but she signed it. "Now that we have the little things taken care of, I want you to strip for me!" said the captain. "I will not!" yelled sue "If you don't do it, cunt, you are gone! Now, strip bitch!" yelled the Captain. "And don't ever tell me you won't again." sue thought for a moment, then stood up and started removing her uniform. she figured that he had seen the pictures of her already, so what could be worse. Give him a thrill and then get back to work. she shook as she began undoing her gun belt. Of course, she didn't have her weapon in the holster, since it was a rule that they didn't carry a gun in the station house. she continued to remove everything, and soon was standing in front of the captain with just her panties and bra on. she had hopes that he wouldn't make her go any farther. But she was wrong as he said, "All the way slut. Take it all off." crying, she unhooked her bra, removed it and her little tits showed quite nicely now. she tried to cover her tits, but knew if she did he would be pissed, so just laid it down on her uniform and started to pull her panties down, but he stopped her. "Wait for a minute," he said. "Pick up your bra and throw it in the trash can. Then, when you get those panties off, put them in there too." she hated the captain now, but she did as she was told. Picking up her bra, she walked over to his desk and threw the bra in it. Then she pulled her panties down her hips, to her knees and then let them slide down to her feet. She stepped out of them and bent over to pick them up. She put them in the trash can with her bra, and then stood before her Captain, naked with her hands over her cunt. "Move your hands away from that fuck hole, cunt!" he ordered. "Just put them on top of your head and turn around so I can see all of you." sue did what she was told to do. Maybe he would just make her strip for him once in awhile. Maybe a quick fuck in his office. Probably not much else, and she didn't mind a good fuck once in awhile. After all, she had learned to fuck at an early age when she was supposed to be working at a video store. At least, that's what her parents thought. Instead, she was out selling her young body to make money to support them. So fucking and sucking cock wasn't something she hadn't done before. The Captain got up from his desk to walk around her. He touched her all over and made little comments about his new Sergeant.'s body. "The cunt hair has to go. The tits are quite small, but will be OK for now. The ass is quite nice. Full, firm, and well rounded. Yes, cunt, I'll have a good time with this little body." sue still didn't know what else she would have to do for him. she just hoped he would only fuck her a few times and then she could get the documents back and go about her normal life. she hadn't read the whole document he had her sign. But she should have! "OK, my little asian cunt," he said, "On your knees and suck my cock. Then, we will get into the other details." Thinking this wouldn't be too bad, she dropped to her knees, unzipped his pants and pulled his hard cock out. It was quite big, she thought. Only about 7" long, but it was really thick. sue had some problems getting it in her little mouth, but finally managed to get most of it in. She sucked him off and he shot his load into her mouth. she never liked swallowing cum, but she had no choice now, since he wouldn't allow her to pull her mouth off his cock. So, she swallowed all of it. Then he pulled out, put his cock away and as he was zipping up his pants, he said, "Now, slut, I said the cunt hair has to go. When you go home tonight, be sure to shave it all off. I'll inspect it tomorrow. If it isn't bald and smooth, you'll get an ass whipping. Understand?" Wanting to get out of there, she quickly replied, "Yes sir." The captain said, "Good little slut. Now, just so you won't think about telling others about this, I have a video of you stripping and sucking my cock. Of course, it will be edited to say that you wanted this job so much that you were willing to do anything to get it. That's when you begged me to suck my cock. You even stripped for me to persuade me. So, you little asian whore, you won't tell anyone will you?" Shocked, sue said, "NNNNNNNOOOOOOOO, Sir." "OK, now get dressed, without the bra and panties. From now on, you won't wear them at all. Then, you are to go home and shave your cunt. Don't go anyplace else. Tomorrow morning, you'll wear your police skirt instead of those pants. You will be staying around the station from now on. As a Sergeant. you will be required to be here to help the others. I will call you back in here in the morning for your inspection." Then, he went to the door, unlocked it and walked out, leaving the door open. sue quickly got to the door and closed it. Then she dressed and left the station. All the way home, she was crying and wondered what she had gotten herself into. Maybe she would have been better off getting sent back to China. -----
SPREAD 'EM part 2 sue lee arrived home, still in tears for what happened to her at the station. Where did he get all this information and those pictures of when she was younger? she only did what she had to in order to help her family survive. sue walked to her bedroom and removed her uniform. Then she went to the kitchen and got herself a stiff shot of bourbon. sue never drank, but she needed it now. she swallowed the burning liquid and then proceeded back into her bedroom. she lay on the bed for awhile, thinking back to what she was told to do when she got home. she had to remove the hair from her pussy, and was not looking forward to it. she remembered when she was younger, she didn't have the hair there. It took a long time for it to begin to grow and now she had a nice looking bush between her legs. she didn't want to do it, but she was afraid if she didn't, he would hurt her or deport her. sue got up from the bed and walked to her bathroom. Running a tub full of hot water, she gathered up the tools needed for the task. she layed out the shaving gel she used for her under arms, a razor and a pair of scissors. The tub had filled up and she slowly got in the water. It felt so good and she began to relax. After soaking for a short time, she raised up on her knees to begin the task, but it was very uncomfortable this way and she couldn't see her pussy hair that well. So, she moved to the edge of the tub and started her duty. First, she took the scissors and began trimming her patch of black hair. Making sure she didn't leave it in the water, she held it in her hand for awhile, before tossing it into the trash can. Once she had it all trimmed down to make it look like a day's growth, just like on a mans face, she lathered her cunt up with the gel, then very carefully began to run the razor over her pubic mound. Stroke after stroke, she removed the remaining hair from her pussy. Finally finishing, she slid back into the water to rinse off and continue with her bath. she soaped up and when she got to her crotch, she was amazed how it felt. she thought back again to when she was quite young and there was no hair there at all. Now, it was that way again, making her feel like a little girl all over again. sue lee finished bathing, got out and dried off. she stood before the mirror and stared at her naked form in the mirror and began to cry. she not only felt like a child again, she looked like one too. she hated this feeling and walked back to her bedroom. she layed on the bed and cried herself to sleep. The alarm went off way to soon the next morning. she was dreading going back to work, knowing the Captain would want to check her cunt to be sure it was smooth. But she had no other choice. If she didn't go in, he would probably come looking for her. And he might even put a warrant out for her arrest for being an illegal alien in his country. So, she got up, had breakfast and dressed. she started to put her uniform pants on, but then remembered he said to wear her skirt. Once she got it on, she still felt naked, since she didn't put her bra and panties on, just like he had told her. Leaving her home, she got into the squad car, furnished by the department, and headed to work. her mind was racing with all the images of what would happen to her over the next six months, being owned by her Captain and having to do anything he said. she pulled into the parking area, slowly got out and walked to the station. she could already feel the wetness building within her pussy. she went inside and started toward her desk when he stepped out of his office. "Sgt. lee, please come in here," he said. Shaking, she walked toward his office. Entering, he shut the door as soon as both of them were alone. "Yyyyyyeesssss, sir," she managed to get out. "Show me, sue!" was all he said. she knew what he wanted to see, so she started to raise her skirt up. But he stopped her and said. "No, not that way. From now on, when I want to see, you are to strip naked. Now, show me!" Hesitating just for a moment, she began to remove her clothes. her fingers were shaking and she had problems getting the buttons from her blouse undone and then more so with the zipper to her skirt. Finally, she stood before him naked, knowing better than to try to cover herself. "Very good little slut," he said. "Now, put your hands on my desk, bend over and spread 'em!" she hated doing this for the man she worked for, but what else could she do. she didn't want to go to jail and definitely didn't want to go back to China. her life in the States was too good to have to return to that place where she was born. So she put her hands on his desk and spread her legs a little bit. she thought back to all the people she had in this position, but they all had clothes on when she didn't. The Captain stepped up behind her and forced her right leg out more, then moved to the left leg and did the same. He kept pushing her legs farther apart until she was totally spread wide open. her legs were about three feet apart and she knew her ass and cunt were in plain view of her Captain. Once he stopped spreading her legs, his hand felt her round buttocks, and slowly crept toward her sex. He said to her, "From now on cunt, when I say spread 'em, I expect you to get into this position. Legs wide apart for my pleasure. Do you understand Sergeant?" "Yyyyyyeeeessssss, sssssiiiiirrrr," she stuttered. she hated this and knew if she disappointed him that she would suffer. He played with her ass and cunt for awhile, running his fingers through her slit and up and down the crack of her ass. Then he went to the mound above her slit. He ran his hands all around, checking for any stray hair she might have missed when she shaved. she heard him mutter some and then he said, "MMMMMMM, not a bad job, but in the future, it needs to be smoother than that. I won't punish you this time, but if I ever feel anything but smooth skin from now on, you are in trouble." Continuing with his assault on her private area, sticking his fingers into her slit and then running them up her ass crack to her little brown hole. He entered her ass with his finger and she jumped. she had never had anything in there before. He said, "Oh, little touchy there are we? Don't worry slut, you'll have plenty there in the next six months. And you must really be enjoying this because your hot little pussy is so wet and juicy. Bet you would like to feel my cock in it about now, wouldn't you? Do you want me to fuck you sue?" "Please sir, stick it in me. i need it," she moaned. "No, not now cunt, but in time you'll feel my hard cock in your cunt, along with many others. Now, get your ass up and get dressed. We have some troops to brief before they hit the road." he ordered. sue got up from his desk and started to look for something to wipe her pussy with, so it didn't run down her legs. But the Captain noticed she started reaching for the Kleenex box on his desk and stopped her. He said, "No, don't wipe it off. I want it to run down your legs to see if anyone notices it. From now on cunt, you will just let your juices drip and run down your sexy legs. You'll never wipe any of it up." sue started to cry a little, but went ahead and put her clothes on. she did wipe the tears from her eyes, hoping no one noticed she had been crying and that her cunt was dripping her love juice. They left his office and headed for the briefing room. Once inside, he announced, "Gentlemen and ladies, may I have your attention. I have decide that sue lee will be our new Sergeant. I hope you will show her all the respect you have shown me and will work with her, following her instructions. Sgt. lee, do you have anything to say to the troops." sue wasn't expecting this, and choked some. But, she did say, "i hope we all can still get along as fellow officers just as we always have. If you ever need anything, please feel free to come to me. i haven't changed from the way i was. Now, let's get to work." The Captain briefed everyone on what was happening in the streets and told them what to look out for. Then he dismissed everyone to go to work. As soon as everyone left, he told sue that she had a new desk, which was directly in front of his door. Of course, her new desk did not have a front to it, so he could see her naked pussy all day long. He explained this to her and told her she had to sit with her legs open all day, so he could see her little beaver. He showed her the desk and told her to get to work on the paperwork that had piled up since the last sergeant had left. sue sat down and started working. she forgot to open her legs and as soon as the captain got back to his desk, he noticed this, he buzzed her on the phone and said, "Open those fucking legs, cunt!" Then he hung up and watched. sue spread her legs, showing her bald pussy. she continued working, getting through all the paper work pretty fast. Then he came out to her desk and said he wanted to have lunch with her in his office. she asked if she could finish this last report first. He agreed and said, "But as soon as it is done, get your ass in my office, close the door and show me." sue finished up the report she was working on, but dreaded going into his office again. However, she thought he might fuck her this time, so she hurried into his office. she was so horny and wanted to be fucked. she wasn't thinking about anything else. sue entered his office and shut the door. Without even hesitating, she stripped out of her uniform and layed her clothes in a chair next to his desk. she wasn't sure if she should or not, but she assumed the position she had been in earlier to wait for him to arrive. There she was, bent over his desk, with her feet wide apart, waiting and praying he would get his hard cock into her hot pussy. The door opened and closed. she didn't know for sure who it was, but it had to be him. she heard him chuckle at the sight before his eyes and walked up to her and put his hand on her naked ass. He said, "Very good sue, you are learning quite well. But, now I want you under my desk. You are going to suck my cock while I eat lunch with someone else. You will be quiet while you suck me, and you had better not make me cum until this other person leaves. Now move it." she jumped when he slapped her ass and she immediately crawled under his desk. she got comfortable while she waited. she hoped who ever it was he was having lunch with didn't see her. As soon as she was concealed from view, he opened the door, went behind his desk and pulled his cock out. Then, he sat down and said, "Start sucking, bitch!" sue took his penis in her mouth and began to suck him. she was enjoying it some, but would rather have him in her cunt. It wasn't long and she heard another voice as Judy, the dispatcher entered the room. Judy said, "Hello, Captain. Thank you for having me come by for lunch. I brought you a hamburger and fries, with your favorite drink. A big Pepsi." The Captain thanked her and asked her to sit. Judy sat down in front of the desk and they began to eat and talk. They chatted about the weather, the job and things that were happening around town. There was no indication at all that the Captain had his cock in the new sergeant's mouth the whole time. Then he said, "Judy, I want you to do something for me." The Captain and Judy had been secret lovers ever since she had gotten her job. They had fucked and sucked each other every chance they had, and the Captain had told her everything. Judy was kind enough to keep things quiet, since she knew if the Captain had wanted to, she would have been fired and she needed this job. Besides, he was a good fuck for her. She said, "Yes, sir, I'll do whatever you want. You know I take good care of you. What is it I can do?" The Captain chuckled and said, "I want you to take someone shopping for me. I have a list of items I want her to buy and some instructions on how I want them purchased. I would like you to go tonight after work, if you are free." Judy said she was free and would be glad to go shopping, especially since she loved to shop. Without this job, she never would be able to get the nice things she had. Then, the Captain added, "This person will meet you here in my office right after you get off work at 5 p.m. But I want you to run out real quick this afternoon to pick up a couple little items for me before you go shopping. Sgt. lee will take your place as dispatcher while you do this for me. I'll have her there as soon as she finishes her lunch." "OK," said Judy, "I'll wait for her to relieve me, then I'll go. But, I don't understand what it is you want me to get." The Captain said, "Just stop by here before you go and I'll explain." They finished their lunch and Judy returned to her duties. The Captain then told sue, "OK, little one, finish me off so you can take over for Judy. She is getting you some new clothes to wear so you can go shopping with her." sue sucked really hard and soon had his cum running down her throat. she swallowed it all and licked his cock clean, wanting more. As soon as he was finished, he pushed his chair back and left the room, telling her to get up, get dressed and go relieve Judy. sue crawled out from under the desk and when she stood up, she realized he had left the door wide open. she hurried over to close it, hopeing no one saw her. she quickly dressed and went to relieve Judy, just like the Captain had ordered. sue got to Judy's work station and said "I am here to relieve you to pick something up for the Captain. How long will you be gone?" "I won't be too long," said Judy. "I just have to run to the mall and get a couple of items. You do know what to do here, don't you?" "Yes," said sue, "i did get trained in this area as well as on the streets." With that, Judy left. sue didn't have any idea what Judy was going to get, but she knew that later on, she was going shopping with Judy. But she had no idea what the Captain was going to make her get. Judy returned with the package and took it to the Captain, then came back to relieve sue from the dispatcher desk. She told sue, "The Captain said to go to his office at 4:30 PM and he will tell you what to do from there. Oh, he also said you know what position to be in when he arrives." sue was shocked, but understood. she just hoped that it was just the two of them in his office, but she did remember he had told Judy to meet in his office at 5. sue went back to her desk and finished her work. At 4:30, she got up and walked into the Captain's office. He was not there, and she knew if she wasn't position properly, she would suffer. So, she closed the door, stripped and bent over his desk. Then, she "spread em", just as he had showed her before. There she was, in the Captain's office, naked, with her ass sticking out, legs wide apart, waiting for him to enter.
SPREAD 'EM part 3 she waited like what seemed to be an eternity for him to come in, afraid that someone else might show up. she would just die if anyone other than the Captain came in and saw her this way, but she knew if she wasn't ready when he came in, she would be in big trouble. At 4:50 PM, the door opened and the Captain came in. He spoke to her, saying, "Very good slut. I see you are learning your new role very well." He then reached up and played with her pussy between her wide open legs, feeling how wet it was. He knew she was enjoying this. He always knew she would get off on this stuff, but didn't know how he could trap her into doing it until he received the package. sue wanted to get dressed quickly, since she knew Judy would be there at any time, but he told her not to move, and wanted her just like she was for a little longer. He really did enjoy the view he was getting. It wasn't long and there was a knock on the door. sue jumped and started to move, but he told her to stay. It was just like he was talking to a pet dog. she was horrified that someone was going to see her like this! He went to the door and opened it and in walked Judy, right on time. She saw sue spread out over his desk and said, "What is this? Why is sue like that?" He said, "Because I told her to get like that. I need to tell you Judy, that sue is now my slave and slut, and will do everything I say. I just wanted you to be the first to know about her, since you are going to take her shopping for me." "OOOOOHHHHHHH, nice!" squealed Judy. "A pet to play with. May I help train her with you?" "Of course you can," said the Captain, "That's why I want you to take her shopping. And, if you wish, you may start now. I know how much you enjoy other women. Want to play with her cunt?" sue's stomach began to knot as she heard this conversation. she was further embarrassed to feel her pussy juices begin to trickle from her cunt. she simply hung her head and squeezed her eyes tightly to hold back the tears. Judy reached out and stuck her hand between sue's legs, feeling her bald mound. She said, "Oh my, a shaved pussy. I love them like that. It's so much more visible than those covered by ugly hair, don't you think sue slut?" sue didn't answer her and Judy raised her hand and brought it down on her naked ass. "SMACK" "When you are asked a question, cunt, you need to answer it," stated Judy, "And now that the Captain has agreed to let me help with you, you will call me Mistress Judy from now on. Is that clear, you little asian cunt!" "YYYYYYEEEEEEEESSSSSSSS, Mistress Judy, I understand," cried sue. "Good show, Judy," said the Captain, "I can see the two of you will get along just fine. But let's get this little bitch dressed so you can go shopping." sue was given a bag and told to get dressed with what was in it. she opened the bag up and looked inside. There wasn't a lot in it. Just a very sheer little top, looking to be too small and a skirt that probably would just barely cover her ass. Nothing else. sue looked at the clothes in disbelief and said, "You expect me to wear this out of the station and out in public?" "Yes I do, and if you don't get it on right now, you'll leave here naked!" yelled the Captain. Frightened that he may make her do that, she quickly put the skimpy clothes on. He did allow her to put her heels that she had worn to work back on, but no stockings. Once she had the clothes on, she had to model them for the two other people in the room. They made her turn around, bend over and even raise her hands above her head, stretching the skirt up above her ass. sgt. lee was totally humiliated and knew this was just the beginning of her torment. The Captain said, "OK you two, get out of here. I've got some work to finish up. When you finish shopping, Judy, go with slut sue to her house. I'll meet you there to see what we have bought and also go through some of her other clothes to see if she can keep them or not. Don't forget the instructions I gave you." "Yes sir," said Judy, "I have them and will read them as sue drives to the mall. We will meet you in a few hours." With that, the two girls walked out of the Captain's office and into the hallway leading outside. Judy made her walk slow and told her to wiggle her ass like a good little whore slut should. sue hated doing it, but decided that she would play along and make Judy happy. So, she walked very slow and deliberately made her ass wiggle back and forth. she knew everyone was staring at her, but right about now, she didn't care. Once out in the parking lot, and into sue's car, Judy told her to pull her dress up to her waist so her cunt showed. sue did it and then started the car. Judy told her to go straight to the mall at the far end of town. That's where all the best clothes could be found. As sue drove, Judy looked over the list of items she was to make sue get and read the instructions on how to try them on and pay for them. she laughed as she read this, knowing she was going to enjoy a real good show soon. It wasn't too long before sue pulled into the parking lot and started looking for a space to park in which was close to the entrance. But Judy had other ideas and said, "Park away from the entrance, slut. Let's try the very back row over there by those trees." Not wanting to be that far away, especially dressed the way she was, she hesitated in turning toward the direction she was told to go. Judy noticed this and said, "Look, bitch, I said go over there and park. I'll tell the Captain everytime you fuck up and I'm sure you'll get a good punishment for it." sue cringed at the thought of a punishment, and turned her car in the right direction. Pulling up into a parking spot near the tree, she stopped and started to get out. Judy made her wait until she had gotten out and walked to the side of the car where sue sat. Judy opened the door and told sue, "OK, now get out, but don't pull that skirt down until I tell you to." sue got out, standing there with her skirt around her waist, waiting impatiently to pull it down to cover her exposed ass and cunt. After a few minutes, Judy said, "Ok, now you can pull it down, but, don't touch it again without permission. And, I don't care if it slides up over your little asian ass, it will stay there until I say you can pull it back down. UNDERSTAND whore?" "Yyyyyyeeeeeesssss MMMMMMiiiissssttttrreessss," sue stuttered. "Now, let's walk to the mall. Just do everything I say, and don't talk. I'll pick out your clothes and remember, you will do everything I say, stated Judy. They started walking to the mall, and Judy noticed sue was still wiggling her ass like he had been told to do in the station. She would have to let the Captain know this. Once they reached the mall and entered, Judy started looking for the different stores she would have to take sue. The first one she saw was a shoe store. Inside, was a middle aged man, all alone and appeared to be the clerk. She told sue to stop and wait for her. Judy walked into the store to make sure it was empty and that this man was the clerk. He approached her and asked if he could be of assistance to her. She was really happy to see that no one else was in the store and he was the clerk. She said, "I think you can, but i have to get my friend first. You see, she can't talk and I have to make sure she gets the right shoes to wear. I'll be right back with her, if you don't mind waiting." "No, I don't mind at all. It's not like I am really busy, so just take your time," he replied. Judy stepped outside and walked over to sue. She said, "OK, we are going into this store and get the shoes the Captain wants. You are not to say anything at all and you'll do everything I say. No one else is in the store right now, so when we go in, you'll sit where I tell you to and when you do, make sure you open those little legs and show the nice man your cunt. UNDERSTAND whore?" "Yyyyyeeeeessssss, Mistress Judy," stuttered sue. sue followed Judy into the shoe store and when she motioned for her to sit down, she did. However, she failed to spread her legs. Judy watched for a while and when the man came over to see what they needed, Judy told him what shoes were required. One pair of bright red six inch heels and one pair of black seven inch heels. The clerk then said, "And, what size do we need for her?" Judy said, "I am not sure, so why don't you measure her feet and we'll know for sure." He left to get the measuring device from another area, and when he was gone, Judy said to sue, "I told you to open your fucking legs, bitch, so get them apart now or you'll walk out of here naked!" sue was shocked, but opened her legs some. Judy was not happy with this, and moved around to the front of sue and stepped between her legs. Then, she spread her own legs apart, which forced sue to open up hers even further. "You will sit just like that until I tell you to change position. Don't piss me off again cunt,", stated Judy. sue lee sat there with her legs wide apart, knowing her pussy would be in plain view of the older clerk when he returned. she was afraid to do anything but obey this young but sexy blonde. Just as Judy had moved away, the clerk returned and knelt in front of sue. He picked her foot up and started measuring her before he looked up. When he did, he was staring right into her bald pussy. Judy was really enjoying the show herself and wanted to play with her pussy to get off, but knew she couldn't do that and dominate her sergeant at the same time. "Well, do you have what we want in her size?" questioned Judy. "UUUHHHHHH, I think so," said the clerk as he got up. "I'll go get them." He left with a very red face, and a big stiff dick. While he was gone, Judy said, "Pull your skirt up more so he can see your pussy better. And, while you are at it, unbutton your blouse all the way so he can see those little pathetic tits of yours." sue did as she was told and sat there red faced from embarrassment, but knew if she didn't, she would get in big trouble. This little bitch would surely tell the Captain and might even make her strip right there. The clerk returned with the shoes and before he could get down to put them on her feet, Judy asked him, "Do we get a discount on them? Maybe buy one pair and get one free?" He wanted to just give them both pairs of shoes, but he couldn't do it without getting in trouble with his boss. He just said, "I'm sorry, I can't do that. Only my boss can give discounts." "Then, let me talk to your boss while you try those on her feet," replied Judy. "Yes, Ma'am, if you'll just go into that room over there, he'll be there." Then the clerk got down and started trying to get her shoes on. He couldn't take his eyes off her pussy, but when he did look up at sue, he saw her tits in plain view. He didn't know what to do, so just continued putting the shoes on her feet. Just as he had finished putting the last shoe on so she could walk in them, the manager and Judy returned. The manager said, "Joe, is there a problem here? This lady says you offered her a discount. You know we can't do that." But just as he finished talking, he noticed sue sitting there fully exposed and Judy said to him, "If you'll give us a discount, she'll suck both your cocks. Either right here in the store, or in the back room. Your choice." The manager and the clerk hesitated for a moment and then the manager said, "I will give you a discount if she'll strip and then suck us both off." Judy said, "You got a deal. Where do you want it, right here or in the back room?" The manager of the store thought for a moment, and wondered if this was for real. Then he said, "If she'll strip here and walk with us to my office, suck both of our cocks then you will get one pair of shoes free." "Well, you heard the man sgt. lee, strip!" Judy said gleefully. sue just looked at her, then around the store. But she didn't move. "I SAID STRIP, cunt!" yelled Judy, "Or should I report this to the Captain?" sue didn't want any more trouble than she already had, so she started removing her clothes, laying them in the seat beside her. Of course, it didn't take long, since she had very little to remove. she stood there naked, in plain view of anyone who walked in. The manager was shocked, but said, "Good, now follow me." sue walked behind the two men into the office. Both of them pulled there hard cocks out at the same time and she got to her knees, wanting to get this over with real quick. The manager wanted his first and stepped up to her and shoved his hard cock into her mouth. she opened up and took all that she could, knowing that the clerk and Judy were both watching. But then she realized that Judy also had a cam corder out and was taping everything. sue could have died, but just as she was about to pull away from the cock in her mouth, he shot his load of cum. sue had taken her mouth off his cock as he was cumming and most of it landed on her face, but she quickly put it back into her mouth and swallowed the remaining drops. When the manager pulled away, the clerk rammed his cock into her mouth. He wasn't as long as the other one, but he sure was thicker. she had a hard time getting it all in. But it didn't take long for him to cum and she quickly pulled away from him, too. she just wanted to get dressed and leave, but Judy had other ideas. As sue was about to wipe the cum from her face, Judy said, "No, don't touch it. Just leave that male spunk on you. Now, go get your clothes and get dressed while I take care of the bill. Of course, you know that it is all on your credit card, don't you?" sue began to cry. she worked so hard for her money and Judy was now spending it on something she didn't want. At least she only had to pay for one pair of shoes. her clothes were still out in the showroom and as she walked out, she noticed other people in the store looking around. she stopped to ask if Judy would get her clothes for her, but before she could say anything, Judy just pushed her out the door and said, "Remember, slut, you can't talk. Now walk out there and get dressed so we can continue shopping. sue crept out the door and made a dash for her clothes. she got dressed as quickly as possible, but knew the other people saw her. Once she was dressed, she went to join Judy and get out of there. she was quite a sight to see, especially with the cum still dripping from her face. Judy finished the purchase and made sue sign the receipt and then led her out of the shoe store heading for another shop.
SPREAD 'EM part 4 Judy was laughing as sue followed her from the shoe store. sue, in her new six-inch heels, carrying the other pair and cum dripping from her face. They entered the main area and Judy started looking for another shop. sue was having a hard time walking on those new high heels and she could sense the stares of others as they watched the slut walk along the hall. Judy said, "Come on, sue, keep up with me. We have so much to do and the Captain doesn't like to be kept waiting." sue did her best to keep up as Judy took long steps to get to the next shop. Finally, she spotted the store she wanted to go into. It was a ladies shop that sold mini skirts and dresses. "Just what the Captain wanted," thought Judy. She turned into the doorway and sue followed. Judy started looking at the clothes and sue just stared at the ridiculous items she was being handed. she could never wear anything like this. They were all to short and some wouldn't even cover her at all. "Why me! How did this happen!" sue questioned herself. Finally, Judy made it to the back of the store near the dressing rooms. sue had her arms full of clothes, and wondered aloud, "What's next?" Judy heard her and said, "Well, my little pet, you are going to try all these clothes on so I can see if they fit you properly. The Captain was very specific about how he wants you dressed when he takes you out." "WWWWWHHHHHHHAAAAAATTTTTTT!" cried sue. "I'm not going out with him, especially in these clothes. NO!" "Oh, yes you will, little one, and you'll wear anything we say," stated Judy. "Now, lay those clothes over there in that chair and get into the dressing room and strip. I'll give you the ones to try on first." sue hesitated for a moment, but to avoid any other problems, she went into the dressing room, which only had a curtain over the doorway. she removed her clothes and waited. Suddenly, the curtain opened up all the way and Judy handed her the first outfit. sue took it and pulled the curtain closed. she quickly got redressed and saw that it just barely covered her most private areas. she thought about all that had happened and wondered how she would ever last for the six months. Maybe it would be better to quit and run. Finally, she got up the nerve to open the curtain to peer out. Judy was waiting and said, "Come on out ,slut, let's see how you look." sue stepped out, very carefully, not wanting to expose herself too much. Once out, she was made to turn around, bend over and even raise her hands up over her head. she knew that her naked ass was going to show and could feel the coolness of the air on her bald pussy. This went on for some time, sue trying on the clothes and then modeling them for Judy. Once she had them all arranged in different piles, Judy said, "OK, I'm going to get something to eat, but you have to pay for your clothes." "BBBBuuuutttt, I don't have any money and you have my credit card," stuttered sue. "That's OK, sue" said Judy, "you are going to work for them. The Captain is meeting me across the hall soon, so you need to get busy in order to get the clothes he wants and be ready to leave when we are finished eating." Judy took her to the manager and said, "she's ready now. Is this outfit OK to wear?" The manager looked at her skimpy little outfit she came in with and said, "No, let's try something else," as he handed sue a package. Judy said, "Open it up slut and put it on, quickly." sue opened the package and all that was in it was what looked like two small tube tops. Hesitating before starting to go to the dressing room, she was stopped. "Just change right here sue," stated Judy. "We don't have much time." sue stared at her, but obeyed and quickly got out of the clothes she had on and redressed in the new clothes. she was so embarrassed. The clothes were just what she thought they were. Two tiny tube tops, and she was expected to wear one on top and one on bottom. Neither one covered much of her. Once she was dressed, Judy said, "OK, she's all yours for awhile. I'll be right across the hall in the chick-filet and will be watching. sue, just do as your told." Judy left and the manager had sue follow him. He took her into another room, then through a door that led to the display window in the front of the store. It was empty except for a small pedestal right next to the window. It was about three feet high and four foot wide. He made her step up onto it and positioned her. He took her legs and had her open them up about two feet, and then placed her hands on her hips. Then he said, "I told your friend I would give you all the clothes you tried on if you stood here in the window and modeled these clothes for me. You have to stand perfectly still like you are a dummy. You move at all, and you have to pay the price of the clothes. You stay still until she gets back and they are yours. I'll be watching you." He left sue standing there all alone. she didn't want to cause a problem, but this was going to be hard. And she knew that if she moved and had to buy the clothes, she would be in trouble with the Captain. So, she stood there, not realizing that from the outside, people had to look up and would see straight up her legs to her bare pussy. As sue stood as still as possible, something strange was happening between her legs. she was getting a tingling, yet erotic feeling there and she could feel the wetness begin to form. her pussy was leaking from the exposure and she knew that it wouldn't be long before it dripped down to the floor. Suddenly, she was blinded by bright lights. The manager had turned some spots on her. One was directly into her face so she couldn't see anything. The other one was focused straight up from the floor, shining on her little asian cunt. And just a fast as the lights had come on, the one on her face went out and she was feeling extra heat on her pussy. she was afraid to look down, but could sense there was a light shining straight up her legs. Once she was able to refocus her eyes, she saw a crowd had gathered outside the window. The people were pointing at her and she saw their lips move. However, she couldn't read lips and had no idea what was being said. Her cunt was now getting really hot, but it was dripping her juices. It felt like it was running like a faucet. she knew they all could see the wetness, but she could do nothing, except stand in the open like this, staring out at everyone who walked by as they stopped, stared and pointed at the new dummy in the window. sue cried, big tears running down her cheeks. It seemed like hours had gone by and her legs were getting weak. If she had to stay like this much longer, she would probably pass out. In her mind, she thought, "Please hurry up, Captain. Please, Judy. i'll do anything for you, just help me out of here." sue watched as Judy and the Captain approached the window after eating their meal. They stood right before her and talked. she didn't know what they were saying, but figured it was all about her. Then, they disappeared. The manager of the store finally came into the window and said, "OK, guess your friend was right. You can stand still like the dummy you are. The clothes are yours. Now get out of my window." sue quickly moved, stiffly, and returned to the store. They were waiting for her and the Captain said, "Pick up those bags and follow us. We have some other stops to make before going to your house." Picking up the bags of clothes, she followed the two out of the store and back into the main hall. she had no idea where they were going, but was soon to find out. The Captain and Judy walked hand in hand in front of her. It looked like they were just two lovers walking in the mall. But sue, carrying the packages, looked more like a whore in the clothes she had on. They didn't really hide anything at all. The Captain turned into a luggage store and looked around. Judy stayed with him and sue was following. As he stopped by the cashier, sue heard him ask, "Where are your luggage locks. You know those little padlocks that you can lock suitcases with. Can't trust anyone these days with your goods, you know." The clerk told them where he could find them and then he said, "sue, let's get some locks for you. I'll let you pick them out for me." But, he wouldn't tell her what he had planned to use them for. They looked at the wide variety of locks and sue had to tell him which ones she liked. Thinking she would be putting them on suitcases, she picked out the strongest looking ones. Even though most were small, some of them were a little larger. He told her she needed to have six locks. After picking them out, they checked out, putting the cost on her credit card. she was even made to sign the slip for them. she thought if this keeps up, she won't have any money left. The next stop in the mall was a cellular phone place. As they were looking at the variety of phones, sue heard Judy ask, "Do you have any that are water proof. We need something that can get wet and not hurt it. And, I need it to vibrate ,too." The clerk took them to a special counter and showed them some different types of phones. All of them were moisture resistant and they did vibrate if set right. The Captain saw one he liked and told the clerk to set it up using sue's credit card. It was quite expensive and she knew she was almost maxed out on that card. How would she ever pay for all of it? The clerk came back and handed the Captain the phone. He checked it out and made sure it vibrated. He even called the number from his cell phone to be sure the vibrations could be felt. Then right there in the store, he handed it to sue and said, "Put this up your cunt. It will be there all the time unless you are being fucked. Whenever it vibrates, you better pull it out and answer it. You never know who will be calling." sue looked horrified. she started to say, "Bbbbuuuuuttttt!" she was stopped quickly by the Captain when he said, "I said to put it in your cunt, bitch, now do it." This startled her and from the look on his face, she knew she had to. So, standing in the store with others watching, she reached under what little skirt she had and pushed the little phone inside her. They all laughed and the Captain said, "OK, we are going to check it out. When you feel it inside you, be sure you get it out and answer it. You only have three rings to get to it, so you had better practice. And, you better not ever let it go unanswered. You will answer your phone all the time, no matter where you are." Then, he dialed the number, which she didn't even know what it was. sue jumped as it started vibrating in her pussy. "bzzzzzzzzzz bzzzzzzzzzz" was what was felt in her. she knew she had to get it out of her pussy and say hello before it rang again, or she would probably be in big trouble. she reached down to her cunt and stuck her fingers inside and retrieved the phone. Then, she brought it up and said, "Hello" The Captain and Judy laughed at her and he said, "Very good cunt, now put it back so we can finish up in here. I need to get home to get some sleep. Got a busy day ahead of us tomorrow." sue stuffed the phone back into her pussy and followed them out the door. she had no idea what was next. Six months of this would be a very long time if all of this continued. sue was beginning to learn how to walk better on her new high heels, but her feet really ached and was hoping she would be able to sit down soon. And, right about now, she didn't care where it was or who saw her nakedness. The next stop was a hairdresser. The Captain had made an appointment for her before he came to the mall and it was now time to fix her hair the way he wanted it. They entered the shop and he spoke with a girl, then motioned for her to come up to him. When she was beside him, he said, "I want this fixed so her ears show all the time. The hair is too long, so we can cut it or do whatever is needed." sue stared blankly at him. she had grown her hair long, and right now it was hanging down to the middle of her shoulder blades. she liked it this way and had been able to do whatever she wanted with it. Now, he wanted it cut. she tried to ask him not to, but he just told her to shut up. The girl took them into a back room and had her sit in a chair. She showed the Captain and Judy some pictures of different styles of haircuts and they picked out the one they liked. Then, he said, "sue, just sit there, relax and don't say anything. you will allow this girl to do your hair and do not complain." Once again, sue started crying. she didn't want this, but what else could she do, except obey. The girl started working on her and sue felt the scissors as it cut away her pretty long hair. Before Judy and the captain left, he said, "You have my cell phone number. So, when she is done, get your phone out and call me." Then, they left her alone with this girl. As she sat in the chair, her legs opened up involuntarily and her cunt was now on display again. The girl noticed it and said, "MMMMM, nice little pussy you have. Can I see more?" sue said, "NO!" and closed her legs up. Just then, the Captain stepped back into the room, and said, "Did I hear you say NO!" sue answered, "Yes, I said no. she wanted to see more of me and I won't let her." "Well, that's very rude," stated the captain, "Now, take all your clothes off and let her see you!" "NNNNNNNOOOOOO, I won't," yelled sue. Judy stood behind her and reached around, slapping sue across the face. "He said to strip. Now, cunt, unless you want to walk out of here naked, do it!" sue hated her for this, but slowly took all her clothes off and sat there naked. Judy told the girl. "If she gives you anymore problems, just slap her. And, if you need to, call this number and we'll come back to take care of her." The girls asked, "Can I play with her some when I'm done. I love women and she is so sexy." "Do anything you want, but finish her hair first," said Judy. The girl liked this and quickly got busy with her hair. She cut and styled it, so it was short now and didn't conceal her ears. sue saw it in the mirror and cried hard. All her long beautiful hair was gone. As the girl finished up with the hair, she said, "OK, now we can play some. You won't call them back until I am finished with you. Now, spread those sexy legs so I can eat that lovely little cunt." sue had never had a woman do this before and she didn't want it now, but did as she was told, because she knew if she didn't, the girl would call them and then she would be in trouble. So, she opened her legs wide and the girl got down in front of her and began to lick at sue's bald pussy. sue was starting to enjoy it and knew it wouldn't be long before this girl got her off. she needed to cum really bad and her cunt was aching from the need of pleasure. And, it didn't take long before she let out, "AAAAAAAAAAGGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHHH,CCCCCCCCCUUUUUUUMMMMMMMMMMIIIIIINNNNNNNGGGGGGGG!" The girl licked a little longer and then stood up and removed her clothes. "OK, now we change places. You are going to get me off just like I did you!" sue started to tell her no way. she was not a lesbian and she wasn't about to eat another cunt. But, then she remembered what Judy had said and got out of the chair so the other girl could sit down. Then, she got between the girl's legs and stared at her wide-open hole. It looked nasty and really didn't smell good at all. But, she wanted to get this over with, so she started eating her first cunt. she must have done a good job, because soon, the girl screamed, "OOOOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHH,AAAAAAAAHHHHHHHHHHH, SSSSSSSSSHHHHHHHHIIIIIIITTTTTTTTTTTT,GGGGGGGGGGGOOOOOOOOOOOODDDDDDDDDD, CCCCCCCCCCCCUUUUUUMMMMMMIIIIINNNNGGGGGG!" sue quickly stopped eating her and got up to get dressed so she could get out of there. As soon as she had the tiny clothes on, she reached into her cunt and pulled her phone out and dialed the Captain's number. The other girl watched her and when sue had replaced the phone back into her cunt, the girl said, "That's a strange place to keep your phone. Why do you do it?." sue had to explain that the Captain made her leave it there so it wouldn't disturb others should it ring. The girl laughed and said, "You are quite a slut. I do hope they bring you back soon so I can play some more." Just then, the captain and Judy arrived and noticed the naked girl. They both laughed and said, "Well, guess you have had a good time with our pet. We will keep in touch so you can do more later." Then, they left the shop and headed out of the mall so they could go to sue's house to finish up. The captain and Judy wanted to get into bed and fuck and they would do it in sue's bed.
SPREAD 'EM part 5 Once they were out of the mall and into the parking lot, the captain made her walk in front of them. He said, "I expect to see that cute little asian ass of yours wiggling like a whore's ass!" "Yyyyyeeeessssss, sir," cried sue. she was just glad to be out of the mall and hoped to reach her car soon without any further humiliation. she walked the best she could and put on a good show for her two tormentors, wiggling her ass like the slut she had now become. About half way through the parking lot, she could see the car and knew she would soon be inside it and safe. Or at least she hoped so. But just then, her cunt vibrated with, "bbbbbbzzzzzzz,bbbbbbzzzzzzzzz." It startled her at first, but then she knew she had to get to her phone before it rang again. she quickly dropped her packages and reached up under the tiny little skirt she was made to wear and dug out the phone. As she put it to her face, she could smell her sex all over it. How she hated this and hoped they wouldn't call her very much and not in public either. "Hello," she spoke quietly into the phone. It was the Captain on the other end and he said in a gruff voice, "I want you to put your phone back in your cunt, then take off all your clothes, except your heels and put them in one of the bags you are carrying. Then continue walking and wiggling the rest of the way to your car. And walk slowly." The phone went dead as he hung up. sue quickly turned around, with pleading eyes, begging not to be made to do it. she hung onto the phone hoping it would ring again so he would tell her she didn't have to. But it didn't ring and the Captain and Judy were approaching her now. she knew he meant what he said, so she took the phone and pushed it back inside her hole. Then reluctantly, began to strip out of her tiny outfit. Just as they reached her, she was putting her clothes into the bag and stood naked before them. Judy reached out and slapped her hard across the face, saying, "you took too long cunt. Next time you are told to do something, you will do it immediately. And we don't care what it is or where. Understand, bitch!" "Yyyyyeeeeessssss, Mistress Judy," cried sue. "Now, get your ass moving!" yelled the captain. sue picked up her bags and walked naked to the car, making she was sure to wiggle her ass for them. Her face was so red with humiliation and embarrassment. she just hoped no one that knew her saw her walking around in public like this. sue got to the car and tried to get in, but she didn't have the keys and the doors were locked. she stood behind the car as best she could, but know she was still visible from different areas of the parking lot. Finally, the Captain and Judy arrived at the car. Judy opened the trunk and made her put the bags inside, then had her get into the passenger seat and buckle her seat belt. Judy got in behind the wheel and said, "OK, now we can go to your house. I'm going to follow the Captain, and I want your legs spread wide open for me. You are also going to play with your fuck hole all the way home and you had better not cum. If you do, I'll put you out and you can walk home." Afraid that this bitch would do it, she opened her legs and started playing with her hot, wet pussy. It was going to be hard not to cum and she would really have to concentrate on it. sue went slowly with her fingers in her pussy, trying to avoid touching her clit, because if she rubbed that little button, she would definitely cum. Judy watched her as she drove and noticed she wasn't playing with her clit. But she didn't say anything until they were about two blocks from sue's house. Then, she said, "Rub your clit, sue!" sue looked at her, with glassy eyes, knowing that once she touched her clit, she would cum. And she didn't want that to happen. she hesitated too long and Judy reached across to her lap and took sue's finger. She put it right on her clit and said, "Rub it, bitch!" sue did what she had to do and it wasn't long and she was cumming, just like she was told not to. she tried to hold back the moans, but couldn't. "OOOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHHHHH,AAAAAAAAAAAAHHHHHHHHHHH,MMMMMMMMMMMMNNNNNNNNNNN,NNNNNN NNNNNOOOOOOOOOOO!" she screamed as the car came to a stop. they were a block away from the house and Judy said, "Get out cunt. I told you not to cum. Now, you can walk the rest of the way. Move it!" slowly sue opened the door and took off her seat belt. she looked at Judy and pleaded, "Please Mistress Judy, please don't make me do this. i'll do anything you want, but please don't make me walk naked the rest of the way." Judy thought for a moment, and then said, "OK, you don't have to walk naked, since you begged me so nicely." sue was relieved and started to close the door back up, but Judy stopped her. She said, "you don't have to walk naked this time, but I want you outside. Get on the hood and spread your legs wide apart. You can ride like that the rest of the way." "Ppppppllllllleeeeaaasseeee, no," cried sue. "Move it slut and get up on the hood. you'll make such a pretty hood ornament for everyone to see," said Judy. Slowly sue got out of the car, thinking it would be quicker getting home this way instead of walking. she climbed up on the hood of the car and sat down. It was hot on her naked ass, but she sat there and opened her legs up as wide as she could. As soon as she was settled, Judy began to drive. But, she didn't stop at sue's house. She drove past it down another block, and then turned around to go back. Once she had her fun, she pulled into sue's driveway where the Captain was waiting for them. He laughed at the sight and asked, "Why is the cunt on the hood?" Judy explained to him what had happened and both of them laughed even more. Then the Captain spoke to sue, "Get your skinny little ass off the car, get your things from the trunk, and then get into the house. I'm ready to fuck! How about you Judy?" "Yes, sir," squealed Judy, "I'm ready for your hard cock in my cunt. Let's go!" They all went into the house and straight to sue's bedroom. Once there, the captain said, "We don't want to be interrupted, so we will have to fix it so you are out of the way. Now, stand beside the bed, put your hands behind your back." sue did as she was told, grateful to be out of the public's eye and into her own house. she had her hands behind her back and then felt the cold steel of handcuffs being clicked onto her wrists. she had never had cuffs on her before and now knew what her prisoners felt like when she cuffed them. Then, the Captain pushed her to her knees beside the bed and once again, she felt the cold steel around her ankles, and a chain was run from her hands to her feet and brought tight, causing her to lean forward so her head was on the bed. she couldn't move. her hands were almost touching her feet from behind and it was very uncomfortable. Then, Judy came over to her and said, "And since we don't want you to talk, open your mouth!" sue didn't know what she was going to do, and opened up. Judy put a ring gag into her open mouth and secured it to her head. "Now, bitch, you get to watch us fuck and then you can lick us clean," said Judy as she started removing her clothes. The Captain was doing the same thing and soon both of them were on sue's bed naked. And right in front of her eyes. she watched them kiss and fondle each other and heard Judy begging, "Please, Captain, please fuck me!" And sue watched as the captain climbed on top of Judy and sunk his hard cock deep into her cunt. They were fucking like wild animals on sue's bed as she watched from the side. she watched the Captain's cock going in and out of Judy's slippery hole and wished he would fuck her. she heard the moans and groans from them both and wanted so much to join them. she wouldn't care who fucked her hot and horny cunt, as long as she was fucked. But it didn't seem like that would be possible. The only thing she had in her cunt was her new phone, and it seemed to be stretching her open more and more. It wasn't long and she heard, "IIIIIII'mmmmmmmmm ccccccccuuuuuuuummmmmmmiiiiinnnnnnggggggggggg, OOOOOOOOohhhhhhhhhhhhhh, yyyyyyyyyyyyeeeeeeeeeesssssssssss, sssssssssssoooooooo gggggggggggoooooooooooodddddddddddd." And the captain shouted, "Mmmmmmmmmmeeeeeeeeeeeeee ttttttttttttttttttttttttttttttttttoooooooooooooooooooooooo," as he shot his heavy load into the little dispatcher's convulsing pussy. They lay still for awhile and then the captain rolled off, bringing his cock in line with sue's mouth. He said, "Lick me clean, bitch, and then suck me hard so I can fuck her again." sue had no other choice but to do as he wished. Really, she enjoyed having his cock in her mouth. she licked off the juices from his softening cock and then took him into her mouth. she never realized that she could do this with a gag in her moth, but found it quite easy. Not as good as being able to get her lips around it, but at least she could lick him. Once he was clean and hard, he said, "Judy, are you ready for some more?" "No, not yet," answered Judy, "I want my cunt licked first, then we can fuck again." As she was saying this, she moved over to sue and stuck her cunt right up to her face. "Lick me, you little asian whore, and make sure you get all that cum out of me." sue started licking her cunt, thinking, it wasn't so bad. It tasted a lot different from the one she ate earlier and she could also taste the Captain's cum inside her pussy. she licked the pussy like she was a pro at it and it wasn't long before Judy could have cum again. But,she pulled away before she did and sat down on the Captain's hard cock. She rode him like she was on a bucking bronco, taking him deep and then almost pulling off. Then she started going so fast, sue's head was bouncing up and down on the bed. Judy started cumming again as the captain pumped his seed into her pussy. They both just lay there and fell asleep. His cock was still imbedded in her fuck hole and sue watched his cum running out of it, making a trail down his balls and dripping onto the bed. The two of them slept for about an hour and then got up. They got sue up from the floor and tossed her onto the bed, right in the puddle of mixed cum and cunt juice. They went to clean up and when they returned, they told her they were leaving. she stared at them both, but couldn't say anything. The Captain knew what she was thinking, and said, "Yes, we are leaving you alone for the night, just like you are. Judy will be back in the morning to get you up and ready for work. Sleep tight little one." They both left, but Judy returned and did something between sue's legs. she couldn't tell what she was doing, but she knew Judy had her fingers inside her pussy playing with the phone. Then, Judy left and turned out the lights. sue didn't sleep too well at all, but she finally got to sleep, smelling the sex in the room, and wished it had been her being fucked instead of the bitch Judy. she was suddenly awakened by the vibrations in her cunt. her phone was ringing, but she couldn't get to it to answer. she opened her eyes to see Judy standing over her, with the house phone in her hand. Judy said, "Time to get up and go to work, sue. I hope I didn't interrupt anything with your alarm clock in your pussy." Judy began undoing all the restraints from sue and when she was finally free, she stretched to get the kinks out, and then realized that she had a cord hanging out of her cunt and wondered what it was. Judy saw her puzzled look and said, "Oh, I forgot to tell you. That's the charging cord for your pussy phone and from now on at night you will plug it in to keep it charged. Wouldn't want to miss any important phone calls, would we." sue quickly pulled the phone out and unplugged and set it on the bed. she wasn't going to put it back in, until Judy said, 'The Captain said to keep your pussy phone inside you at all times unless he allowed you to get fucked. Do I have to call him and report your lack of obedience?" "Nnnnnooooooo, Ma'am," cried sue as she picked up the phone and put it back inside her cunt. "Now, let's get you dressed for work," said Judy, "We are running late, so no time to shower. Here, put this on." Judy handed her a small uniform skirt and blouse. It had been altered and the hem only came to three inches below her shaved cunt. Slowly, sue got dressed and followed Judy out of the house to her car. Judy drove as sue sat in the passenger seat, staring out the window. "This is only the second day of my six months and already I hate it. Maybe I'll just get deported like the Captain was going to do. China couldn't be any worse than this." she was going to tell the Captain she was quitting the force and would go back to China and never come to the states again. But the Captain had other plans and would give her a good taste of what prison would be like for her. He knew after spending a full day in jail with the inmates she helped put there, she would change her mind and do anything he wanted. But, she didn't know about that yet, as the two girls rode in silence to the police station.
SPREAD 'EM part 6 They arrived at the station and Judy parked way in the back of the lot. sue started to ask why she parked back here instead of in her normal parking spot up close, but before she could say anything, Judy said, "OK, cunt, get out and let's walk. You are going to show off a little for everyone today, so might as well get started early." sue knew better than to argue with her, so she got out. Judy met her in front of the car and began to readjust sue's clothes. she unbuttoned the top three buttons of her uniform blouse, causing her little tits to show more. Then, she reached down and pulled her tiny skirt up and rolled the top. This caused the hemline to come just below her cunt. "That's better," said Judy, "now walk and be sure to wiggle that little ass for everyone." sue began to cry, but started walking, shaking her ass like a common street walking whore. she knew all the other officers could see her and knew they stopped to stare. They entered the station and sue went to her desk while Judy went in to see the Captain. There was a pile of paperwork on her desk and she started going through it. But, her mind was not on the work at hand. Instead, it was on her juicy cunt, and she needed to cum so bad. she almost reached down to play with herself, but stopped because she was at work. One female officer stopped by her desk to say "Hi" and commented about sue's new hairstyle. sue couldn't even look her fellow officer in the eye as she quietly said, "New position, new style," and gave a weak smile. The officer walked away. Just then sue jumped! Her pussy phone was vibrating in her cunt and she had to get to it and answer it. Just before the third ring, she pulled it out of its wet hole and said, "Hello!" The voice on the other end said, "Get your little asian ass in here and show me!" Then the phone went dead. sgt. lee jumped up and almost forgot to put her phone back. But at the last minute, while standing at her desk, she realized she needed to put it in, so just reached down and shoved it up her pussy. Then she made her way to the Captain's office. As soon as she entered, Judy left and shut the door. sue stripped naked and leaned on the desk. The Captain made it a point to be loud, and said, "Spread 'em, cunt!" sue had forgotten how she was supposed to be, but quickly remembered when she heard his rough order. she spread her legs really wide, exposing her tight little asian ass and dripping cunt. The Captain walked up behind her and put his hand between her legs. He felt her pussy, sticking his finger inside her. Then, without warning drove his wet finger up her ass. "AAAAAAAGGGGGGHHHHH,NNNNNNNNOOOOOOOOO!" cried sue. The Captain just laughed as he probed her tight little hole and said, "MMMM, I'll bet there hasn't been anything up here before, but that will change soon." Then he pulled his finger out and once again began to play with her cunt. He ran his fingers around her swollen lips and then up to her clit. He pinched the little bud between his fingers and rubbed it hard. sue was about to cum, but suddenly he stopped when he sensed she was ready. He walked away and said, "Get dressed cunt, in these clothes I brought for you. We need to visit the jail today." sue wanted to cum so much, she begged, "PPPPPLLLLLEEEEAAAASSSSEEEEE sir, fuck me and make me cum." He just laughed harder and said, "No, bitch, not yet. I want you hot enough to fuck whatever I say, so just get dressed." Shaking from frustration, she dressed in the clothes he handed to her. A conservative skirt, which came to mid-thigh and a not so sheer blouse that had buttons from top too bottom. she didn't mind these clothes, since they covered her nicely. As she was dressing, the Captain explained some new rules to her. He said, "From now on slut, I am the only one that will fuck you, unless I give someone else permission. My cock will be the only one to go into your hot little cunt. And since you are dressed so nicely now, you better not fuck up. For every time you disobey, hesitate, or fail to complete what I say, you will lose something. It will either be a button or part of your skirt. I'll decide what you will cut off your nice clothes. Understand cunt!" "YYEEEESSS, sir," she stammered, wanting to just run off and fuck the world. They got to the jail and the Captain told the guard that he was going to inspect the prisoners, but the guard had to stay outside. He didn't want any interruptions while he was inside and said to the guard, "You just keep this door closed and don't allow anyone in until we come out. You just turn your back to the door and I'll make sure you get a good reward when I'm finished." The guard said, "Yes, sir, I'll keep everyone away. How long will you be" The Captain said, "I don't really know. I guess it depends on my sgt." With that, he opened the door and pushed sue inside. They walked between the cells and the Captain finally stopped at one of the cells. He asked the prisoner what he was doing in jail and if this was the officer who put him there. sue knew it was her and remembered back at the time she arrested him. He was caught peeping into a lady's bedroom window while she was undressing. "Yes, sir," replied the man behind the bars. "Then pull your cock out and stick it through the bars. she's going to suck you off." said the Captain. Then to sue he said, "Bend over at the waist, don't use your hands, and suck him off. And be sure to spread 'em." Totally embarrassed and humiliated already, she thought, "Maybe he'll let them fuck me next. Then, I can cum!" After the Captain had played with her in his office, she was so horny, she would have fucked anything, just to cum. Spreading her legs wide apart, bending from the waist, she found the prisoner's cock and went down on it. she sucked him off, and when he shot his load down her throat, she gagged and choked. This guy must have been saving it for a year. He had so much cum, her little mouth couldn't hold it all and some dribbled out of her mouth and down her chin. As soon as he finished cumming, sue stood up and started to wipe the cum from her face. But the Captain slapped her hand away and said, "Just leave it right there. It will be good for your complexion and will show everyone what a little slut you really are." sue cried, knowing the cum on her face would dry and everyone would see it. she was so embarrassed, but found out that she would get even more humiliation soon. The Captain said to her, "Now sgt. lee, thank the man and apologize for putting him away." sue stuttered, "Bbbbbuuuuttttt sssiiiirrrr, i was doing my job." "Shut up, and do what you are told!" shouted the Captain. "Thhhhaannkk you and i'm sorry!" she cried. "Not good enough bitch," stated the Captain. "Now, you will call him "Sir" and do it right. And, from now on, you will call every man you come in contact with "Sir" and every woman, "Ma'am". Is that clear?" Crying more now, sue said, "Thank you, Sir, for letting me suck you. And, i am sorry i locked you up." The Captain laughed and said, "Much better. Now we need to go. But tell everyone else in here that you'll be back someday soon to take care of them." "Yes, Sir," she cried, "i'll be back soon to suck all of you." Then the Captain said, "Let's go now. We have lots of work to do today. you need to thank the guard on the way out for not disturbing us. They exited the cellblock and got to the guard. The Captain said, "Well, thank him and you better tell him what you did, too." she didn't want this guard knowing she sucked off an inmate, but what choice did she have. So she said, "Thank you, Sir, for not disturbing us while i sucked off one of the prisoners." Then she broke down into tears. How humiliating this is, she thought. The guard looked shocked at what he just heard and saw the Captain lean over and whisper into the sgt.'s ear. Then, she said, in a very quiet voice. "Sir, may i suck your cock, too?" The Captain laughed and was shaking his head yes to the guard. Knowing he couldn't get in trouble, the guard said, "Sure, why not!" as he pulled his cock out. sue bent over and took his cock into her mouth and sucked him. It took a little longer to get him to cum, but finally, he shot his load into her mouth, but just as he started cumming, the Captain pulled her head back and most of his cum landed on her face and blouse. As soon as she recovered, she said, "Sir, may i get cleaned up before we go upstairs?" "Of course you can, little one," said the Captain, "use your skirt to wipe your face and hurry up." Standing before the guard, she reached down to her skirt and brought it to her face to wipe away all the cum. When she did, the guard could see her hairless little cunt and said, "Oh, how cute." The Captain just laughed and sue turned redder. The Captain said, "OK, cunt, back up stairs. Lots of work to do today. Stop by my office and get your scissors before going to your desk." After getting her scissors, she started walking out the door, but he stopped her. "Cut off two buttons bitch. You took too long to respond twice in the jail." sue just looked at him, staring blankly. she didn't want to do it. He said, "OK, then three buttons, all from the top." sue snapped out of her daze and quickly cut off three top buttons, not wanting to be ordered to cut off any more. Once they were off, he told her to go to work. her blouse was opening more now and glimpses of her little tits could be seen when she walked. she got to her desk and tried to cover her tits as best she could. Judy came by and said hello to her. sue replied, "Hello Ma'am." knowing that Judy would tell the Captain if she didn't respond correctly. Judy laughed and went into the Captain's office and closed the door. sue wasn't sure what they were doing, but could guess she was getting fucked by him and wished she could do the same. But she knew he wasn't going to fuck her, so she set her mind on her work. As she worked, others came by to say hello and thinking clearly, she always answered them correctly. That is until one of her officers brought in an unruly prisoner. This guy was really causing problems and she jumped up to assist. she got to the other cop and grabbed the prisoner and pushed him against the wall. For a little girl, sue was quite strong and easily handled the prisoner. she said, in a rather loud voice. "Sit down and shut up!" Of course the Captain heard the commotion and stepped to his door. Watching the scene, he made note that she did not once say "Sir" to him. she would pay for that. But he would wait until the two cops had him booked and in a holding cell. Finally they got the prisoner into the cell and sue got back to her desk to continue with the paper work. As she was starting to work, her pussy phone vibrated in her cunt. "bbbbbbzzzzzzzzz,bbbbbbbzzzzzzzz" It made her jump, since it hadn't gone off for awhile. she grabbed her skirt and raised it up, then got her hand in her pussy to get the phone out. Before it rang the third time, she said, "Hheelloo." It was the Captain and he said, "You didn't say "Sir" to that prisoner, so cut one inch from the bottom of your skirt." "Bbbbbbbbuuuuuuttttttttt, sir," stuttered sue. "TWO INCHES!" ordered the Captain and hung up. sue didn't have any choice now, but to do as she was told. she took the scissors from her desk and reached below it and began to cut. she hoped it was at least even all the way around. she worked carefully and finally got the two inches off. Once done, the phone buzzed again, but she had forgot to put it back into her pussy. she picked it up and before she could even say hello, the Captain said, "In my office cunt! And bring the scissors!" sue quickly got up and went to his office. she started to strip in front of him, but he stopped her. "No, I want to look at the job you did and add something extra." sue just stood still as he walked around and noticed she did pretty well at cutting. Then he took the scissors and made a slit up one side of her shortened skirt. He said, "That's for not putting your phone back in its proper place. Now back to work." sgt. lee looked at her clothes and could see that her ass would show when she walked because of the slit. God how she hated this man and someday she would get even with him and that fucking bitch Judy. she quickly walked back to her desk and sat down, trying to cover up her exposed skin. she was working on the paper work again and everything was quiet. she remembered to call everyone sir and ma'am, just as she had been told to do. sue was doing her best to do everything the Captain said, even if she hated it. But the quiet would not last too much longer. her phone rang again. "bbbbbbbzzzzzzzz,bbbbbbzzzzz" as it vibrated her cunt. she grabbed it from her pussy and said, "Hello." This time it was Judy. she told sue that she had to go out and wanted her to report to her desk to take over for her. sue said, "i'm busy right now Judy, can't you get someone else?" A big mistake! The phone went dead and Judy was standing in front of her desk, with a strange glare in her eyes. "Stand up, cunt!" was all she said to sue. sgt. lee knew she was in trouble once again and tried to apologize. "MMMMmiiiissssttttrressss, i'm sorry, i wasn't thinking." "Too late bitch, now give me your scissors and stand still. sue reluctantly handed her the scissors. Judy took her skirt and cut a big slit up the other side. Now, it looked like she only had a loincloth on. Both sides were split from the bottom all the way to the waistband and she only had a front and back flap to cover her body. "Now, get to my desk and take over for me," ordered Judy. "Yes, Ma'am," cried sue, as she started toward the dispatcher's desk. she saw Judy going into the Captain's office again. sue tried her best to keep the two flaps from separating, but was not very successful doing it. As she walked, her skirt opened up on both sides and anyone looking could see her bare thighs, some of her ass and once in awhile her pussy was even visible. How she wished her six months of torture would be over, but, this was only the beginning and she knew it would only get worse for her.
SPREAD 'EM part 7 While Judy was gone, sue thought about everything that had happened so far. she had taken a Master and also a Mistress, (or they took her) who could and would do anything they desired with her. she didn't want to be returned to China, so she had to obey. But, was it worse to be used this way, or spend time in prison and eventually be deported back to China. she had heard about the things that went on in prison and she would end up being a whore for some female, without being free. So, she thought that six months of this had to be better than being sent to prison. As she was thinking about everything, Judy returned and told her to go back to her own desk, but not to make any plans for tonight. They would all be going out later. sue returned to her own desk, very aware that she was showing a lot to all the other people in the station. she was sitting at her desk, when her phone vibrated once again inside her pussy. she quickly pulled it out of her pussy and said, "Hello". This time the Captain said, "sgt. lee, we have to interrogate the prisoner that was just brought in. Meet me in my office in five minutes, and bring the scissors with you." He hung up before she could answer him. she looked at her watch and waited until it was time. Slowly she got up and walked to his office, hoping no one saw her or her nakedness underneath her cut skirt. As she entered his office, he got up and said, "Let's go to the room." They walked together to the opposite end of the hall and entered the interrogation room. The prisoner was seated at the table, waiting for them. He stared at sgt. lee with hatred in his eyes. He really hated that this little cunt had pushed him into a chair with no effort whatsoever. He wanted to get back at her, but couldn't figure out how he would do it. After all, she was a fucking cop. The Captain asked him his name and some other questions. Then he asked, "Would you like to get back at this little asian cop for being mean to you?" "I sure would," said the man. "OK, then, I think you should get to whip her little ass with my belt. Would you enjoy that?" questioned the Captain. "SSIIRRR, please not that!" cried sue. "Another button sgt.!" was all the Captain said. sue knew that she was once again in trouble and quickly reached up with the scissors and snipped off another button from her blouse. Her tits now were very visible to both the men in the room. Once she had complied with the order, the Captain said, "Hands on the table, bitch, and spread em!" sue had no choice except to obey his commands. she bent over, put her hands on the table and spread her legs wide. Now she was almost ready for what the Captain wanted. He reached over to her and flipped the back of her skirt up over her waist, which exposed her naked ass and showed her bald pussy quite well. Then the Captain took off his belt and told the prisoner that he deserved respect from this sgt. and since he didn't get it, she would take a whipping from him. He told sue, "You will receive fifteen swats with the belt for your discrepancies. Five for each one. That's for not calling him "Sir", pushing him into a chair and telling him to shut up. Are you ready?" "NNNNNooooooo, Sir," was her reply. "That's too bad," said the Captain, "because you are going to get it anyway. Now, I want you to count each time he strikes you and also thank him for it. Then, you will ask for another, until you reach fifteen. Then, you will be nice to him and apologize for being rude to him and tell him thank you for making you suffer." "Yyyyyeeeessssss, Sir," sue cried, and waited for her torture to begin. "Tell him you are ready, slut!" shouted the Captain. "i i i i i'mmmmm rrrrreeeeaaaddddyyy, Sir," she stuttered. With that, she felt the first slap to her naked ass. she jumped and screamed. He was not easy on her and hit her with full force. she heard the Captain in the back, laughing at her predicament. However, she didn't say anything at all. The Captain said, "That one doesn't count, since you didn't. Start again!" The prisoner smacked her ass again, making her jump, but this time she said, "One, thank you Sir, may this slut have another." Both men laughed and the prisoner swung again, catching her squarely across both ass cheeks. "Two, thank you Sir, may this slut have another?" This went on until she had received fourteen and was ready for the last one. But this time, it didn't hit her on her ass. Instead, he swung up between her legs, catching the belt on her exposed cunt. she yelled in pain and almost passed out. But she knew if she didn't count, she would get more, so crying, she said, "Fifteen, thank you, Sir, this slut thanks you for her punishment, and for making her suffer." Then, she dropped to her knees and grabbed her sore cunt. That last one hurt more than any of them on her ass. she had never been abused this way before, but she did notice that her pussy was extremely wet and aroused and as she grabbed her twat, she also fingered herself. But the Captain noticed this and made her stop. As soon as she had calmed down, he made her stand up and he took the scissors and cut another slit up her skirt. This time straight up the back. she knew when she walked, her ass would be showing and anyone looking would be able to see how red it was. The Captain said, "OK, back to work, cunt. I'll take the prisoner out of here and put him in his cell. But I am sure you'll see more of him later." sue walked back to her desk and tried to sit down. her little ass was on fire and she couldn't sit. So, she stood at her desk and tried to work. But she had to bend over and when she did, her skirt opened up, exposing her naked red ass. So once again she tried to sit. Oh, it hurt so much. But it was the lesser of two evils. she could either sit on her sore ass or expose it to everyone. she tried not to move around and finally was more comfortable sitting. she got into her work, but couldn't do much because the pain kept her pre-occupied. Finally, the day was almost over for her and she couldn't wait to get out of there and go home. The Captain and Judy had left her alone for awhile now and she hoped they wouldn't bother her again today. she just wanted to get a nice warm bath and some sleep. But right as the shift was over, Judy came by and said, "sue, darling, we are going to grab something to eat on the way home. Then the Captain will meet with us later. I need his cock again so much. You don't mind if we use your bed again, do you?" "Nnnnoo, Ma'am," replied sue, but her thoughts were not the same as her answer. she was thinking, she didn't want this cute little bitch anywhere near her, especially in her bed, fucking. But what else could she say. If she told Judy she minded, she would be in trouble. So, she agreed to let them fuck in her bed. The Captain came out and said, "sue, go with Judy, get us something to eat and then take her home with you. I'll be over as soon as I finish here. And don't give her any trouble." "Yes, Sir," was all she could say, but so much wanted to tell him to fuck off too. Judy came back after using the bathroom and as sue stood up to leave, the Captain said, "I think something is missing, don't you Judy?" Judy actually looked puzzled this time, and the Captain told her that sue's skirt didn't look right. Judy looked at sue and said, "You are right. Let me fix it for her." And with that, she took the scissors and cut a slit right up the front, from the bottom all the way to the waistband. Now, she was open in the front and back. "That's better," the Captain said, "now run along and I'll be there soon." The two females left the station, with sue doing her best to cover her nakedness. Judy noticed her doing this and said, "Keep your hands away from your clothes, cunt. Just put them behind your back, palm to palm and then walk with that cute little wiggle." sue did as she was told, but hated it. Someday, when this six months are done, she would pay this cunt back. she didn't know how, but she would do it. They walked to sue's car and Judy put her in the passenger seat and then got in the driver's side. Making sue spread her legs in an obscene way, she drove out of the parking lot. "What would you like to eat, my little susie slut?" "i don't care!" snapped sue. "Is that anyway to talk to your Mistress, susie slut?" said Judy as she reached across and slapped her face. "Now, cunt, what do you want to eat?" "Whatever would please you Mistress," cried sue. "Much better," said Judy. "How about some chicken tonight? There's a KFC just up the road." Judy pulled the car into the parking lot and parked a good distance from the entrance. "OK, susie slut, go in and get us three meals. Here's some money, and if you don't have enough, you'll have to find some other way to pay for it. Now move!" sue just stared at her and then questioned, "Please, Mistress, please don't make me go in like this." "OK, I won't," said Judy and got the scissors out. She cut off the rest of the buttons from her blouse, then tied the ends just below the little asian's tits. "Now, you can go. Any more delays and you'll go naked." Crying, sue got out and started to readjust her blouse, but Judy stopped her. She said, "Leave it alone. I fixed it the way I want it, now move." Slowly, sue headed for the entrance, knowing her cunt, ass, and now her tits were exposed. Shyly she walked into the store and up to the counter. she was placing her order when suddenly she felt her phone going off. Now what could she do? Standing in the store, with others watching, her phone buzzing. If it was the Captain, and she didn't answer she would be in trouble. So she reached down in front of everyone and dug her phone out of her wet pussy. "Hello!" she answered, frustrated. "I forgot to tell you that the Captain wants dessert too. Get him one of those pies." said Judy and then hung up. Turning a bright red, she ordered everything, put her phone back and waited. she was afraid to look at anyone and just kept her head focused on the floor. The order came back and she was told how much it came to. As luck would have it, Judy had given her just enough to pay for everything. she gathered up the dinner and carried it all back to the car. As she walked, unable to hold her skirt down, the flaps kept sliding back and forth, exposing her. Then just as she was getting close to the car, a gust of wind blew her skirt straight up. she was totally naked for a moment, and couldn't pull it down with her hands full. Finally, she arrived back at the car, and got in. Judy said, "Very good, susie slut, now let's get home to wait for the Captain. I want and need his cock so much. God, I'm horny." The rest of the ride home was without incident and soon, sue found herself in the safe confines of her house. Well, at least safe from the outside world. she would never be safe from Judy and the Captain. The Captain arrived shortly after that and they all ate. They even let sue eat with them like a normal person, but would not allow her to talk. As they ate, the two of them talked about how much they wanted to fuck and in what positions they would like to try. Judy said, "I've always wanted to be fucked and eaten at the same time. I hear it is quite a turn on and can make a girl cum so much. Think we can do that Captain?" "I do believe we can Judy, that is if you don't mind our little asian cunt eating you while I fuck you," the Captain replied. sue just sat quietly, not wanting to anger either of them, but definitely didn't want to eat that bitch's cunt while he fucked her. They finished their meal and both of them escorted sue to her bedroom. They made her lay on the bed, then tied her hands to the headboard, bringing them up tight and over her head. They didn't spread her legs this time, since they wanted her to be able to wiggle around some. Judy and the Captain stripped naked while sue watched and Judy climbed over her bound body, resting her hot snatch right on sue's mouth. "Lick me, bitch," said Judy, "make me wet for my lover." sue had no choice, except to stick her tongue out and lick along Judy's cunt lips and up to her clit. Judy was getting wet and juicy and sue hated the taste of her. Then Judy bent forward, holding on to the headboard, but leaving her pussy on sue's mouth. sue felt the Captain getting on the bed and then felt him getting his cock up close to the cunt she had to lick. Next, she felt Judy's cunt open up and his cock enter her. He shoved it all the way in and his balls rested on sue's chin. Judy gasped, "Keep licking, susie slut, while this big man fucks me. i want to feel both of you at the same time." sue continued licking her pussy and the Captain started fucking her. In and out, in and out, went his hard cock, and each time he rammed it into Judy's cunt, sue felt his balls slap her chin. He lasted quite a long time and Judy was cumming almost non-stop. "AAAAAAAGGGGGGGHHHHHHHH, LLLLLLLLLIIIIIIIIIICCCCCCCCCKKKKKKKK IIIIIIIIIITTTTTTTTT,FFFFFFFUUUUUUUUCCCCCKKKKKKK IIIIIIITTTTTTTTTT,OOOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHHHHH!" she kept screaming. The Captain was really enjoying this and soon, he was tensing up. sue could tell he was about to cum and wished she had his cock up her cunt instead of this other bitch's. Then suddenly, he shot his load deep into Judy's hot pussy. "AAAAAAAAAAGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHHHHH!" he yelled as he did. They lay still for a moment and then the Captain pulled out and Judy sat up. Her cunt was still twitching as his cum started running back out of her into sue's mouth. "Suck it all out, my little susie slut, and don't you dare miss any." said the Captain. Judy added, "Make sure you suck hard, bitch, because I want to fuck him again when you are done." Judy was still cumming from sue's mouth when the Captain said, "OK, my love, turn over so I can fuck you again." Judy did as she was told and just lay down on top of sue, her ass right on sue's cunt and the rest of her body covering the little asian. She spread her legs and said, "Come on, Captain, let's fuck on the whore." The Captain climbed on and their combined weight almost crushed little sue. They fucked like animals on top of her and when they came together, sue almost lost it, but there just wasn't enough friction to get her off. Once they had finished this time, they decided that was enough and Judy squatted over sue's pubic area and squeezed her pussy muscles to make his cum flow from her. Then, they tied sue's feet to the bottom bedpost. As they were ready to leave, Judy reached into sue's hole and pulled her phone out. She plugged in the charging unit and shoved it hard back into sue's pussy. As they left sue's bedroom, Judy said, "Good night, little slut, see you in the morning."
SPREAD 'EM part 8 sue lee didn't sleep to well again. she couldn't get comfortable the way she was bound, and the cum and pussy juice was drying on her body. It made her itch and she couldn't scratch. Besides, her little cunt was throbbing, wanting relief. And, she couldn't even play with it. How bad she needed to get fucked! But, she did finally drift off and was sleeping fairly well when suddenly. her cunt began to vibrate from within. "bbbbbbbbbzzzzzzzz,bbbbbbbbzzzzzzzzzz,bbbbbbbbbbbzzzzzzzzzzzzzz." Her phone was ringing and she couldn't get to it. Opening her eyes, she was looking straight at Judy. "Rise and shine, susie slut, busy day today, you know." said Judy, as she began to untie the captured slut. Once she had untied sue, she allowed her to stretch her arms and legs before she told her to get the phone unplugged from the charger and into the bathroom. "You need to get cleaned up. You smell like old sex," said Judy. sue quickly pulled her phone out, unplugged it and tried to lay it on her dresser. But, just as she let it go, Judy slapped her ass and gave her a strange glaring look of disapproval. Reluctantly, sue picked it back up and stuffed it inside her wet hole. Judy took her to the bathroom and allowed her to pee, but then as soon as she was done, told her to get into the shower. sue stepped in and Judy turned the water on. "AAAAAAGGGGGGGHHHHHHHH, cold!" yelled sue. Judy just laughed and said, "I know that, now wash that nasty little ass and make it quick. We have to get to work!" sue was shocked by the cold water and turned the hot water on as Judy left the room. That was better and she was washing her body, with her back to the door. she had gotten down to her legs and was bending slightly at the waist when suddenly, "SMACK", as Judy whipped her ass with a wet towel. sue jumped and screamed. Judy said, "I told you to clean up, not to turn the hot water on. You will pay for that later!" And she reached in to turn off the hot water. sue hurried through the rest of her shower and got out. But there were no towels. Judy handed her the clothes she had to wear and said, "Get dressed, cunt." sue dressed quickly, allowing the clothes to dry her body. she had been given her uniform skirt and blouse, all pressed with her badge and everything on it. This was strange thought sue, but she wasn't going to argue. At least she was covered. They drove to the station in silence and when they arrived, Judy parked right up next to the building, got out and walked away. sue followed her and went to her desk to find the problems from the night before. Nothing big going on and then she accompanied the Captain into the briefing room. Her assignment for the day was going on patrol and checking on the junior officers. she could handle that, and it got her away from the station and those two evil people. At least she could have some form of dignity today. But, before she was allowed to leave, the captain took her into his office and said, "Show Me!" she knew it was to good to be true about them leaving her alone. she quickly stripped naked and got in the normal position, with her hands on his desk, ass out and legs spread. The captain played with her pussy a little and rubbed her ass. Then, he went back to her pussy and stuck his finger in, saying, "My cunt and only mine, right, sergeant!" "Yes Sir," she replied. He then told her to get dressed and get out. sue lee left the station quickly and got into her car. But she had to return to get the keys from Judy, since she was not allowed to have them any longer. she walked to Judy's desk and said, "Ma'am, may I please get my keys so I can go on patrol today?" Judy got her keys out and handed them to her and said, "No problem sgt. lee. I hope you get lots of arrests today. Have a good time." sue walked away, unsure about the niceness of Judy, but was grateful that she was not going to be near her today. Getting back to her car, she got in, did the normal checks and pulled out of the lot. she didn't get very far when she pulled into a quiet lot and stopped. Reaching under her uniform skirt she pulled the phone out of her pussy. she could still hear it if it rang and they wouldn't know she had taken it out. she was always so humiliated from having it there, never knowing when it would ring. Then she headed out to the highway and to her favorite spot to catch speeders. she was going to have some fun today. she always enjoyed stopping people for speeding and missed it since she had become a sergeant. But things would be different today. she would get lots of them and prove to the Captain that she could still do her job. Maybe he would end this silly game of his. sue set up and adjusted the radar unit to catch the on coming traffic. And it wasn't long before she locked onto a speeder. she turned her lights on and went after the car. Once it had pulled over, she pulled in behind it and got out. she walked to the car and said, "Drivers license and registration please." The young girl in the car looked scared as she handed the documents to the officer. "Kind of in a hurry aren't you?" said sue to the speeder. "I'm sorry," said the girl, "but I was running late and didn't realize how fast I was going. Am I getting a ticket?" "Yes, you are," sue told her, "Just sit right there while I write it and don't move." she went back to write the ticket. When she was done, she handed the girl all her documents and ticket and explained about appearing in court. Then she let the young girl go. sue was enjoying this, being out alone again, catching speeders and slowing them down. she really hated people who went faster than the posted speed. Setting back up to catch others, she thought back on her career and the things that happened to her just recently. Thinking of these things, for some unknown reason, made her pussy tingle. she wanted to get fucked so much now. she even rubbed her cunt a little while she was waiting to catch another speeder. It wasn't long and she locked another one in. Taking care of her duties, she stopped the car and issued the ticket. There were at least five more she stopped, writing tickets on all of them. But it was the very next one that caused some problems. The car came flying past her and she took off after it. The car didn't pull over right away, but made a turn into a deserted street, before stopping. sue pulled up behind it and got out, using caution as she approached the car. Inside was a very good looking middle-aged gentleman. sue noticed his looks right away, and for that same unknown reason, her cunt began to get juicy. she would have a hard time writing this ticket. As she reached the driver's door, she said, "Drivers license and registration." The man inside fumbled around and finally produced his documents and handed them to her. He said, "OK, I was speeding, so hurry up and write the ticket so I can get out of here." sue didn't care for his tone nor arrogance, so she said, "Get out of the car!" He laughed and got out. Once he was out, she said, "To the back of your car and hands on the trunk." she wasn't going to take this guy's shit, and would show him who was the boss. Laughing, the man walked around the car and leaned over saying, "OK, I'll humor the little cop, but you better hurry. I'm late." Once she got up behind him, she held him down with a hand in the middle of his back and said, "Spread em!" Then, she took her feet and assisted in getting his legs spread. she began a search of his body to make sure he didn't have any concealed weapons. she ran her hands around his back and under his arms, then down to his hips. But once she reached the man's crotch, she hesitated as she felt his manhood in his pants. she actually grabbed hold of it, just to make sure it wasn't a weapon. He noticed she held her hand on his cock longer than he thought she should and he said, "Find something interesting in there, officer?" "No, I didn't," she shot back and continued her search. But her cunt was wanting her hand back on his cock. And instead of letting her mind think for her, she allowed her cunt to do the leading. she gradually went back to his crotch and held his cock in her hand. she actually started playing with it through his pants. He felt her hand rubbing his cock, and said, "Look lady, if you want to play with it, I'll pull it out for you. If not, let me go." "Just be quiet," said sue. "i'm checking for weapons." He replied back saying, "Do you want that thing in my pants. I'll be glad to let you have it." "NO!" she shouted, but then in a quieter voice, said, "yes, please." "That's what I thought!" said the man, "So why don't you just turn around and put your hands on the hood of your car while I get it out." sue did what he said and just leaned over her car. He got up, turned around, and said, "OK, now you spread em!" sue obeyed and spread her legs wide. He reached out and grabbed her loose skirt, pulling it up and over her back. He noticed right away she didn't have panties on and said, "Oh, must have been expecting something like this, already naked and ready." He ran his fingers up her pussy lips and flicked the little nub. she moaned and said, "Please, please fuck me now. I need your hard cock in me, please." He laughed at the thought of getting stopped for speeding and winding up getting fucked by the cop, who is begging for it. But he would oblige the little whore and fuck her good. Releasing his hard cock from his pants, he stepped up behind her and drove it home all at once. He didn't even hesitate to let her get the feel of it. But, that's what sue needed. To be taken forcefully. she wanted it rough. As soon as he was deeply imbedded inside her pussy, sue had her first orgasm. "MMMMMMM,OOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHH,AAAAAAAAAGGGGGHHHHHHH!" she moaned as he started fucking her, sliding almost all the way out and then back to his balls in her hot juicy cunt. The first one was small compared to the many orgasms that followed. she was continually cumming. He was such a good fuck that she could ride his cock all day long. sue started to assist his fucking action by pushing back into him. Their thrusts met each other and soon they were in rhythm together, fucking in and out, pushing back and forth. her cunt was gripping him like it never wanted him to leave the warm tight hole. Luckily he had pulled down this deserted street, because if they had been out on the main road, everyone driving by would have had quite a show to watch as the man stopped for speeding was fucking a female cop. Wouldn't everyone at the station get a laugh if they could see the sergeant now. They continued fucking for the next fifteen minutes, both of them enjoying the ride. sue could tell he was getting close to cumming in her hot cunt and she wanted it. she was almost to the point of no return herself, and this was going to be a big one. she felt his cock begin to expand and knew it was time. Then, suddenly, one big final thrust and, "AAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHHHHHHH,OOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOHHHHH HHHHHHHHHHHHH, HHHHHHHHHHOOOOOOOOOTTTTTTTTTTTTTTT,MMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMM,AAAAAAAAAAAAAAGGGGGGGG GGGGGGGGG." as both of them came together. They rested for just a short time, and when he pulled out, sue said, "You can't put that back in your pants yet. Let sgt. lee clean it for you." And she dropped to her knees in front of him, took his cock in her mouth and sucked all the juice and cum from his softening cock. Once she had it shiny clean, she helped him put it back and then stood before him. "May I go now?" asked the man. He picked up his documents that she had let fall on the hood of her car while he fucked her. "Yes, but don't speed any more. If I catch you again, i'll have to give you a ticket or maybe just lock you up and rape you," she said. They both laughed and he got into his car and drove away, leaving sue standing there alone, with his cum running down her legs. she needed to get cleaned up and get back to the station, so she could do her reports. sue got back to her car on wobbly legs and drove to the nearest service station to use the rest room to clean up. she washed her face and cleaned up her pussy as best she could. she didn't know if the Captain or Judy would be playing with her or not, but didn't want to take any chances. Once she was clean, she drove around some more, dreaming of what she just did. Before the Captain had made her his slave, she never would have dreamed of doing that. she never would have just fucked a perfect stranger, especially one that she had stopped for speeding. she began to feel guilty about it now. A good cop doesn't do those things. But the Captain had denied her for too long and she needed just what she had got. A good fuck. Finally she drove back to the station. she got out with confidence and walked into the building, heading straight for her desk. Just as she sat down, Judy walked up to her and said, "Captain wants you in his office right now and he said show him!" sue got up, walked to his office and when she went in, he wasn't there. she knew he would be back soon and she had better be naked and waiting for him. So, she began to take her clothes off and neatly fold them in the chair beside his desk. she thought back to her last stop as she leaned over the desk, resting her hands at the corners and spreading her legs wide. That's how the Captain wanted to see her when he walked in. she was there, bent over and fully exposed when the door opened. she could tell he wasn't alone. Judy was with him and they just ignored her for a short time. Then, finally the Captain came around to face her. He sat down behind his desk and looked at her face to face. Judy stayed behind her and sue didn't know what they were up to. The Captain asked, "So, sgt. lee, did you enjoy yourself on the road today? Did you get lots of stops? I do hope you were polite to all of them!" sue answered his questions and she hoped she had remembered to say sir and ma'am to everyone. Then the Captain said, "But, we will find out soon enough when I replay the video from your car!" sue looked pale and started turning white. she had forgot about the video cameras in the cars. It would show everything, since she had not turned it off when she was fucking that guy. she knew she was in trouble. As she was thinking about that, he said, "And, where is your phone? I know it's not where it should be and you didn't answer it either. So, cunt, where did you put it?" sue knew she would be in big trouble now!
SPREAD 'EM part 9 "SSSiiiiirrrr, it was bothering me and i took it out, but forgot to put it back, i'm sorry, please forgive me." cried sue, knowing that it may not work. "That's bullshit," said Judy, "I think she just ignored what you told her to do. And I'll bet she wasn't good on the road either. How many people did you say Sir and Ma'am to, susie slut?" "i i i i i i i i ddddooonnn't know, Ma'am. Maybe i forgot." sue cried some more. "Well, guess we'll just have to see, since I have already got the tape with me. And your phone. Judy, put it back in its holder for me," said the Captain. With that, Judy took the phone and shoved it very hard into sue's cunt. She shoved it up as far as she could get it. When she finished getting the phone in, she grabbed sue's clit with her fingernails and pinched. "OOOOOOOOOOWWWWWWWWWW, it hurts," cried sue. "Good," said Judy, "maybe next time you'll leave it where it belongs." and then she let her go. sue almost pissed all over herself when she did that, but managed to hold it in. she hoped they would let her go soon and not watch that tape. she didn't want them to see her fucking that guy. And she also knew that if they watched it, they would see she wasn't that nice to people either. The Captain said, "Judy, put the tape in the VCR and let's see what this stupid little cunt did today." Judy put the tape in and turned it on along with the TV that the Captain had on the wall. sue couldn't see it from the position she was in, but knew that once they saw it, she would be hurt. The screen filled up and the sound came on. The first traffic stop was being watched by the two and sue heard Judy say, "See, she didn't even say Ma'am to that young girl. How does she expect us to make the public feel safe." The Captain said, "Judy, write down all the infractions we see, then later on, we will decide what punishment she deserves." They continued watching the video, making notes of when she didn't say Sir or Ma'am, and when she was rude to the people she stopped. The list was adding up and sue took mental notes of everything they mentioned. she just knew that later on, she was going to be in trouble. Then they came to the last traffic stop. Suddenly the Captain put the video on pause and said, "What the fuck are you doing to that guy? Since when do we make someone get out of their car and frisk them on a traffic stop?" sue couldn't talk. All she did was cry, knowing that once they saw the rest of it, she was going to get it bad. He restarted the tape and Judy said, "Look at the little whore. she's jerking that guy off through his pants. Such poor manners for a fucking sergeant." Just then, she heard the man ask if she wanted something and knew they would soon see her bent over the hood taking his cock up her cunt. she cried even more now. "What the fuck is this!" yelled the Captain. "You are fucking this guy, even after I said that the cunt belonged to me and only me! No one fucks that cunt without my permission, but you are just giving it to him." "i i i i i i i i i, wwwaaasss hhhhoooorrrrnnnyyy and ccoouullldnn'tt resist Sir," she cried out, "please forgive me. i i i i i 'mmmmmm just a slut, and don't know any better." They finished watching the tape of her fucking the guy and then of her sucking his cock clean. The machine was shut off and then there was silence. But only for a short time. "Well, I guess we will have to fix it so no one gets into that cunt again without my knowledge!" stated the Captain. Now sue began to shake. What would he do to fix it so no one else fucked her? she wanted to get up and run. she wanted to go back to china and live a poor miserable life. she wanted to just crawl inside herself and hide. "I think you need to learn that your cunt is mine. Not even you can say it is yours any longer. It is my cunt and noone else's." said the Captain. Then to Judy he said, "Take this clamp and close up that fuck hole." He handed her one of those large black clamps used to hold papers. He knew it would hurt her, but she had to learn. Judy took the clamp and reached between sue's legs, pushing the little asian's cunt lips together and then put the clamp on them. This held her pussy lips together and nothing could get in or out. "AAAAAAAAGGGGGGHHHHHH, NNNNNNNNOOOOOOOOO, HHHHHUUUUURRRRTTTTSSSSS!" cried the little asian slut as soon as it was in place. "Now, we have about another hour to work, so get your ass back to your desk and get busy. And don't even think about taking that off your pussy," the Captain told her. sue stood up and reached for her clothes, but they were gone. she frantically looked around, but didn't see them any place. "Sir, where are my clothes? I need to get dressed, please." "Judy put them away for you. I don't see where you need clothes. After all, you are giving my cunt away to strangers, so what difference does it make who sees you naked," said the Captain. "Pppppllllleeeeaaasseeee Sir, let me dress so the others don't see me, please," she begged. Judy said, "Maybe we should allow her something to wear, Sir. After all, we are in the station and you never know who might walk in." "OK, give her something to put on, but not much," he said as he walked out of the room, disgusted with the little bitch. Judy laughed and handed sue a blouse to put on. It was thin, but long enough to just cover her little ass and cunt. She said, "Put this on and get out. And don't complain about it, or you will go out naked." sue was grateful for the little bit she could put on and quickly got her body covered. Even though it wasn't much, she was happy to have it. Then she shyly walked out the door and almost ran to her desk. she sat down and pulled her chair up as far as she could get it and since she didn't want any more trouble, she spread her legs, just as she had been instructed. The Captain returned to his office, and left the door open. He looked out at his slut and saw she did what she was supposed to, but all he could see was that big clamp holding her cunt lips together. sue could feel his stares and blushed. The clamp on her pussy was hurting her, but she knew it had to stay. So she just put up with the pain and got her work done. Lucky for her, there wasn't much to do. The last hour seemed to go by rather quickly for sue and when Judy stopped by her desk, she said, "OK, susie slut, time to quit for the day. I think the Captain wants to take us to dinner tonight, so we have to go home and get ready." "Yyyyeesssss, Ma'am," answered sue, and got up, trying her best to keep the blouse down around her ass. They walked together out of the building and started to go to her car. But it had been moved. sue was going to have to walk across the large parking lot again, knowing that with the wind blowing her blouse would raise it above her waist and show everything. About half way through the parking lot, Judy said, "Stop right there, slut!" sue stopped and Judy reached to her blouse and unbuttoned the bottom buttons. This allowed her cunt to be out in the open with the clamp still hanging from her lips. sue begged, "Please, don't do this to me. i am showing everything, please." Judy just laughed and returned to sue's blouse and unbuttoned the rest of them, and said, "Well, since you want to show everything, I guess you will now. And for not calling my name properly, we'll just take the blouse off. Now, do it!" sue looked at her in shock, with wide glassy eyes, tears forming in them and starting to run down her cheeks. But she didn't move. "I said take it off cunt, or I'll rip it off!" yelled Judy. It was loud enough for anyone around to hear, which would have brought attention to them. And it looked like it did as a couple other cops stopped to watch. sue, being scared, reached up and pulled the blouse from her body. she stood naked in the parking lot, showing everything she had. she was turning a bright red and she tried to cover up with her hands. Noticing this, Judy said, "Put your hands on top of your head and walk to the car. Be sure to wiggle that cute little asian ass, too." Totally embarrassed, sue put her hands on her head and walked as fast as she could to her car. Judy was following her, watching her ass wiggle and also noticed sue had quite an audience now. She loved this and would really fuck the Captain good tonight. Getting to the car, Judy unlocked the doors and allowed sue to get in. But once she was in, Judy said, "Up on your hands and knees bitch, and stick your ass toward the window." sue did as she was told, knowing her ass and cunt would be seen in the window, but at least her face wouldn't be seen. Judy had sue put her face in Judy's lap and said, "OK, cunt face, lick me all the way home." Crying, sue began her hated task, licking Judy's cunt as Judy drove away, circling the parking lot three times before heading onto the highway. She drove around for awhile, allowing sue's ass to be seen by as many people as she could. Then she pulled into sue's driveway, and told sue to get out. Once she was out, standing by the car, Judy said, "Now, get down on your hands and knees and crawl to the door, like a nice little pet." sue knew better than to argue with this bitch, so she got down like a puppy dog and crawled naked to her front door. she couldn't let herself in, since Judy was now the keeper of all her keys. she got to the front door and Judy unlocked it, letting herself in. She told sue, "Now, sit up pretty and beg to come in. When I think you have begged enough, I'll allow you into my house. But, puppies don't talk, so you better bark and whine!" Embarrassed at the situation, sue did what she had to do in order to escape any more public humiliation in front of her own house. she just hoped that none of her neighbors saw her. "Woof, woof, whine, whine" was what Judy heard as she shut the door in sue's face. She stood on the other side for a moment listening to this pitiful little cunt, and then went in to get a drink. She also went to find something nice for the little cunt to wear out to dinner. Finally, she returned to the door and sue was still yipping and whining like she was told to do. Judy opened the door and told sue to crawl in. Once inside, Judy took her into the bathroom and put her in the shower. She turned on the cold water and told sue to clean up, since she didn't want the smell of sex on her any longer. sue took the cold shower, afraid to turn on the hot water, after what happened that morning. she was shivering from the cold, but knew she couldn't get out until Judy said she could. Judy came back into the room and watched her little slut wash her body. Then she handed sue a douche bottle filled with cold water and vinegar and told her to wash out her dirty cunt. sue tried to get the nozzle in her hole, but the clamp and phone stopped it from going in. Judy reached in between sue's legs and pulled the clamp off, but didn't loosen it. She just pulled, making sue's pussy lips stretch until finally it came off. Then she told sue to take her phone out. sue reached down to her sore cunt and pulled the phone from its carrying case and handed it to Judy. Then, she put the douche bottle up to her pussy, inserted the nozzle and squeezed the bulb. she was shocked from the coldness entering her hot cunt, but squeezed until it was empty. "OK, now let it out, and fill the bottle up again." said Judy. "Then rinse the Captain's dirty little cunt." sue did as she was told and once again felt the cold water fill her hot pussy. Once she was done, Judy told her to get out and get dressed. Her clothes were lying across the toilet seat. sue looked at the clothes Judy had laid out for her. A very sheer blouse with only two buttons in the middle, and a skirt short enough that her ass cheeks would be visible if she wasn't careful. And on top of the two articles of clothing were the six-inch high heels. sue started getting dressed and had such a hard time getting the clothes on, since she had found out they were one size smaller than she would normally wear. But she did get into them and looked in the mirror. God, she looked like a fucking whore. sue went back to the bedroom where Judy sat putting on make-up. She was just finishing up and said, "susie slut, you need some make up, too. Sit down here and I'll fix it for you." Judy got out a tube of bright red lipstick and began to paint sue's lips. She put it on thick and made sure it covered all of her lips. Then, she rubbed some red rouge into her cheeks. sue looked in the mirror when Judy finished and said, "i can't go out like this! i look like a cheap whore!" Judy said, "Exactly, because that's what you are. Now, let's get going." They went to the living room where the Captain was waiting for them. He laughed when he saw sue and said, "You look just wonderful, sue. Judy, you did a great job. Now, let me explain some rules for tonight." Judy said, "Thank you, Sir, I think she will fit in just right, don't you." Again the Captain laughed and continued with the rules. "Tonight, while we are out, you are not to speak. If asked a question by anyone, I will answer for you. You will do everything we say, and will not hesitate doing it. We will order your dinner for you, and you will eat whatever we get you and do it the way we say. Understand so far?" "Yyyeess, Sir," replied sue. "You will sit where and how we say," continued the Captain, "and I expect your to show off that little bald cunt that belongs to me." Then Judy added, "And, susie slut, if you don't behave, you will be stripped naked and spanked right in public." "Now, let's go have some dinner," said the Captain, "I have reservations at the Oasis, and we can't be late." The Oasis is a nice restaurant that caters to a lot of high-up officials and police officers. And, it is usually crowded, so it is sometimes hard to find a good seat. But the Captain had a lot of influence there and could get any seat he wanted, as long as he called ahead. And he did, getting one of the best seats in the restaurant, a table up on a platform, which would give them the intended results with sue. They went out the door, got into the Captain's car, putting sue between them, with her legs apart so her pussy was open for them to play with during the drive. After driving for awhile, they finally got to the restaurant and parked the car. "Just to remind you," said Judy, "no talking, and do as we say!"
SPREAD 'EM part 10 Entering the restaurant, sue had to walk behind the two, but also had to stay close to them. The captain spoke with the headwaiter. Then the three of them were taken to the table. sue noticed that it was on a platform above the rest of the tables. And there was only one table that high up. Once they arrived at the table, the Captain told her where to sit, which was facing the main dinning area. Then he adjusted the tablecloth, so that there was nothing hanging over the front of the table, and he folded the back side of the tablecloth so that the view under the table was unobstructed from those below. sue sat where she was told, and knew that if she wasn't careful, her pussy would be quite visible to those on the main floor. she tried to keep her legs closed, but it was hard to hide anything with such a short skirt. Judy noticed that sue was trying not to show anything as she sat down beside her. she told sue, "Open those legs up susie slut, and let everyone see your little bald cunt." Not wanting to piss her off, knowing that as mean as the bitch was, she would strip her naked right there, she opened her legs slightly. sue knew that her pussy was now on display, but was afraid to close her legs up. The other two just laughed and began to talk to each other. They were sitting on either side of sue, and as they talked, it was aggravating, since they talked across her. They didn't talk about anything in particular. It was about the job, the weather, and some other people they knew. Then both reached down under the table and took one of sue's legs each and pulled. her legs were now obscenely spread wide, with her gaping hole wide open for everyone to see. The Captain said, "Leave them just like that bitch, or I'll make sure you walk out of here without your clothes." sue sat there, face turning red with shame, tears running down her cheeks, but also she felt that strange tingling sensation in her pussy. she knew it was getting wet and she would have a wet spot on her skirt before they were finished. she couldn't figure out why her pussy got so wet, when she was made to do these horrible things. The waiter got to their table and asked if they would care for a drink before dinner. sue sure would have loved to have a nice Mai Tai, but knew she couldn't ask for it. The Captain ordered for Judy and himself, then said, "And bring a beer for this one." sue hated beer and the Captain knew it. she started to say something, but thought better, since they had both warned her about talking. So she just sat there in silence. Judy leaned over and whispered into her ear, saying, "Put your hands behind your back, slut. I want them palm to palm in the middle of your back. And don't move them unless we say to. Just pretend they are handcuffed there." sue obeyed and sat there, hands behind her, knowing in this position her little tits pushed out even more through the tight blouse she had on. The Captain then excused himself to go talk to the waiter, and returned with a bowl in his hands. He set it in front of sue, then sat back down and continued talking with Judy. This time they talked about sex and how horny both of them were. They both said that as soon as dinner was done, they would head straight to sue's house and fuck. The waiter came back with the drinks, and sat them down in front of everyone. The Captain and Judy both started drinking, but sue didn't know what to do with her beer. Of course, she didn't really want it anyway, so it was OK with her to just let it sit there. Then the Captain picked the beer up and poured it into the bowl he had placed in front of her. Once the bottle was empty he said, "OK, sue, drink up." sue just sat there looking at him, wondering how she was supposed to drink it since she couldn't use her hands and it was in a bowl. The Captain leaned over to her ear and said, "I said drink up, cunt. Now put your fucking head down and lap it up like a good little puppy." sue was shocked and horrified at the thought of being made to do such a humiliating thing in front of all the people in the restaurant. she just sat there and stared at the Captain. That is until Judy reached over and undid a button from her blouse. This one was right at her tits. Then, Judy opened her blouse a little more and sue knew most of her little tits were out in the open. Then Judy said, "Unless you want me to open it all the way, I suggest you do as the Captain said." sue began to cry, as she lowered her head to take a drink from the bowl. she lapped up a little beer and then sat back up, with the liquid running down her chin and onto her sheer blouse. she didn't want to do this, but between these two horrible people, she knew they would do something worse if she didn't obey. So once again, she leaned over and lapped up some more beer. After drinking about half of the beer, she had to pee. Since Judy had not allowed her to use the bathroom before they left, she really needed piss now. sue didn't know what to do about it, since she was not allowed to talk, but she started cramping from the need to relieve her self. she took a chance and spoke to the Captain. "Sir, may your slut go to the bathroom. she really needs to pee." "Sure you can," said the Captain, "follow me." He got up from his chair and took sue by the hand to drag her along. As he was leaving, he said, "We'll be right back Judy, please order another round of drinks for us." The Captain led sue around the restaurant and past the bar to the bathrooms. Once they arrived there, he opened the door to the men's room and took her inside. Then he said, "OK, susie slut, if you have to pee, you'll do it here, in the urinal!" "BBBUUTTT, sir," sue complained, "I can't pee in a urinal. Only men do that!" He told her, "You either piss in the urinal, or you'll be stripped naked right here and then you'll have to walk back to the table without pissing." sue didn't know what or how to pee like a man, so the Captain helped her. He pushed her up to the urinal and said, "Now, lift your skirt and piss!" she reluctantly raised her skirt up and stepped over the urinal. As she started pissing, someone opened the door and walked in. sue needed to pee so bad, she couldn't stop the flow. The man stepped right up next to her and pulled his cock out to piss. Then he realized that there was a female next to him. He said, "What the fuck is this? Don't you know the difference between the men's and women's room?" sue was turning bright red, and unable to answer the man standing next to her. The Captain was chuckling at this scene, and said, "No, she doesn't know any better, but I am sure she'll be glad to assist you when she is finished." Finally, sue finished and started to back away, but the Captain stopped her. He said to her, "Leave your skirt up, and get on your knees." she obeyed his command, but didn't want to. she was now on her knees in the men's room, with a complete stranger beside her, his cock out and pissing in the urinal. she was really afraid of what would happen next. The man finished pissing and turned toward her and the Captain said, "OK, now suck his cock for him, cunt." "Pppppplllleeeaaaassseee sir," cried sue, "i don't know him." "So what? you didn't know that guy you fucked either, did you! Now suck it!" ordered the Captain, "unless you want to walk out of here naked!" Afraid that he would strip her of everything, sue took the man's cock in her hands and then in her mouth. He was quite large and she had a difficult time getting it in. But, the Captain helped her by pushing the back of her head, forcing more of his cock down her throat. she sucked as best she could, having a big mouthful. sucking on this cock in a public restroom made her feel so cheap and used, but she continued until he shot a huge load of cum down her throat. The Captain saw him start to cum and grabbed her by the hair, jerking her head back. The last few shots landed on her face and dripped down onto her half-open blouse. sue was crying when the man laughed, put his softening cock away and zipped up. He said, "Thank you!" and walked out of the bathroom. sue was allowed to get up and pull her skirt down to cover her nakedness and the Captain led her back out of the bathroom to the table, the man's cum still dripping from her face. she was crying and so ashamed of what she was made to do. she walked with her head down and followed the Captain. Getting back to the table, they sat down. sue was shaking, afraid of what might happen next. she didn't put her hands behind her back like she had been instructed to do earlier. she was so embarrassed and shook up from what just happened to her, she just forgot. Judy said, "Stand back up, susie!" she did as she was told and stood in front of Judy. Then to her surprise, Judy reached over and pulled the top of her skirt up, which made the bottom of it raise up to just below her pussy. If she was to walk, her pussy would show from under it. "Now, sit back down and put your fucking hands behind your back. Forget one more time and the skirt comes off," ordered Judy. As sue sat down, she put her hands behind her and as she looked down, she saw that the skirt hid nothing. It had gone up even more now and her little bald cunt was in plain view. she sat there in silence and cried. The Captain said to her, "Since we are having you out for dinner, I expect you to drink up. We got you a fresh beer. Now, start drinking, cunt." Crying, sue lowered her head to the bowl on the table and started licking up the nasty tasting beer. she was like this when the waiter came back, and said, "Are you ready to order?" sue pulled her head back up, embarrassed because he saw her drinking like some animal. her face was so red, dripping with beer, and she cried. The Captain said, "Yes we are. Sue, finish your beer while I order." she started to refuse, but a stern look from Judy made her lower her face back to the bowl and drink. she must have looked quite stupid doing this, but what could she do. Refuse and they would take her clothes away and then she would be showing everything. Not that she wasn't already, but at least she did have something on. The Captain order for all of them. Steaks, baked potatoes, and insisted they have bread sticks with their meals. Once the waiter took the orders, he left. sue finished up her bowl of beer and was feeling a little tipsy now. she wasn't a drinker and didn't drink beer at all. The way she had to drink it was also making her head spin. she thought she was getting drunk and hoped that with food, that uneasy feeling in her stomach would go away. she sat in silence, hoping they wouldn't make her drink another one. she listened to them talk again until the waiter returned with their meals. After placing them on the table, he left again. That's when Judy told sue what she had to do. She said, "OK, you may use your hands to eat with, and we'll be nice enough to let you use the silverware. But I want you to take one of those bread sticks, reach down and put it in your pussy. After every third mouthful of food you take, you will reach down into your hot little cunt, break off a piece of bread and eat it." sue was in total shock now. Everyone would see her doing this and the bread would be so wet and soggy from her wetness in her pussy. she was really juicy now. Every time they gave her something new to do, she got that much wetter. Maybe she was a real slut and always had been. But until now, it never came out in her. Reluctantly, she took the bread stick and put her hands under the table. she rubbed it up and down her wet slit to start with, trying to prolong the dirty deed she had to do. The Captain noticed she was taking a long time and said, "Put it in, susie, or I will!" Gulping, she began to feed her pussy the bread stick, slowly, since it was rough on her lips and as it got in farther, it was feeling even rougher. she was so humiliated doing this, knowing that from under the table, others were watching her do it. she got most of it in and stopped. Hoping that it was far enough, she put her hands back on the table and was going to eat. she was quite hungry. However, Judy looked over to see if it was all the way in and said, "Look cunt, that stick better be all the way in your cunt by the time I count to five, or you'll have to put the next one up your ass!" sue jumped and brought her hands back to her cunt and began pushing some more as Judy said, "One!" she didn't want to have to put anything up her ass, especially a bread stick in a public restaurant. "Two!" said Judy and sue pushed it all the way in her pussy. her lips closed over the end of it and it was totally out of sight now. she felt so full, but was also sore. she had never had anything that long in her cunt before and it felt like it had hit bottom. Then she put her hands back on the table, wanting to eat and get this over with quickly. she was shaking and crying when she was told to begin eating. sue took a mouthful of potato while she cut her steak. Then it was a piece of the steak and some veggies. she was hoping they weren't counting how many time she put something in her mouth and started to take another bite of steak, but when she looked at Judy, she was glaring at her, hoping that she would forget to get her bread. sue put her fork and knife down, then reached under the table to her cunt. she reached into her pussy and found the soggy bread. she pulled it out a little and broke off a small piece. Then she ate it, before continuing with the rest of her meal. Once she took three more bites of food, she reached down and took another small piece of the bread from her cunt and ate it. she was going to take small bites all through the meal, until the Captain said, "You better start taking bigger bites than that and also hurry up with your meal. Because when Judy and I have finished, whatever is left on your plate will also go in your pussy with the bread. Then, you can eat it for breakfast tomorrow morning." Noticing that they were both about half way done and she was just barely starting, she began to eat faster. she didn't want to have to stuff her pussy full of food and if he meant what he said, she would have to leave it in her all night. she took three mouthfuls of food and then took bigger chunks of bread from her pussy. It was getting really soggy now and she hoped she would be able to get it all by the time she finished her meal. The bread was crumbling in her pussy and it became more difficult to get it out, but she worked at it until finally, she had gotten every bit out of herself and ate it. Just as she finished her last bite of food, she saw that the other two had also just finished. she was grateful for that, since she didn't think she would have to put anything else in her cunt tonight. The waiter came back to the table to see if they wanted some dessert and the Captain said that he would like a bowl of ice cram. Judy said she wanted some too, and then said that sue also wanted a bowl. Then the Captain stood up and whispered into the waiter's ear. The waiter grinned and said he would be right back. He returned with three bowls of ice cream and set them down, but he didn't leave. The Captain said, "sue, take the bowl of ice cream and sit it in your lap. Then, using your hands, put all of it in your pussy. And make sure that the waiter will be able to watch you doing it." "Bbbbbuuuuutttttt, Sssiiiiirr," she cried, "It will be cold and sticky. PPPPPLLLLEEEAAASSSEEE don't make me! Judy heard this and said, "Stand up bitch!" sue was startled and then realized that she had spoken when she was told not to. she knew she would pay for it. Slowly she stood up and Judy pulled her close to her. Then, she unbuttoned the skirt and let it fall to the floor, leaving sue naked from the waist down. she tried to cover herself from all the looks she was getting, but her hands were slapped away. "Now, sit down and do what you were told," Judy ordered. Crying more now, sue took the ice cream bowl, sat it in her lap and started to push it inside her hot hole. It was cold and sticky, making her pussy pucker. Finally she got it all in and then just sat there as it melted and ran out of her. The Captain and Judy had finished their dessert and the Captain said, "OK, susie, my slut, you need to give the waiter a nice tip. Follow him into the back room and suck his cock. But don't allow him to cum in your mouth. When he cums, make sure you aim his cock at your face. Don't wipe it off afterwards either. We'll wait for you in the car." sue, feeling very embarrassed, started to pick up her skirt, but Judy beat her to it. "You won't need this anymore tonight, susie, just go as you are and take care of the tip." Very cautiously, sue got up and followed the waiter. she knew all eyes were on her now, since she was half-naked and everyone could see her naked ass and bald cunt. They entered the back room and the waiter pulled his cock out. Sue, wanting to get this over with, got down on her knees and started sucking him. It wasn't too long before she could feel him starting to cum and she pulled his cock out of her mouth and finished him off with her hands. Aiming it straight at her face, he shot his load all over her. She quickly got up and ran out of the room, through the restaurant to the parking lot. she found the car and got in. The Captain and Judy just laughed as they drove away.
SPREAD 'EM part 11 They drove straight back to sue's house after dinner. They had a lot planned for the night and the next day. sue was made to sit on her skirt for the ride home, so the ice cream that leaked out of her pussy wouldn't get on the Captains's seat. she knew the skirt would probably be ruined, but she didn't care about that, since she didn't like it as short as it was. Arriving home, they took sue inside and ran her a tub of ice cold water. They told her to get cleaned up and to douche with the cold water and vinegar they had prepared for her. she carefully got into the tub, feeling her body tighten from the cold water. she finally managed to get her body all the way in and started washing quickly so she could get back out. she hated being in the cold water like this and just wanted out. But since the Captain noticed her trying to hurry, he said, "Now, just stay there until we come back for you. And you had better be clean inside and out when we return." They left their little asian slut to bathe and cleanse herself. she was shivering from the cold water, and knew she would have to withstand even more when she douched herself. sue washed her body, rubbing hard, trying to get her body to warm up, but it was hard to do since the water felt as if they had put ice in it. Finally she got her body clean and reached for the douche bottle. Slowly she inserted the nozzle into her pussy and squeezed. she almost went into shock as she felt the water flow into her. Now she knew they had put ice into the bottle and it was freezing her on the inside, just as the water in the tub was doing on the outside. she had just finished douching when the two walked back into the bathroom. "OK, slut, get out and get into the bedroom. Don't bother drying off either," said the Captain. she was shivering and her teeth were chattering from the cold water and the cool air from the air conditioner made her shake even more. "Judy," said the Captain, "take her into her new room and fix her for the night. Then come back in here so we can fuck in your new bed." sue looked puzzled about what he was saying and Judy explained as she pushed her out of the bedroom and down the hall to the little guest room. She told sue, "I am moving all of my things over here tomorrow and this will now be my house. Your old room will be mine and you get the little guest room. From now on, I am in charge of the house and everything that goes on in it. The only thing you will do is pay the bills, clean and cook," she laughed as she pushed sue onto the little bed in the guest room. "Lay on your belly, cunt, and don't move unless I say to," ordered Judy. "Have to get you ready for bed, so I can fuck the Captain." sue started to cry from what she was hearing. she was losing everything she had worked so hard to get. her life, her house, everything. And she was going to be a maid for that fucking whore bitch. Judy started by forcing sue's mouth open by holding her nose so she couldn't breath unless she opened her mouth. As soon as she gasped for air, Judy stuffed a ball gag into it and secured it in place around her head. sue started to grab it, but Judy was quick and soon her hands were cuffed behind her back. she couldn't do anything now except cry. Next, Judy tied a rope to each of sue's ankles, but just left them there. She got out a spreader bar about three feet long and attached it to the little asian slut's knees, spreading her open, exposing her little cunt and ass. That's when things got very uncomfortable for sue. Judy took the ropes attached to her ankles and threaded them up through the handcuffs, then back to her ankles. She then started pulling the ropes. When she did this, sue's legs started moving upwards toward her head. The more Judy pulled on the ropes, the more sue's body bent. But it was bending backwards. Finally, Judy was happy with the way sue looked and tied off the ropes to her ankles. sue was on her belly, and her hands were even with her feet. she was bent like a bow in a hog-tie position, and her cunt and ass were out in the open. Her cunt was open from the stretching of her body, but it was really getting wet now. Once again, sue thought to herself that she must like this kind of thing, because everything they did to her made her cunt wet. It was like her cunt took over her body and no matter what she thought in her head, her cunt took priority. she was thinking with her cunt. The Captain entered the room, because he had finished his shower and began to wonder what was taking Judy so long with the slut. As he entered he laughed and said, "Very good, Judy, but she is missing something. Get me the KY and butt plug." Judy left the room, only to return shortly with the items in her hands. sue had heard what he wanted and was crying, tears running down her face. her cunt was also crying. It needed attention and was dripping with cunt juice. However, she didn't want anything in her ass. The Captain took the KY and lubricated her well-exposed little hole and slid his finger in. He commented, "Damn, this hole is really tight. We'll have to loosen it up so a cock can get into it soon." After smearing KY on the butt plug, he pushed it into her tiny brown hole. It was really tight and he had to work hard to get past the little sphincter, but finally the head of the plug went in. He pushed hard and soon, her ass was full. It was all the way in, and her muscles grabbed it, not wanting to let it out. The entire time she moaned and grunted into her gag, as tears of humiliation and pain ran down her cheeks. "There," he said, "things should be a little looser by morning." Then he left saying, "Goodnight, little slut, hope you sleep well." But before Judy left, she got sue's cell phone, plugged in the charging cord, and shoved it roughly into her cunt. Now she was uncomfortably full in both holes. Smacking sue quite hard on her naked ass, Judy said, "Sleep tight, susie slut, we have lots of work to do tomorrow." She walked from the room, turning out the light and shutting the door. sue was left in the dark, unable to move. she was still cold from the ice bath and they didn't even cover her up. Sleep didn't come easy for her. she was uncomfortable like this and she could her the moans and groans coming from her bedroom, or what used to be her bedroom. she cried some more and finally drifted off to sleep. Judy let sue sleep in, knowing she was going to be very busy with the moving of her clothes from one room to another and then having to move Judy into the house. Judy wasn't going to do anything but supervise, so sue would get a good workout today. About 8:30 a.m., sue was awakened with the "bbbbbbbzzzzzzz, bbbbbbbbbzzzzzz, bbbbbbbbzzzzzzz" in her pussy as her phone rang. she tried to move to answer it, but had forgotten she was all tied up. Once she opened her eyes, she felt the aching in her body from being hog tied last night. she didn't know what time it was or how long she had been left in this position. her ass was also sore and felt like she really had to shit. she glanced around the best she could, but didn't see any movement. But just as she turned her eyes the other way, she saw Judy standing over her with a big smile on her face. God, how she hated this woman. Judy said, "OK, my little slut, time to get busy, but first I want you to have breakfast. You'll need all the energy you can get today. you are going to be really busy." Judy got up on the bed in front of sue and began undoing the ball gag. She pulled it out of sue's sore mouth. It almost seemed there was a loud "POP" as it was removed. sue stretched her jaws to get them closed. It was hard to do, since she they had forced open and made to stay that way all night. Judy watched her for a minute and said, "OK, breakfast time, susie. I hope you like eggs, because I fixed two hard-boiled ones for you. And since I didn't want them cold, I kept them warm inside my pussy for you." sue's eyes got really big as she stared with hatred at Judy. How could she even think about putting eggs in her cunt? Especially if she thought sue was going to eat them. But Judy just continued talking. "Now, since I have been so nice to fix your breakfast and have kept it warm, I want you to be a good little slut and suck them out of me. Now, get busy, cunt!" She moved her pussy right up to sue's mouth and grabbed her by the hair, forcing her mouth over it. She said, "Suck those eggs out bitch and make sure you only get one at a time. You will chew it up once you have it in your mouth and then swallow. Once both eggs are eaten, I'll get you something to drink." What choice did she have? she was tied up, her head forced into this bitch's cunt and if she didn't start, she knew she would get punished, so she started sucking on Judy's cunt. sue licked inside, trying to feel the eggs, but couldn't, and knew Judy must have pushed them way up inside herself. So she opened her mouth and clamped it over Judy's pussy, and started sucking. she thought she must look like a little kid trying to suck a bottle, but couldn't get the milk. Judy helped her a little by using her muscles to push the eggs closer to the entrance. she wanted this little asian whore to get it all and would help her out. Especially since she had a nice surprise for her when she got both eggs down. sue sucked really hard on the cunt in her mouth and finally, the first egg "popped" out of Judy's cunt, right into her mouth. Judy pulled back a little ways as soon as she felt the egg exit her pussy. She said, "That's one, susie slut, now chew it up and swallow it. All of it!" Judy still had sue's hair in her hands, so sue had no choice but to chew the egg. Besides, she was a little hungry. Once she bit into it, and the yoke was in her mouth, the egg seemed to be very dry. she chewed and chewed until finally she was able to swallow it all. Just as she swallowed the last of the egg, Judy pulled her right back into her cunt and told her to get the other out. sue did her best, knowing if she didn't, she would get punished. And she didn't want this bitch to get the satisfaction of whipping her, so she sucked extra hard. Of course, Judy's cunt was helping her, since she was getting close to cumming from having sue suck her so hard. Her cunt muscles helped push the second egg down to the entrance and soon, she felt it pop out into sue's waiting mouth. Without being told, sue started chewing as Judy pulled back a little to give her room to chew. Then she would give the little slut a treat. sue chewed the second egg up and choked it down. It was so dry, she had a hard time swallowing it, but finally managed to get it all down. Then Judy pulled her back to her cunt and said, "Before you can drink, you have to make me cum!" Wanting to quench her thirst, sue got busy licking the cunt that was forced into her mouth and it wasn't long before Judy screamed, "YYYYYYYYYYYEEEEEEEEEESSSSSSSSSS, IIIIIIIIIIIII'MMMMMMMMMMMM CCCCCCCUUUUUUUUMMMMMMMMMMIIIIINNNNGGGGGGGG! OOOOOOOOHHHHHHHH, GGGGGGGOOOOOOOOOODDDDDDDDDD! Then, as she quieted down, sue thought she would get untied and get something to drink. But Judy had other plans. She said to the bound girl, "OK, now your drink. Hold your mouth right over my pussy and pee hole! You will drink every drop of what I give you and if you spill any, you'll lick it up. And, slut, you won't be changing these sheets for a long time, so don't dribble on them." As soon as sue had her mouth on Judy's pussy, she got the first squirt of hot yellow piss in her mouth. Judy had been holding it all morning and it was difficult to get a good stream going at first. It came out in spurts for a short time, then suddenly it all let go and sue had her mouthful of the acrid tasting, foul smelling piss from this bitch. she hated her even more now. But, she swallowed as fast as she could. She had no other choice, since Judy held her so tight against her pussy, sue couldn't move away. sue gulped, choked, and swallowed it all. Judy had a lot of piss built up and was so relieved to finally let it out. she just laughed to herself, wondering what others would think if they knew the sergeant was a piss slut. Finally she stopped pissing, and even though she tried to get more out, she couldn't. But she did hold sue's head in her crotch for a while longer, just to make sure. Then she told sue to lick her clean before she untied her. Finally Judy was satisfied that she had pissed all she could and that her pussy was clean. She moved back away from sue and got off the bed. She didn't untie her slut right away. Instead, she got the camera out and took several pictures of sue all tied up. She kept saying, "Yes, this will look good in the scrap book and we can use it later." sue was shocked by what she was saying. Now, she wasn't sure if she would ever be free from being a slut to these two people. Especially since now there was more evidence about what she was doing. Finished with the photos, Judy untied sue and allowed her to get up and stretch some. Can't have a sore worker, she thought. And she even told sue to go into the bathroom and freshen up some. "Use the toilet and if you want, get a nice warm shower before we begin to get things moved. And pull that plug out of your ass. The Captain will want to know just how much your cute little hole has stretched. I'll call him later to tell him. But if it isn't big enough, he might want it back in. So enjoy the time without it. sue was so grateful to be able to get clean again, but first she had to piss and then brush her teeth to get the taste of piss from her mouth. she sat on the toilet and relieved herself, even before removing the butt plug. Just as soon as she finished with the toilet, she reached back to pull the plug. But she was having a problem. It wouldn't come out. her ass muscles kept clamping onto it, holding it in. sue pulled harder now, and finally it came out. sue felt so empty. she was almost tempted to put it back, but didn't, thinking that the feeling would go away and her once tight little hole would relax back to it's normal size. At least she hoped it would. she brushed her teeth three times in order to get that awful pissy taste out. And as soon as she finished, she got into the shower, turning on the hottest water she could stand, and took a nice long one. Once she was feeling better and stepped out, Judy was waiting for her. She said, "OK, susie slut, hurry up and dry off. you have lots of things to get done and I don't want it to take all day. So, hurry!" sue felt much better now. she hurried, drying her body, and then went to the bedroom where Judy was waiting for her. "OK, let's get started. Here is what you have to do. you will take your clothes out of your closet and let me see them. I'll tell you where to put them at that time. We are going to make three piles of clothes. The first pile goes here, the second here and the third here. Ready to start, cunt?"
SPREAD 'EM part 12 "Yes, Ma'am," replied sue, "i am ready" "Good, then start!" said Judy, "but don't take any jeans or pants out of the closet. We look about the same size, so all those will now belong to me." sue started taking the clothes out, one at a time, showing Judy what she had. First were her skirts, then her dresses. she avoided the jeans and pants, just as she had been told. As she took them out, Judy had her hold them up to her and some she even made sue model. The ones that were short enough went into pile number one. The ones that were too long, but could be altered went into pile number two. And those that Judy didn't like at all went into pile number three. Those were the ones sue would have to dispose of later on. Once the closet was emptied of her clothes, except her jeans and pants, Judy said, "OK, cunt face, now take pile number one and put them all in your new closet. Pile number two, I want you to put in this bag and placed on the floor of your new closet. As for pile number three, just leave it there for now." sue was hating this, but complied with her Mistress' orders. Finally, she got the two piles put where Judy had told her. When she returned to what was once her bedroom, she was told to pull all her panties and bras out and put them in the remaining pile. sue wanted to ask why, but was afraid if she questioned, she would be punished by this bitch and then by the Captain later on. So, she did as she was told. Once she had all her bras and panties in the pile, she was told to start on her T-shirts and shorts in the same way she did her other clothes, but these she had to put on one at a time. sue put the shorts and T-shirts on and Judy would tell her either in the last pile or to start a new one. When she was done, the third pile seemed quite large, and only a few shorts and T-shirts ended up in the new pile. "Now, susie slut, that large pile of clothes that you have, I want you to stuff in this garbage bag. The other pile will be taken to your room and put in the dresser," ordered Judy. sue cried while she was doing everything she was told to do. she hated this bitch more and more, but was afraid to do or say anything. Judy handed sue a pair of shorts, she knew didn't belong to her and a little top to go with it. Judy said, "Now put these on so we can go get my things." sue struggled to get the clothes on. They seemed to be too small for her. Once she had them on, she glanced in the full length mirror and saw that they were so tight that her cunt was sticking out in the front, her ass looked like it was about to bust the seams and the top didn't hide her little tits at all. Then Judy said, "Go wait beside the car, I'll be with you in a moment." sue reluctantly went outside and stood beside the car to wait for Judy. As she was waiting, her phone went off. "bbbbbbzzzzzzz,bbbbbbbbzzzzzzzzzzzz,bbbbbbbzzzzzzzz" it went inside her cunt. sue tried to reach into the shorts to get it, but couldn't get her hand inside the tight material. The phone continued to ring. "bbbbbbzzzzzzz,bbbbbbbzzzzzzzz." she knew she was in trouble and tried her best to get to it, but couldn't. So, she just pulled her shorts down to her knees and pulled it out of her cunt. "Hheelloo," she answered. "What took you so long, slut? your phone rang six times before you answered it. you are in trouble now," said the Captain on the other end. "Bbbbbuuutttt, sir," cried sue, "Judy has these really tight shorts on me, and i couldn't get it out." "No excuse, cunt," yelled the Captain, "you'll get punished tonight." Then he hung up. sue just stood there in shock, not realizing she was on the street with her shorts down and her cunt in plain view. When she finally remembered where she was, it was too late, since a car load of young boys had driven by and honked the horn, yelling, "Nice cunt, what a bitch, wanna fuck?" Quickly, she shoved the phone back into her cunt, hurting herself, and pulled her shorts up. Then she just stood and waited for Judy to come out. But because of the exposure, her cunt was really wet and it showed right through the thin shorts she had been made to wear. Finally Judy showed up and told sue to get in. She got in the driver's side and drove to her little apartment. She was so happy to get out of that little place and get into a big house, where she had lots of room to play. And she even had a maid to clean up after her and she didn't have to pay rent any more. They arrived at Judy's place and she took sue inside. She said, "OK, let's start in the bedroom. Get all my clothes out, fold them neatly and pack them in the suitcases on the top shelf. And be quick about it! We still have a lot to do before the Captain comes to get us." sue hated doing all the work, but what choice did she have? So, she began taking clothes from the closet, folding them up and packing them away in the suitcases. Judy just sat back, watching her and talking to several different people on the phone. sue overheard her telling some of them that she was moving into a bigger house and had a maid and servant to do all her work for her. she gave them sue's home phone number and address, asking them to call or stop by to see her. sue was getting totally pissed off, but continued her work. Soonshe had the closet empty and Judy said, as she asked someone to hold a moment, "OK, now slut, clean out my dresser, making sure you get everything put in neatly." Again sue began her duties and opened the dresser drawers, pulling out Judy's pretty little undies, folding them up and packing them away. Once she had the dresser done, Judy went through the rest of the apartment with her, pointing things out, telling sue what needed to be packed. When everything had been packed, she told sue to take all the suitcases and bags out to the car, put them in the trunk and just wait for her. sue did as commanded and when everything was packed neatly in the trunk, she waited by the car for her. sue was tired, but also hot. her little shorts were wet from sweating and also from her pussy being hot and juicy. Once again, she thought about having a big cock in her cunt, fucking her. But this only made her wetter and the wetter she got, the more transparent her shorts got. As soon as Judy appeared, she saw how wet and hot sue was and decided that the little cunt needed to cool off. So she said, "susie, my pet, walk over here." She took sue to the side of the apartment building where the pool was. Next to the pool was a shower, and she said, "Get in and cool off, susie." sue looked at her and decided that it would be good to cool off some, and started to remove her clothes so she could shower. But she was stopped when Judy said, "No, just get in the way you are. We don't have time for you to get naked!" sue hesitated, knowing that if she got wet with her clothes on, she would be seen just as if she was naked. But as soon as she looked at Judy, she knew she had to do it. Judy was giving her one of those, "Come on, defy me, bitch" looks. sue just turned on the water and stepped in, allowing the cool spray to cascade over her. Once she was totally wet, Judy said, "OK, now get out and let's head for home." sue was happy to be able to get inside the cover of the car, but was shocked with what came next. As she started to get into the car, Judy said, "Wait just a minute, susie slut. I can't have you dripping wet in the car. It's not that far to our house, so why don't you walk there. I'll be along in a moment." "But, i will be seen," cried sue. "So what," yelled Judy, "you have been seen with nothing on. Maybe you would like to get out of the clothes and walk home. Once those dry, it won't look like you are naked. Now move it, bitch!" Crying, sue knew she had to walk, so she set out for her house. she felt lucky that it wasn't too far away and hoped that no one would see her. Judy went back to check out of her apartment, and then got in the car to follow behind the little slut. sue walked down the street, knowing that anyone looking would see everything she had. her tits, her cunt and her ass. she could feel the clothes begin to dry as she walked and only a few cars passed by. However, a couple young teenage boys were riding by on their bicycles and whistled at her, then turned around and followed her for awhile. she knew they could see everything and she quickened her pace, ignoring their comments. They continued to pester her and tried to get her to talk to them, but she still ignored them. she just wanted to get home. sue continued walking, trying to get away from the boys, when suddenly Judy pulled up beside her and ordered, "Stop right there, cunt!" The order scared her, since she did not expect Judy to be there. But she stopped and stood still. Judy got out of the car and asked, "Did those boys try talking to you?" "Yes, Ma'am," said sue. "And did you talk back to them?" asked Judy. "No, Ma'am, i didn't," stated sue, quite proud of herself. At least for the moment, until Judy said, "Come on over here, boys." sue was shocked because she thought they had left. They all gathered around to see what would happen. Judy asked them, "Did she just ignore you?" "Yea, she did!" they all said together. "susie slut, don't you know better than to ignore people when they are trying to be nice to you. I think you owe them an apology, don't you?" questioned Judy. "Yyeess, Ma'am," cried sue, "i'm sorry for ignoring you. It won't happen again." "Not good enough!" yelled Judy, "Now, you will have to pay for your lack of respect to these young men. Follow me, susie, and you boys come along, too." Judy headed off into a wooded area beside the road. Once they were among the trees, Judy said, "Now, show em!" "Bbbbuuuutttt," cried sue. "No, don't say it, just strip!" ordered Judy, "and be quick about it!" sue knew better than to hesitate and quickly got her top off. But she did go slower in removing her shorts. And this cost her as soon as they cleared her ass. "SMACK", as Judy slapped her naked ass and said, "faster cunt!" sue quickly shed her shorts and stood before them all naked. "Is this what you boys wanted to see?" asked Judy. They all said, "YES" at the same time, with big smiles on their faces. Then Judy did something that shocked sue and made her cry even more. She said, "Well little cunt, I think you owe these boys a little more, so get on your knees and beg to suck their young cocks." sue hated doing this, but knew if she didn't obey Judy, she would be in big trouble. The Captain already said she would be punished for not answering her phone in time and if she refused this, she would suffer twice as much. So down on her knees she went and said, "Please, may i suck your cocks?" All the boys were surprised, but since they all had hard-ons, they pulled them out and sue crawled to each, one at a time. she reluctantly put them in her mouth and sucked them until each of them had cum in her mouth and she swallowed it all. Then Judy told her to put her clothes back on and get home. She would be there in just a few moments when she finished talking to these young boys. Finally she was at her door, but couldn't get in until Judy showed up. her tormentors had taken all her keys away from her and she couldn't even enter her house without them. she felt like a prisoner. Just like someone she had put into jail. Once Judy arrived, she allowed sue inside, but quickly gave her orders to get her things from the car, carry them into the house and put them away in the closet that used to hold her clothes. While she was slaving away at the hands of this bitch, the phone rang and she heard Judy talking. When she hung up, she said, "susie slut, that was the Captain and he will be here in an hour to pick us up. He told me what to dress you in and said to make sure that your cunt was really wet. So, as soon as you get done, you'll start playing with that little whore cunt and get juicy." sue didn't have much more to go, and as soon as Judy saw everything was in the house and put away in her new bedroom, she said, "OK, slut, strip!" sue was out of breath from having to do all the work, but decided to do as she was told. No sense in arguing with Judy, since she would lose anyway. So, she stripped down and stood before her Mistress naked. As soon as sue was nude, Judy said, "OK, slut, start playing with that cunt. But, don't you dare cum. The Captain wants you hot and horny when he arrives. Don't stop until he shows up." How she hated doing these things, and wished she had told the Captain to go ahead and deport her. At least in China, she wouldn't be doing these terrible things for anyone. she could have managed and then worked her way back to the states legally. she stood right where Judy had left her, playing with her pussy. she was so hot and horny, that she would have fucked anyone just to get off. Maybe the Captain would fuck her tonight instead of that cunt Judy. When the Captain walked in, Judy met him at the door and gave him a big juicy kiss. He laughed as he watched sue playing with herself, then said, "OK, go with Judy and get dressed. We have something to take care of tonight. And pick out a nice little lock to carry with you." Judy took sue to her new bedroom and made her dress in a very short skirt that barely covered her ass and a very sheer white blouse. Then came the six-inch high heels. sue was so embarrassed, knowing that they would be out in public and she looked like she was a real whore. But that's what the Captain wanted and sue put them on, thinking maybe she could get fucked by someone tonight, even if she had to be a whore to get a cock in her pussy. Once she was dressed, Judy brought her out to where the Captain was waiting. He looked her over and approved of the clothes and said, "Very nice. Now, let's get going so we don't miss your appointment. sue wondered what appointment Judy was referring to. Getting in the car, she had to sit between the other two. The Captain made her open her legs and play with her pussy while they rode. she was not allowed to cover up, even if someone looked in the windows as they drove. And, of course, as he drove, he made sure that he drove slowly when he thought someone might be looking. sue was turning red in the face, but her cunt was so hot and wet that she would have taken any cock offered to her. she realized where they were as soon as he pulled into the mall parking lot. she was thinking about the last time she was here and hoped it wouldn't be as bad as that. But she had survived the last trip and she would survive this one, too. Getting out of the car, she was told to walk a short distance in front of them, making sure to wiggle her slutty little ass, just like a common streetwalker would do. Then they started walking, with sue leading the way with her little ass, which was almost visible, wiggling quite nicely. They entered the mall and walked down the main hall. The Captain said he would tell her when to stop. About halfway through the mall the Captain said, "OK, susie, stop!" sue looked around and saw they were in front of a place that sold earrings and did piercings. she wondered what he had on his mind, being right in front of this place. Once they caught up to her he said, "Just follow us in and do not say anything!" Walking into the shop, the Captain talked to one of the clerks asking, "Is Stephanie here?" The clerk said, "Yes, just a moment and I'll get her for you." The three of them waited for a few moments and then a beautiful young Asian woman came out to greet them. She walked up to the trio and said, "Hello, I'm Stephanie. Are you the person that made a special appointment with me?" The Captain said, "Yes. Do we have a special room reserved?" "Yes, just follow me," said Stephanie and turned toward the back of the store. She led them into the back room and closed the door behind them, then asked, "So, what can I do for you. I didn't quite understand what you wanted when you called." The Captain said, "Well, Stephanie, we want you to pierce this little slut's ear and attach a special item we brought along. Can you do that?" "I think so," said Stephanie. "What do you want to attach to her ear?" "You did bring that lock with you, didn't you, susie slut?" asked the Captain. "Give it to Stephanie so she can see it." sue was very embarrassed and visibly upset, but gave the lock to Stephanie. She studied it for a moment and then said, "What ear do you want this in? I have a tool that will make the right size hole, so let's get busy." Judy spoke up, saying, "Put it in her right ear! I think more people notice the right side of a person. And if you do a good job, we might hire you to pierce her in other places, too." sue was led to a chair and was told to sit down. "NO, i won't do it. You can't do this to me!" yelled sue. The captain got pissed off when he heard this and said, "Just a moment, Stephanie, I have to correct this little slut. sue follow me." sue followed him, quite proud of herself for standing up to them. But her pride was soon dashed, when she got to the other side of the room. The captain said, "You'll pay for that outburst, bitch, now bend over and grab your ankles!" sue just stood there! she wasn't going to allow any more humiliation. But the captain grabbed her by the hair and forced her to bend at the waist. It hurt her and she knew she couldn't escape, so she just grabbed her ankles. Then the captain lifted her skirt, exposing her naked ass. He took his belt and the next sound that was heard was, "SMACK,SMACK,SMACK,SMACK,SMACK!" her ass was on fire and had turned a pretty pink from the five swats she received. "Now cunt, are you going to obey, or do I have to strip you naked and make you leave here like that?" "i'll bbbbeeehhhaavvve, sir," she cried They headed back to the chair and sat down. Once she was sitting, Judy and the captain each took an arm and handcuffed her to the arms of the chair so she couldn't move. "OK, Stephanie, please continue," said the captain. Stephanie decided to play along with them and just went to work preparing sue's right ear and getting all of her tools together. Then she was ready to put the hole in sue's ear. She said, "OK, now you'll feel a little pain, but don't move. If you do, I might damage your ear." sue sat there quietly, shaking. she knew she didn't want this to happen and it made it worse, knowing if she moved her ear might be permanently scarred. So, she sat still, using all the skills she had learned in the academy when she first wanted to be a cop. Stephanie took hold of sue's ear and brought the tool up to it. Lining it up, she positioned it in the center. Then she squeezed hard and sue felt the pain. she almost jumped when she felt it puncture her ear, but stayed still like she was told. It was over with real quick, and Stephanie told the Captain he could now put the lock in. The captain pushed the lock through the hole in her ear and snapped it shut with a loud "CLICK!" "you are mine, cunt! This little lock signifies that you are mine and only I can unlock it!" said the captain as Judy stepped up with a mirror in her hand. She said, "Look, susie! It is so cute in your ear!" sue closed her eyes so she couldn't see it, but opened them quickly when Judy slapped her face and said, "I said look! Now look!" sue started crying harder now, knowing that everyone would see it and ask questions. her new haircut could not hide the lock. What would she tell them? What would her parents think. Oh God, how could she ever face anyone again. The captain told her to thank Stephanie, which she did while the captain took care of the bill using sue's credit card. Then, he asked if Stephanie did other parts of the body besides ears. Her answer was, "Yes, I do, but not here. I usually go to the customer's house and do it and it does cost more." Judy said, "Very good! Give me your number and we'll contact you when we need some more done." The captain was ready to go. All of this had made his cock hard and he wanted to get home and fuck Judy all night long.
SPREAD 'EM part 13 Leaving the mall, they rushed to the car. The only thing the two could think of was fucking and didn't want to waste any time. Just as they got to the car the Captain said, "Show me, slut!" sue cried more and begged, "Please, sir, not here." "Shut up cunt and do it, NOW!" he yelled. "Unless you want me to rip those slutty little clothes off you." sue slowly looked around and began to remove her clothes right there in the open parking lot. Once she was naked, the Captain pulled her hands behind her back and handcuffed them, then put her in the back seat. The other two got in and headed for sue's house. Arriving, they got her out of the car and headed for the door. Judy opened it and as soon as they got in, both started stripping. They stripped while they made their way into the big bedroom, which was now Judy's. By the time they were ready to get into bed, they were both naked, leaving their clothes strewn about the floor from the front door all the way to the bed. sue had followed them, not knowing what else to do. The two naked people jumped into the bed and without any foreplay, the Captain sunk his cock deep into Judy's waiting cunt. Judy was in heaven, feeling his big shaft sink deep inside her, filling her up. She wanted to fuck without an audience this time and said, "susie slut, be a good little cunt and pick up our clothes." "i can't do that without my hands. The Captain still has me cuffed," stated sue, hoping she could get out of the tight cuffs around her wrists. "Then use your mouth, bitch, just do it and leave us alone," ordered Judy. "Now go, bitch!" Slowly sue made her way back to the other room and looked at the clothes. she tried to reach down with her hands, but couldn't get to the clothes. she knew that if they weren't picked up by the time those two finished fucking, she would be in trouble. she took Judy's advice and began to pick up the clothes with her mouth. She picked up one article at a time and carried them to the laundry room and dropped them into the clothes hamper. she got down to their underwear and socks, not really wanting those dirty things in her mouth. she hesitated. she was listening to the sounds coming from the other room, wanting to get herself fucked so much. All of the things that had happened to her made her so hot and horny. she needed to be fucked! she finally got down to pick up Judy's soiled panties and the only way she could pick the up was by the crotch, right where Judy's cunt had been leaking onto them. It didn't taste great, but sue managed to get them into the laundry room. Then she worked on the Captain's underwear and finally their socks. By the time she finished, she looked up and saw the two of them standing in the doorway watching her. Judy said, "OK, susie slut, time for bed. Go to your room and get on the bed, on your back." sue was tired from all the activities and went straight to the little room that she had to stay in. she wanted her big bed back, but knew she wasn't going to get it for at least six months. So, she lay down ready to sleep. Judy and the Captain followed her in and each took an arm and tied a wrist to the headboard of the bed. Then each took a leg, raised it into the air and tied a rope around her ankles. Then they pulled the rope back, lacing it through the headboard and pulled hard. Her body began to bend in half. The more they pulled the ropes, the farther up her feet went toward the head of the bed. They pulled some more and when sue looked down all she could see was her own cunt. It seemed to be looking right back at her in this position. Judy said, "Ron, how far do you think we can get her. Think we can bend the little slut enough so she can lick herself?" The Captain laughed and said, "Well, maybe, but let's not do it tonight. I think this is far enough. Let's tie her off and then get back to bed and fuck all night. I'm going to spend the night with you, exploring all of your beautiful body." "MMMM," said Judy, "In that case, let's hurry. Can't wait to have that wonderful cock back in my cunt." They tied off the ropes, and Judy reached into sue's hot pussy to get the phone. She plugged it in so it would keep a good charge and then shoved it back inside. The Captain got the butt plug, lubed it up and shoved it into sue's well-exposed ass. Then they said, "Good night, little susie slut. Sleep well" They turned out the lights and shut the door, leaving her in the dark once again. Even in this awkward position, she fell asleep quickly, having dreams of being fucked by Ron, the Captain. "Bbbbbbbbbzzzzzzzzzz,bbbbbbbbbbbzzzzzzzz,bbbbbbbzzzzzz" was what woke her up the next morning as her pussy phone rang. sue opened her eyes to see Judy standing over her. "Time to get up, pet, but I need something firs,." said Judy as soon as she saw sue's eyes open. "Yes, Ma'am, but please release me. I ache all over," said sue. "Certainly," said Judy as she released sue's ankles. "But before I release your wrists, I am full of cum from the Captain and I need you to suck it out for me." And she crawled up to where sue's mouth was and placed her pussy right on sue's mouth. "Suck it out, cunt, then I'll release you," ordered Judy. sue had no other option, so began to suck out her cunt. She tasted terrible, and the Captain's cum was stale as it leaked out of the pussy on her face. But she did what she had to and sucked until Judy finally got off the bed. Judy untied her and told her to get cleaned up and ready for work. sue got to the bathroom, pulled the butt plug out and used the toilet. Then she got into the shower and cleaned up. As she was drying her hair, her attention was drawn to the lock in her ear. her eyes began to tear up. The embarrassment and days of torment had left her exhausted and humiliated. she touched the lock, tugging lightly on her ear, as she tried to suppress the tears. When she came out of the bathroom, her clothes were laid out on the bed. It was her uniform skirt and blouse, but the skirt seemed to have been cut up the back. All the way from the hem to the waistband. sue put it on and knew her ass would be showing when she walked, but then noticed there were strips of velcro sewn into it. she got them fastened and put her blouse on. she was ready to be driven to work by Judy. As they walked into the station house, the Captain said, "In my office and show me!" sue went to his office and stripped. she positioned herself in front of his desk, legs spread apart and hands on the desk, which made her bend at the waist. The Captain and Judy entered behind her and watched her get naked for them. Once she was properly positioned, the Captain reached up to her cunt and poked his fingers inside. He grabbed the phone and pulled it out saying, "I don't think you need this while at work anymore. I'll use the intercom if I want you." Then he laid the phone down on his desk before he continued. "I want you to get dressed, slut, and go sit at your desk. You'll notice you have a new chair to sit in. Don't say anything when you see it, just sit down. You'll know how when you see. Now get moving." sue quickly got her clothes back on and started to reattach the velcro, but Judy stopped her, saying, "No, leave it off. That is for when you walk outside. After all, can't have all these other policemen getting turned on all the time." Judy walked with her to her desk and said, "OK, cunt, sit!" She pulled the chair out from under the desk and sue saw what they had done. In the chair was a dildo and butt plug, positioned just right so when she sat down, they would go up her pussy and ass. They appeared to be permanently attached to this chair. she started to complain, but thought better. And now she knew why her skirt had been split. sue moved to the chair and had to stand up on the bottom rung of the legs in order to get her ass high enough to sit in it. she slowly sat down. she felt the instruments enter her holes and tried to stand up on the rung. But Judy pushed her feet off the rung and sue was impaled by two objects. They forced themselves deeply into her and she couldn't move. "Now, just sit like that and do your work. Don't even think about putting your feet up, either. The Captain and I will be watching you!" stated Judy. sue started crying from the frustration and the pain in her pussy. It was not only the pain of being hurt, but a pain from needing to get fucked by a big hard cock. Even if she had her cunt full of dildo, she still needed the real thing. And, if she could get away today, she would find a big cock to fuck her. The Captain and Judy watched her all morning. she squirmed in her seat, feeling those two objects inside her. she just couldn't get comfortable. And to make it worse, she couldn't put her feet on the floor or the chair rungs to ease the discomfort. she just had to sit flat on her ass, her naked skin touching the hard wooden seat. At lunchtime, the Captain called her on the intercom. "sergeant, get into my office. And don't forget to push your chair in all the way unless you want others to see what you have been sitting on." sue carefully got up off her new chair, pushed it way up under her desk and walked into the Captain's office. she forgot to fix her skirt and when she realized it, she knew everyone around had seen her naked ass. she walked into the office and said, "Yes, Sir." The Captain said, "I want you to go get our lunch today. Here is what I want and what Judy wants. You get what you want, too." He handed her the list and some money. she started to fix the back of her skirt, but he stopped her saying, "No, leave it just like that. I want your naked ass in view today." Quietly she left the office, staying next to the wall on her way out, trying to hide herself. As she was walking out the door, a new rookie cop caught up with her. He said, "Hi, I'm Allen. I noticed that earring you have. Quite interesting. I'm going to get some lunch, want to join me?" sue started to tell him no, but then thought this might be the only chance she had to get fucked today. So she said, "Sure, I was on the way out for lunch, too. Have to get the Captain's. And thank you for noticing my earring. i thought it was different, so I bought it." They left and sue drove. she said she had to go to two places and hoped he didn't mind; the Captain and Judy had ordered from two different restaurants. But she had already decided to make a detour and go someplace to fuck this good-looking rookie. As they drove, he was talking to her, but she wasn't sure about what he said. All sue could think about was getting his cock in her hot cunt. That dildo made her pussy so wet and it was ready for the real thing. she knew about a little park down the street from the station and pulled into it, knowing that it was deserted most of the time. she found the spot she was looking for and stopped. He said, "What we doing here? Can't buy lunch in a park you know." sue looked at him with a big smile and said, "No, but we can fuck! And I want your hard cock slamming into my pussy right now." The rookie was shocked, but didn't argue as they both got out of the car. sue just bent over the trunk and spread her legs. she said, "Do me stud. Fuck my hot cunt." she had picked the trunk, knowing that the camera wouldn't see them, should it happen to be on. The rookie pulled his cock out and plunged it into her pussy. she moaned and pushed back. Finally after all the torment she went through being denied a fucking, she was now getting it. They fucked like that for about twenty minutes and he finally stiffened and shot his load deep inside her pussy. she came at the same time. "YYYYEEEEESSSSSSS,CCCCCUUUUUMMMMMIIIINNNGGGGG,OOOOOOOOHHHHHHHH,SSSSSSSOOOOOOO GGGGGOOOOOODDDDD, FFFFFUUUUUUCCCCKKKKKKK MMMMMMMEEEEEEEEE!" she screamed. They stayed connected for a short time after that and finally sue said, "God you are good. I wouldn't mind a lunch break like that everyday. How about we try to get everyone's lunch everyday so we can fuck." "Great idea!" he said, "You have one hot pussy and I'll take all I can of it." They straightened their clothes and then went to get the food. sue went into the bathroom to clean her pussy out so the Captain wouldn't notice she had been fucked. she was thinking that now she wouldn't care if the Captain forbid her to fuck. she had her own cock to fuck now. Getting back to the station, she went into the Captain's office with the food. Judy was with him and as she shut the door, Judy took the food. The Captain said, "Show me!" sue was glad to show him now, knowing that everyday she could get away, she was going to have Allen's hard cock up her cunt. So, she quickly stripped and positioned herself at his desk as usual. The Captain and Judy took all the food out and set theirs on the desk so they could eat. But Judy put sue's on the floor. The Captain came up behind her, grabbed her arms, bringing them behind her back and handcuffed them. "Now slut, get on your knees and eat your lunch like a good little puppy," ordered Judy. sue hesitated until she felt the "SMACK" of the Captain's hand on her naked ass. Then she quickly got down in front of her meal and bent over to lick it up. The other two laughed and began to eat their lunch. They continued eating and watching sue slurp up her food. They talked and laughed and were making plans for the upcoming night and the long weekend ahead. sue could hear them and knew she wouldn't be getting fucked by him anytime soon, since their plans were to fuck each other continually. Finally finishing lunch, the Captain allowed her to get up and released her from the cuffs. He even allowed her to wipe the food from her face. Judy walked with her back to her desk once she was dressed again and made sure she was sitting properly on her new toys. Judy got quite a laugh as sue eased herself down onto the two objects. sue sat at her desk doing her work and never noticed the Captain leaving his office. He was making his rounds of the station to check on everything, especially the new rookies. He wanted to be sure they were learning and getting their duties done. As he walked toward the break area, he stopped and listened to two of the rookies talking. What had caught his attention was the fact that he had heard sgt. lee's name. So, out of sight of the two, he just listened. One of them said, "No way man. The sergeant wouldn't even let you look at her cunt, let alone fuck her. I heard she was a cold bitch." "But it's true," said the other, "we went to get lunches and she pulled into this deserted park and begged me to fuck her. And she has one nice pussy. You should hear her when she cums." "So, you are going to lunch with her every day from now on so you can fuck her again." asked the first one. "That's right," said Allen, "sergeant lee was the one who asked me." "Think I can fuck her, too?" questioned the first guy. "Maybe someday you can take a break and I can go to lunch with her and get some of that hot asian cunt." The Captain had heard enough and he was pissed. The little cunt was out getting some cock on the side, even after being told that her cunt didn't belong to her anymore. sue's cunt was his and he planned to punish her severely for fucking without permission. He went back toward his office, but stopped by Judy's desk on the way. He said, "Come into my office. We have some problems to get straight. Transfer all your calls to the slut." Judy put her phone on transfer and followed the Captain. As she walked by sue's desk she said, "I'll be in with Ron, and all the calls will come to you. Handle them, bitch." The two entered the office and shut the door. Judy was wanting a little afternoon fuck, but the Captain wasn't in the mood. He told Judy what he had heard and that the little cunt had to pay. They started with the plans to get sue. They thought about making her walk the streets as a hooker and wouldn't allow her back home until she made a lot of money. They also discussed having a party at her house with her being the entertainment and fucking all their friends. And they even thought about sending her to the jail for a night with those horny men. All the ideas sounded great, but they wanted this to be special. Once she was thoroughly fucked, they would fix it so she would never fuck again without permission. It was getting late in the afternoon and they still hadn't decided on what to do. They agreed to think it over and then talk some more.
SPREAD 'EM part 14 The Captain was really upset with his little slut, and made up his mind what to do with her. He called Judy to tell her, and she loved the idea. Then he called the jail and spoke with the guard. He found out that the one she had sucked off before would be there in about thirty minutes and this pleased him. He would give him some pussy before he did the rest with sue and he would keep his mouth shut. He waited in his office, watching sue work and from the way she was squirming in her seat, he knew her little cunt would be really wet for later. Then he called back to the jail and the guard he was waiting for was there. He told him part of what he wanted and promised him some pussy if he went along with the plan and wouldn't tell anyone. Everything was in place, so he called sue on the intercom and said he would be out to get her soon. "Be sure all your work is done and we need to put your chair away so the next sergeant doesn't see it," he said to her. sue hurried to finish her work, then got up off her chair and the two objects that had been inside her. she took the chair to the little shift room and put it away and brought another chair out. As she was finishing this the Captain came out and said, "Follow me, sergeant." sue followed him toward the jail, which took them right past Judy's desk. She got up and went with them. The three of them walked together without saying anything until they reached the guard station at the entrance to the jail. Then the Captain said, "Now, show me!" "Please, Sir, not here. Others are around. Anyplace but here, please," she begged. But he would hear none of it and said, "I said, show me, slut! Now do it!" Slowly sue began to disrobe and laid her clothes on the desk. When she had put the last article on the desk, Judy took them all and shoved them into a bag. sue stood naked before the Captain, Judy and the guard, not sure what to do next. "Aren't you supposed to be in the proper position," asked the Captain. sue realized that he expected her to do what she did in his office and leaned over, putting her hands on the desk where the guard usually sat. Then she spread her legs wide and waited. "Now, slut, who do you think you are anyway? How do you think you can just fuck anyone without asking me first. And don't tell me you didn't, either. I know you fucked that rookie cop this afternoon when you went for lunch, didn't you?" The Captain was harsh with his words. "Yyyyyeeesssss, Sir, i did," she cried, "i was just so hot, i just couldn't help it." "Well, slut, I am going to make sure you get well fucked tonight and that will be the last time you get a cock in that cunt for a long, long time," stated the Captain. sue was shaking now, not knowing what this evil man meant and she cried. she was so shook up, she couldn't even talk. Then she heard him say, "Now, just stay right where you are while this nice guard reams your hot cunt for you to get it nice and juicy for the rest of them." The guard walked behind her, unzipped his pants and pulled his cock out. she already knew what size it was since she had sucked it before for the Captain. But now she was going to feel it in her pussy. And this she didn't really mind, but it was what was to come next that frightened her. The guard stepped up behind sue and without even rubbing her wet slit, drove his cock deep inside her, all the way to his balls. "AAAAAGGGGGHHHHHHHH," moaned sue, as she felt him ram it deep in her cunt. He stayed that way for just a short time and then began pumping back and forth, fucking her hard and deep. She didn't know it, but he had not had any pussy in a long time and hadn't cum since she sucked him off. she wanted to cum from him fucking her, but to her dismay, he shot his load before she could. she felt him stiffen just as she was getting turned on and then felt his sperm enter her. He quickly pulled out and with the Captains insistence he walked in front of her and pushed his softening cock into her mouth. "Clean it up quickly ,cunt," said Judy, "we have some more surprises for you." sue took his cock into her mouth and sucked him until it was clean and then he pulled out, put it back into his pants and zipped up. He knew about what was going to happen next and he would have a front row seat for all the action. He couldn't wait. "OK, my little whore," said the Captain, "get your ass up and follow me." He walked to the large door that sealed off the jail cells and told the guard to open it. The Captain walked in through the doors, followed by sue and then Judy. The door slammed shut behind them. He walked down the aisle between the cells and stopped when he got to a large table in the middle. He said, "OK, sergeant, get your ass up on the table, and lay on your belly." sue was in shock, knowing that all the prisoners, some of whom she put behind bars, were watching and could see her nakedness. she tried to cover her body, but Judy slapped her hands away. Reluctantly, she got on the table, knowing that if she didn't things would just get worse. As soon as she was laying face down on the table, Judy and the Captain handcuffed her hands and feet to the table legs. Of course, they made sure her whore holes were positioned just right to accept cocks. sue lay on the cold table, legs spread wide apart, her cunt dripping from being fucked by the guard, along with it being so aroused and listened to the Captain. He said, "Your attention please. Tonight, I have a special treat for all of you. I know some of you have been in here for a long time, while others just arrived. But tonight you are going to be free. Well, at least as free as you can get while still in jail. In a short while, I am going to leave and when I do, all your cell doors will be unlocked." Cheers and applause was heard throughout the jail. The prisoners knew something good would happen, especially with this cunt in front of them. The Captain held up his hand and called for silence. Then he continued. "As you can see, I have placed this whore in the center of the room. Some of you might recognize her as the sergeant that brought you in here. Well, tonight she is not a cop! Tonight, she is your whore. Once I open your cell doors, you are all free to fuck her in any of her three holes. However, I do expect her cunt to be used the most." More cheers, yells, clapping and banging on the bars from the prisoners. Some of these guys hadn't seen a pussy in so long. sue was horrified by what she heard. her breath was short and shallow. There was nothing she could do but choke back her tears. Judy was watching from the sidelines and saw that they were already stripping down to get at this cunt in front of them. She paid close attention to their cocks. It was amazing how different, but so much alike they looked. Some long, some short, some thin, some fat, but all engorged and ready for action. The Captain continued talking, "Take your time with her, since you will have all night to use her. I will be back in the morning to get her. I hope you all have fun, but do remember, no abuse. I don't want her hurt, I just want her fucked." Then as he was walking away, sue heard him say, "Judy, when we get home, please call Stephanie and see about an appointment at the house tomorrow night. I want that cunt fixed!" Then there was a silence, but only for a short time. sue lay on her belly on that cold metal table, her cunt openly displayed and left all alone with these horny guys to use all night. How would she ever manage to keep up? she knew it would be bad, but at the same time, it excited her to know she was going to be gang raped. Her cunt was soaking wet with the thought of all those hard cocks going into her. Then suddenly she heard the electric locks come undone and the doors slide open. Next thing she knew there were men all around her, running their hands all over her and into her. Then came the first of many cocks. One guy stuck his cock into her pussy and rammed it home. He was fucking her hard and fast, going deep with each thrust. she heard him mumbling something about the time he was arrested by this cunt. she didn't know who it was, nor could she see him, because about the time her had his cock all the way in, a hard cock was stuck into her mouth and it too was fucking her. No one seemed to care about her feelings, they just fucked her. The Captain and Judy watched for awhile on the screen set up to monitor the prisoners. They could tell she was in for a long night and really doubted that she would want to fuck again for quite some time. her cunt would be really sore by the time morning came. That was a good twelve hours away and as horny as some of these guys were, they knew she would be used all night. sue couldn't move. The only thing she could do is take what she was getting. Hard cocks! Once the first guy fucked her, they lined up front and back and gave her a steady supply of cocks and cum. Some of the men fucked her pussy, some she had to suck off, while others even went for her virgin asshole. The prisoners were really enjoying their little bit of freedom. Even if they couldn't get out on the streets, the Captain had supplied them with a whore for the night and they were making the best of it. Not knowing when they would get an opportunity like this again, they were going to fuck her until they just couldn't get hard any more. But even then, some of them were thinking, they could shove their soft cocks into her mouth to try to get hard at least once more. The Captain and Judy watched the monitor as sue got fucked from every angle. They laughed at the sight of her and knew after this, she wouldn't be getting fucked, at least in her cunt, for quite some time. But getting bored of watching, along with getting horny, they left her to the guard who could see everything. Judy promised him that once the night was over, he would get some more. They left and headed to Judy's "new house". The Captain drove quite fast because he wanted Judy's hot cunt real bad. He would have fucked sue, but didn't want her to think that he was being easy on her. They arrived at the house and hurried inside. They both needed to fuck again, but Judy had to make a phone call first. As soon as they were in the house, Judy got on the phone and dialed Stephanie's number. As soon as it was answered Judy said, "Hi Steph, this is Judy. Can we set up an appointment?" The Captain listened for a while, then left as he heard Judy say, "We would love to have you over tomorrow night if you can make it." Only Judy could hear the other end of the conversation, but the Captain could hear Judy talking. Even though he was getting ready to get a shower, he still listened. "Great," said Judy, "bring all your tools and if you can, pick out some nice rings too." Then she listened and answered, "Yea, something that we can fit a couple locks in. You know, about the size we used last time, or even a little bigger." Waiting for Stephanie to talk, she then answered again, "Yes, we know about the extra charge, and are willing to pay it. But we will be sure to add something special in it for you." Waiting again, then saying, "Well, I don't know about you, but I love to be eaten and it is so special when another woman does it. Their lips are so much softer than a man's." A short pause, then "That's Ok, Stephanie, I'm not Bi either. I wouldn't dream of eating out another pussy. But having a slut eat you is special. I love it." Another short pause and then "Well, at least think about it. You'll never know how it is unless you try it, and we will make sure it is good for you." She listened some more and then said, "OK, bye. We'll see you tomorrow night when you get off work. About nine, right?" Judy hung up the phone and began to strip. She was ready for some good hard cock now and knew the Captain would be ready too. She got naked and ran into her new bedroom to find Ron laying on the bed, naked with a big stiff cock pointing straight into the air. Judy couldn't wait for any playing around, and jumped on the bed, mounted the Captain and slid her cunt over his hard cock. She moved her cunt down his cock until it was all the way in, then started bouncing. She was riding him like she was a cowgirl riding a bull. She fucked the Captain until she felt his cock stiffen inside her and then drove her cunt all the way down and squeezed with her muscles. He shot his load inside her with a "AAAAAAAAGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHHHHHH!" At the same time he was cumming in her, she had her first orgasm of the night. "OOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHH,MMMMMMYYYYYYYYYYYYY, CCCCCCCCCCUUUUUMMMMMIIIIINNNNGGGGGGGG!" she screamed. Then she just collapsed on his chest, with his cock still inside her. But they only lay that way for a moment, when he rolled over and began to fuck her again. This action lasted way into the night and the next morning. But finally, after numerous fucks, they fell asleep in each other's arms. Meanwhile, back at the jail, sue had lost count of how many cocks had been in her. she had many nice orgasms to start with, but now it seemed like that is all she was doing. With all the cocks in her cunt, ass and mouth, she was in a constant state of arousal. But she was beginning to wear out. All this sex made her sore and she was fighting to stay awake and alert. she was close to passing out from exhaustion, when suddenly, there were no more cocks in her. she tried to look around to see what was going on, but could see no one. Suddenly one of the prisoners came around to her face and bent down so she could see him. she remembered the guy. It was one of the men she had arrested, but she couldn't remember why. He leaned toward her and said, "So, sergeant, now you are a whore. Do you know how many of us are in here because of you? I'll bet you don't, but you are going to find out. We are taking a short break, then all the ones you put in the slammer are going to have you again. You are going to count each one so you know how many there are." "Ppppplllleeeeaaassseeee, Sir, please be gentle," she begged, "i want to be fucked by all of you, but please don't hurt me." "Oh, we won't hurt you sergeant," said the prisoner, "we are just going to fuck your slutty little cunt while you try to figure out how many men you put away." sue was silent, trying to figure out how many there might be. she didn't know how many men had fucked her already and didn't know how she was going to keep track now. But the prisoner told her how it would work. He said, "We will start out by each of us fucking your hot cunt, one at a time. As soon as we cum inside you, you will count. We want you to say out loud, One just fucked my cunt! Then when he pulls out, the next will fuck you and when he cums, you will say Two just fucked my cunt." "Yyyyyeeeeesssss Sir," she cried, knowing she would have a hard time keeping track. Even though she had cum so many times, she needed more. "Once all of us are done with your cunt, we are going to start on your pretty little ass and you'll do the same there, except you say just fucked my ass instead of cunt," he explained. she was trying to take it all in when he continued. "Then we'll do the same with that whore mouth! Do you understand cunt?" "Yyyyyeeesssss Sir, please fuck me," she cried out. she didn't even know what she was saying, but she did know she was still horny. The Captain had made her into a fucking slut. His whore. Just like she was when she was younger when she had to sell her body to support her family. Now she wasn't even getting paid, but needed it so very much. The men all lined up and began their torture of her swollen pussy. They worked her cunt, then her ass and finally her mouth. she wasn't even sure she had counted correctly, but knew all the numbers ran together and she still didn't know how many cocks she had taken this night. The next morning, the guard got a phone call from the Captain. As soon as he hung up, he called the prisoners through the PA system and told them the fun was over and they had to return to their cells. But promised them that the little slut would return someday to do it again. Once she felt no more cocks going into her body, sue passed out and slept until the Captain came to the jail to get her. He gave her the day off to sleep, but put her in a cell next to all the other prisoners. When she woke up, she saw them all there and the Captain was saying, "Come on, sergeant, time to go home to clean up. We have a special guest coming by tonight and I want you nice and clean. They left the jail once she was given her revealing clothes and headed home.
SPREAD 'EM part 15 They arrived home and sue got out of the car, following her Master and Mistress into the house. As soon as they were inside, she was told to strip. As she was getting out of her clothes, she noticed how dirty her house was. she never allowed it to get dirty, but while she was in the jail getting fucked, the Captain and Judy had fucked all over the house. They left their clothes laying around, dirty dishes were everywhere and it smelled like sex. As soon as she was naked, Judy said, "OK, slut, get this house cleaned up. We are having company tonight and I don't want my house looking like a dump." These words hurt sue. It was her house, not this other bitch's, but because she had not wanted to be deported, it now belonged to Judy. she was nothing more than a maid in her own house, along with being a play toy for them. But, she was so tired and sore, she didn't argue. she went about cleaning up their mess and got the dishes and laundry started. Once she got everything clean again, the Captain said, "OK, now go get a nice bath. You smell like a whore and we don't want our guest to see you like this." sue went to the bathroom to bathe. Of course, she had to use the small bathroom in the hallway, since she was forbidden the use of her other bathroom off the master bedroom. This was now Judy's private bath. Running the water, she climbed into the tub and soaked. her pussy was sore and swollen. Her ass felt like it had been turned wrong side out and her jaws hurt. she had been fucked so much last night, she didn't know if she would ever be able to fuck again. she was soaking her hurts away as her mind drifted back to her past. The family needed money and she only knew of one way to get it. she told them she was working, but they never knew she was selling her body. she had been fucked by many different men and got paid well for her services, but she didn't want this forever and decided to get an education. But she worried about her younger sister, who had found out that sue was a whore and she wanted to be just like her. sue was able to convince her not to do it. However, she didn't know if she really did or not. sue moved out after that and hadn't really seen her sister in a long time. Her thoughts were interrupted when Judy entered the little bathroom and said, "Hurry up, slut! Our guest will be arriving soon and we still have to get you ready!" sue jumped when she heard Mistress Judy speak. she wondered what was going to happen next. her cunt was getting hot again, but her mind wanted everything to stop. But recently, she could only listen to her pussy and blocked out everything her mind said. she got out of the tub and dried off. she left the bathroom to be met by the Captain. He grabbed her arm and pulled her toward the living room. she gasped when she saw her dinning room table in the middle of the living room. Attached to each leg was rope and she dreaded being tied up again. Especially after her night in the jail. He took her to the table and said, "OK, cunt, up you go. On your back, legs spread. Move it!" sue hesitated, knowing something bad was going to happen. But her hesitation was short lived. With one hand, the Captain grabbed the lock which hung from sue's ear, pulling her head down, and with the other slapped her harshly on her naked ass three times. "I said on the table! Now do it!" Having no choice, she got on the table and lay down. her eyes were filling up with tears now and she didn't want anything else to happen. As soon as she was on her back, the Captain and Judy grabbed her arms and secured them to the table legs. Then moving down to her legs, they spread them wide apart and tied them to the table legs as well. Now she layed there, spreadeagled on her table. The wood was cold on her naked skin and she felt so open. her pussy was in plain view for all to see and she hated it. Judy came over to her and played with her pussy and said, "Yes, Sir, it does look a little swollen, but that may be good. It will be easier to work with this way." sue cried more and begged, "Please, don't do any more to me. I have done everything you wanted, please let me go." They both laughed at her and the Captain said, "No, you haven't done everything I wanted. I told you that your cunt was now mine and no one else was to have it. But two times you fucked up and screwed someone else. So tonight we'll fix it so you won't fuck anyone again with out my permission." Just then the door bell rang and Judy said, "I'll get it. Must be Stephanie." sue was left alone on the table while Judy and the Captain both went to the door. she heard them talking. They were saying, "Come in, Stephanie, glad you could make it. Would you like a drink?" Stephanie accepted the drink and then asked, "Well, where is the subject and what do you need me to do with her." The Captain said, "Oh, she is in the living room. Hopefully she is just the way you need her. We'll explain what we want, once we are with her." They walked into the living room and Stephanie saw sue spread out on the table. sue was able to see her and watched as she laughed at the sight before her. Stephanie said, "Well now, this is a first. No one has ever given me such a willing subject before. So, what is it you nee?." Judy said, "Can we tell you in a minute? There is something else we want her to do first." "Sure," said Stephanie, "but you know my time here has to be paid for." The Captain spoke up and said, "Oh, you'll be paid well and even get something added to it." They all laughed and Stephanie said, "OK, what comes first." Judy said, "You cum first, Stephanie. We would like you to sit on this little slut's face and have her eat you. And we want to video tape it. Don't worry, your face won't be in it, just hers and your pussy." Stephanie hesitated with her answer, then said, "You know I'm not into girls, but if the price is right, I'll allow her to eat me. But don't expect anything like that from me. I don't eat pussy." Both the Captain and Judy said, "No, we won't expect that. If Judy wants her pussy licked, the slut will do it. We just want her to eat you. she doesn't enjoy eating cunt, so that's why we want it. Besides, you let men eat you, right? It isn't any different." "Well, OK," said Stephanie and started to get up on the table. But Judy asked, "Can you remove your panties first?" Laughing, Stephanie reached up under her skirt and took her panties off. Judy took them and then pushed them into sue's mouth. "Just to give her a little taste of what's to come next." Stephanie got up on the table and stood right over sue's face. sue looked up and saw her pussy. It was neatly trimmed, just like hers used to be. she didn't want to do any of this, but she had no other choice, since she couldn't get away. Stephanie started to squat down on sue's face and just before she had her pussy there, she reached down and pulled the panties from sue's mouth. She just sat down, smothering sue with her open slit. sue had no choice but to lick the cunt that was now on her face. It was the only way she could breath. sue hated this, especially since she really didn't know this girl. But she continued licking the pussy sitting on her face. Stephanie had never been eaten this way before. Usually it was some guy doing it, just so he could fuck her. But this was different. She didn't have to try and hurry to have an orgasm before she was fucked. She could stay on this face and ride it for as long as she desired. Stephanie always wanted to have one good cum from being eaten before she took a cock inside her. Now it was going to happen but without the cock afterwards. She loved it and tried to last as long as she could while this little slut licked her. She slid back and forth on sue's mouth and tongue, enjoying the feel. First into her hole and then on her clit and then back to her hole. She was in heaven and never knew how it would be with a woman. Now she thought about all the other women she knew and wondered if she could get them to suck her cunt, too. Even though she didn't want to lick another woman's pussy, she wouldn't stop any of them from licking hers. She could tell she was getting close and rode the little asian slut even more. She ground her cunt down onto the face below her and forced sue to suck in order to get air to breathe. The closer she got, the harder she rode and suddenly, Stephanie stiffened up and drove her cunt down hard, suffocating poor little sue. "AAAAAAAAGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHH,MMMMMMMMMMMMM,OOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHH,CCCCCCCCUUUUUUUMMM MMMMMMIIIIIIINNNNGGGGGGG!" screamed Stephanie as sue was doing her best to breath and lick this cunt even more. Finally, Stephanie got relaxed and pulled her body up off sue. "God that was great," she said. "I wouldn't mind more of that!" Judy laughed and said, "Stephanie, you can have her whenever you wish. Just let me know when." Judy grabbed Stephanie's panties and wiped up the beautiful woman's cunt juices with them. Once they were soaked with her cunt juice, she wadded them up into a ball and shoved them into sue's mouth. "Don't want her to forget your taste and we don't want her screaming either." "Now that you are well satisfied, Stephanie," said the Captain, "let me tell you what we want." "Sure," replied Stephanie, "I can't wait to find out." "Well, you see," started the Captain, "my slut fucked two guys without permission and now I want to lock up her cunt so it won't happen again. We figured that if you put two rings in her pussy lips, one toward the top the other near the bottom, I can put padlocks on her pussy so she can't use it." sue was stunned to hear this. she tried to protest, but the gag muffled all the meaningful sounds. Stephanie thought for a moment and then said, "That may work, but three would be better. Then she can be completely closed up and no one can get into her." The Captain thought for a moment, then said, "No, I think two will be enough. Put one about one-third the way down from the top and the other about one-third the way up from the bottom. Make sure she has the same two holes in each lip." OK," said Stephanie, "but if it isn't enough, I'll do the third hole free." "Very good," said the Captain, "now let's begin." Stephanie had all of her tools with her and laid them out on the table between sue's spread, open legs. Then she pulled her panties out of sue's mouth and wiped the juice and wetness from the slut's cunt. Of course, they went back into sue's mouth as soon as she was done. sue tried to beg for mercy while the panties were out, "No, please, Sir, please don't do that. i don't want holes in my cunt. Please. i'll do whatever you say, but please not that." Then the panties were back into her mouth. she couldn't talk anymore and the Captain just laughed saying, "Sorry ,cunt, but you disobeyed and I won't have that." sue was crying, tears running from her eyes, knowing it would hurt and that she would always be at the Captain's mercy. But what could she do? she was tied and gagged, and couldn't move. Stephanie started measuring the length of her cunt, taking a small marker to put a dot on each lip where she would put the holes. Satisfied that they were all even, she took an alcohol wipe and rubbed sue's swollen lips, making sure they were clean. "MMMMMMMPPPPPHHHHH," cried sue through the panty gag. The alcohol burned her lips and she was in agony. But it soon went away when the alcohol dried. she watched Stephanie as best she could, even though she couldn't see that area. Stephanie picked up her puncturing tool and held it up as if she was inspecting it. But she really wanted sue to see it. Stephanie was enjoying this and hoped she would be allowed to take some photos of her work for promotional purposes. Then sue felt Stephanie's fingers on her pussy. she tensed up, knowing what was coming, but she couldn't get away. Stephanie pulled out a pair of gripping tweezers and attached it to sue's puffy lip on the right side. "MMMMMMMM," mumbled sue, as her lip was pulled out, stretching it. The next thing she felt was the cold puncturing tool being place on her stretched lip. Then it happened. Stephanie squeezed and sue could not only feel the hole being made, but she also heard the skin being punctured. "AAAAAGGGGGHHHHHH,MMMMMMM,NNNNNNNNNN," she tried to scream but only muffled sounds came out of her mouth as the hole was made and the first ring was installed. Stephanie was working quickly, in order to get all the rings in before sue passed out. It wasn't long and the second hole was made in her tender pussy and now she had two rings attached. sue was sore from the abuse her cunt had taken over the past day and now it was suffering more. she didn't want anything near her pussy now. But Stephanie continued to work on her cunt. Finishing the right side, she moved to the left side and did the same. When she finished, sue had four little golden rings dangling from her cunt. Stephanie stood back to admire her work and Judy came over to get a closer look. She said, "Look Ron, we now have a place to attach all kinds of things to her. We can lock her up, but we can also put her on a leash or even put some weights on her." The Captain laughed as he saw Judy playing with the little rings. She pulled on them and twisted them. They were both enjoying the torment they were giving the little asian slut. Then he said, "OK, Judy, time to lock up my little cunt. she'll never fuck anyone again without permission." Judy went to the other room and got the locks that sue had picked out in the mall. She showed each of them to sue, asking, "Do you like this on or maybe this one?" sue just shook her head and cried. They were serious about locking up her pussy. she now wished she hadn't fucked Allen. And what was she going to tell him when they went to lunch again? The Captain picked out one nice lock and showed it to sue. He said, "Now, cunt, you are mine and only mine. Once I put this on you, you'll never take a cock in my cunt again, will you?" He reached down between her legs and played with the rings. "Do you think one lock will do?" he asked. "We can put it through all four rings and she'll have the lock right in the middle of her hole. I think that will look cute." Then he started feeding the loop of the lock through the rings. sue felt it going through the rings, knowing she would never be free again. Why didn't she just go back to China instead of agreeing to this torture? sue dreaded the fact that her cunt would now be locked and the only one that could free her would be the Captain, unless she went to someone to get it cut off. But that meant more humiliation for her, exposing her pussy to a stranger and having to explain how her cunt got locked up. she knew that once it CLICKED shut, she would never be free. her thoughts were interrupted by the Captain when he said, "OK, my little slut, it is now time to lock you up. I want you to repeat after me." she mumbled something that he didn't understand, so he removed the panties from her mouth, and asked, "Do you understand?" "Yyyyeesssss, Sir," she cried out the reply. "Good, now this is what you'll say," the Captain ordered. "i am a slut, owned by Master Ron, and to prove it, my cunt is locked and only Master can open it." she tried to say it just like him, but the words wouldn't come out, so he said, "OK, let's try it again." As he said the words again slowly, she repeated after him. He was laughing by the time he finished and just as she had said the last phrase, a very loud "CLICK" could be heard by the three people with her. sue heard it and broke out in tears, knowing she would never be free again.
SPREAD 'EM part 16 Once her pussy was locked up, they left her lying on the table, alone, naked and scared. The Captain said, "Well, Stephanie, I do hope you enjoyed doing this for us. Anything else we can do for you before you leave?" Stephanie just looked at the Captain for a few moments, and then replied, "Working on that little cunt made me horny. Never been fucked by a police captain," she continued, with a grin on her face. This made the Captain smile, and he responded, "Ok, let's go!" They left sue alone while they all went to the big bedroom. Judy and the Captain started stripping, but Stephanie just stood and watched until Judy said, "Come on, Steph, get naked!" Stephanie shrugged, stripped out of her clothes, and the Captain gently guided her to the bed. He said, "Judy, why don't you warm her up a little and then I'll fuck her." Judy wasn't really into eating pussy, but since the Captain wanted it, she would do it. She would do anything for the man she loved. Getting on the bed with Stephanie, Judy started with her nice little tits, sucking them, making the nipples nice and hard. Then she moved down her belly to her neatly trimmed pussy and started licking. Stephanie was getting hotter by the minute and just before she was ready to cum the Captain stopped Judy. He said, "OK, now my turn." He got between Stephanie's legs, his cock pointing straight at her open hole. Then he moved forward and entered her. Pushing slowly, he got all the way in and began to rock back and forth, fucking the sweet little cunt. He went slowly to start with, but soon she was bucking her hips up to connect with him. She was one hot little lady and knew how to fuck. As they rocked back and forth, his cock pounding her wet pussy, Stephanie was getting really hot. It wasn't long and both of the seemed to freeze in time as they came together. "MMMMMMMM,AAAAAAAAGGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHHH,OOOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHH,YYYYYYYEEEEEESSSSSSS SS,FFFFFFUUUUUCCCCCCKKKKKK,CCCCCCCCCCCCUUUUUUMMMMMMMMMIIIINNNNGGGG!" was all that could be heard from the two lovers. Once they finished, they lay together for a moment and then the Captain got up, allowing Stephanie to move. Judy said, "Wow, never thought I would enjoy seeing you fuck someone else, but that was hot. Let's get susie to clean you both up now." Laughing, they went back into the living room to where sue lay on the cold table. The Captain put his cock to her mouth and said, "susie slut, I just finished fucking Stephanie and you are going to lick both of us clean. Now get busy." sue had no other option at this time, since she was still tied to the table, so she began to suck on the Captain's cock, cleaning all the cum and cunt juice from it. He was beginning to get hard again from her sucking and his shaft started going into her throat. But he didn't want to cum in her mouth. Instead, he would take Judy into the bedroom and fuck her. He pulled out and smiled at the bound Chinese slut. Then he helped Stephanie up on the table and positioned her over sue's face. sue looked straight up into her cunt and saw the first few drops of his cum appear at the opening and dribble out onto her lips. Stephanie squatted down, covering sue's face with her freshly fucked pussy. Once she was all the way down, the Captain said, "OK, now, she isn't getting off until all my cum has been sucked out of her and you make her cum. So, start sucking, bitch!" sue wanted this to end so she started on Stephanie's cunt. Licking and sucking, she tasted the mixed juices from them both. His cum mixed with her pussy juice! It tasted somewhat different from the first time she had to eat Stephanie, but she continued, knowing that if she didn't finish this girl off, she would be in trouble once again. sue continued until she felt Stephanie tighten up and grind her cunt harder down on the little slut's mouth, almost suffocating her. Then, it happened. "OOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHH,AAAAAAAAAHHHHHHHHHH,YYYYYYYEEEEEES," screamed Stephanie, as she had an orgasm in sue's mouth. Weak from all the sex she had had this evening, Stephanie cautiously got up from sue's mouth and Judy helped her off the table. Then Stephanie dressed and left. The Captain said, "OK, cunt, we are going to bed now and will see you in the morning. Don't go anywhere." They both laughed and left the room, turning off the light as they left. sue lay there on the hard table, aching from being kept in one position all this time. her cunt lips were sore from the piercing, and she wanted to cum so bad. she couldn't figure out why she got so wet, hot and horny when they abused her, but it happened every time. Finally, sue fell asleep listening to the other two fucking in what used to be her bed. The next morning, sue was awakened when she was touched on her pussy. she opened her eyes and saw the Captain and Judy standing around her, the Captain was checking her lock and rings. she was stiff and hoped they would let her up soon. "Glad to see you awake slut," said the Captain. "We have to get to work soon, but before I leave, there are some things I need to explain." "And you better listen good, susie, or you'll be in big troubl,." added Judy. The Captain continued, "Now, as you might have guessed, I didn't weld those rings into your pussy lips, which means they can be removed." sue had hopes now, knowing they could be taken out, and planned to do so as soon as she was alone. They couldn't keep her pussy locked up forever. "But if you take them out," said the Captain, "a couple of things will happen. First, I'll take you to a doctor that I know real well and have him install a permanent zipper on your lips, which will be locked. He will do it for me since I let him off the hook a few years ago when he was caught performing illegal abortions. He owes me." sue stared blankly at him. No one could put a zipper on a cunt. Or could they? she had never heard of this before, but was sure the Captain could get it done. "And secondly," he continued, "I'll bring your little sister here and make her into a whore, just like you used to be when you were younger." sue started crying. Why had she ever told anyone about her family? Especially her little sister, Lynn. She was innocent and sue didn't want her being taken, to be made to fuck like she used to, in order to help support her family. "PPPPlllllleeeaaasssseeee, Sir, don't do that to my sister. she is so young and innocent. Please!" cried sue, the tears running down her cheeks. "I won't do either as long as you do as you are told," the Captain told her. "You leave that pussy locked up and everything will stay just as it is. You unlock it and I'll do what I said. Understand cunt!" "Yyyyyeeeesssss ,Sir," she cried. "Good, now I have to get to work. Judy has your clothes laid out on your bed. She'll untie you so you can clean up and get dressed for work. I'll see you at the station," he said as he walked out of the house. Judy untied her and let her get up. her knees were weak and she was stiff all over. she had a hard time walking to the little bathroom to shower and shave. Once she had finished getting clean, she went to her new little bedroom and saw the clothes on the bed. It was her uniform skirt and blouse. Nothing else, except her shoes. she quickly put them on and noticed they had been altered. The blouse had been taken in so it was extremely tight on her and the skirt had been fixed so the hemline was just below her cunt. she even thought the lock dangling from her cunt lips could be seen if she walked. How could she wear something like this to work? she found Judy in the kitchen and pleaded with her. "Please, Mistress," she begged, "please don't make me wear this to work. Everyone will think i am a slut and might even see my locked up pussy. Please let me wear something else." "No, you will wear what I give you and nothing else," said Judy as she finished her coffee. "Now, let's get to work." They got into the car, with Judy driving, and headed for work. As they were driving, Judy said, "susie, I am sorry, but I didn't give you time to eat. Would you like to stop for breakfast?" "Yes, Ma'am, i am hungry, but could we just go through a drive through," said sue. "Maybe," said Judy, as she continued to drive. Suddenly she pulled into a restaurant, but it didn't have a drive up window. She said, "OK, slut, here is five bucks, go in and get your breakfast." "Please, Ma'am, let's go to a drive up instead," begged sue, "i can't go in like this. Please!" "No, if you don't get out right now and go get breakfast, I'll strip you naked and then you can go in," said Judy. "And if I have to do that, you'll stay naked for the rest of the day." sue was crying, not wanting to be out in public like this, but she knew Judy would do just what she said, so she got out of the car and went into the restaurant to get her breakfast. she knew she looked like a hooker in a cop uniform, but she managed to get the breakfast quickly and get back to the car. As she ate on the way to the station, Judy didn't say anymore. All was silent until they got to the station and walked inside. Just inside the door was a large poster that said, "Halloween costume party. Saturday Night. Patrols cut to minimum so everyone can attend. COSTUMES will be worn! For officers only!" Judy saw it and exclaimed, "Look, susie, we can dress you up and take you out Saturday night. I think your new role as a slut slave will be perfect!" sue just hung her head, knowing that between Judy and the Captain, she would be so humiliated in front of everyone. All the other cops that knew her would see just how much of a slut they had made her. Judy walked with her to the Captain's office and entered. sue knew she should strip for them, but decided to stay dressed as long as she could. Even though she didn't have a lot on, at least it covered most of her private areas. The Captain was sitting at his desk and looked up, saying, "sergeant lee, we are going on patrol today. Just you and me. So, I need you to get the car ready." "Yes, Sir," she said as she headed out to the garage. sue got all the necessary items ready and loaded them into the car, then checked it over, making sure it was full of gas. As she was finishing the inspection, the Captain appeared and said, "Ready to go?" "Yes, Sir, it is," replied sue. They got in the car with the Captain driving. He left the garage and headed onto the street. He had decided to make her feel like a true slut whore today and headed for a sleazy section of town. He knew there would be some bums wandering around and would take advantage of them and of her. As he drove, he explained her role today. "You will obey me in everything I say, no matter what it may be. We won't be making any arrests, but we will be talking to some people. And remember, if you fuck up, I know where your sister is." sue cried harder now, knowing that if she didn't do what he wanted, her little innocent sister would be dragged into his games. she didn't want this and decided that she would do as she was told, at least for today. He drove through the town and turned into a street known to have some really sleazy people walking around. Most of them were homeless and dirty. He spotted an older man walking down the street and followed behind him until the man turned into an alleyway. Perfect, thought the Captain and pulled into the alley behind him. He turned on his lights and using the PA system in his cruiser, he told the man to stop. The man didn't know what to do, so he stopped and turned toward the two police officers. The Captain motioned him over to the car and spoke to him. sue didn't hear what he said at first, since the Captain spoke very low. But then he spoke louder and she heard him ask the man, "How would you like to have your cock sucked today?" The dirty old man said, "Uuuuhhhh, yea, sure." Then the Captain turned to sue and said, "Well, whore, time to earn your pay. Get out in front of the car and strip for me, then get on your knees." "Bbbbbbbuuuuutttt, Sir," she cried, "i can't do that!" "OK, I'll make a call and your sister will do it soon!" said the Captain. sue cried and got out. she went to the front of the car and removed her little uniform, then got on her knees. she heard the Captain say, "OK, fella, go get your cock sucked." The man walked up to sue and pulled his dick out of his pants and aimed it at sue's mouth. He pushed it toward her lips. she could smell the pissy odor on him and almost gagged, but not wanting to get her sister in trouble, she opened her mouth and took his dirty cock into her mouth and started sucking. "God, how nasty this is. His cock is so dirty and i can't imagine what his cum will be like," she thought to herself as she sucked on him. It didn't take very long and the man stiffened and pushed his cock deep into her throat. He was cumming in her mouth and it tasted so bad she almost puked. But she didn't and was able to swallow it all. The man pulled his cock from her mouth and put it back into his dirty pants and started to leave, but the Captain stopped him. "sergeant lee, thank the good man for letting you suck him," he said. "Ttthhhhannnkkk you, Sir, for leting me ssssuuuuccckkkk yyyyooouurrr ccccccooooocccckkkk," she cried. The man said, "You are welcome and you can do that anytime." Then he walked away leaving sue on her knees. Just as she was about to get up, another man walked into the alley and saw her there. This one wasn't quite as dirty, but she could tell he was still a bum. The Captain leaned out of the window and said, "Since you have been seen like this, slut, suck him off, too." God how she hated him for this, but she had no choice but to humiliate herself once again or risk the chance of getting her sister in trouble. So she pulled his cock out and started sucking it too. He came in her mouth very quickly and she was forced to swallow his load. Then the Captain said, "Now, slut, show him your cunt!" sue turned bright red as she stood up and pushed her cunt out. The man laughed as he saw the lock on it, but had a puzzled look. The Captain told her to tell him why it was like this. sue cringed and said, "my cunt is locked up because i disobeyed my master. It is his cunt and i fucked someone else, so he locked it up." she was crying and very humiliated now. The man turned and walked away, laughing. The Captain told her to get up and get dressed since he had some other stops to make before going back to the station. sue quickly got dressed and got back into the car. she said, "Captain, Sir, that was not right. How do i know they don't have a disease." "You don't, slut, but that's the chance sluts like you have to take. Now shut up!" said the Captain. The Captain made a few more stops, but always left sue in the car by herself. she had no idea what he was doing, but she was sure she wasn't going to like it. Once he returned to the car, he always put something in the trunk. After his last stop, he headed back to the station to see if Judy had all the preparations made for Saturday night.
SPREAD 'EM part 17 Getting back to the station, the two went inside and sue had to get the paperwork caught up before they could go home. she heard others talking about the party, discussing their costumes and laughing about some of them. sue still didn't know how she would be dressed, or even if they would allow her to get dressed. she just hoped it wouldn't humiliate her too much. Judy came by and said, "susie, I think the Captain is about ready to leave, so why don't you go to the car and wait for us." sue put her things away and got up to walk out, but just as she was going by the Captain's door she was stopped. Judy said, "While you are waiting for us, susie slut, I expect you to find a cock to suck. Don't take long finding one, since we'll be right out." And the Captain added, "Don't try to hide either. Just suck someone right there by the car!" sue turned red with shame. How could she suck a cock in the police station parking lot without being seen? she didn't reply to them, just walked out to the car. she noticed that they could watch her from the window in the Captain's office and knew if she didn't do what she was told, she would get in trouble. And she also figured they wouldn't come out until she was on her knees sucking someone's cock. Getting to the car, she felt lucky, because Allen was just getting ready to leave too. He said, "Hi, Sue!" "Hi, Allen, can i ask you something?" she said. He came over to the car where sue was standing and said, "Sure, sergeant, anything." Then sue got all red in the face, knowing this was going to be hard, but she had to do it and since he had fucked her once, sucking his cock would be easy. However, it wouldn't be easy right here in the lot. she said to him, "Allen, ccccaaannnnn i ssuucckk you?" He didn't know what to say at first, but then said, "Sure, let's find a place to go." Totally embarrassed, she said, "No, right here, right now." "But someone will see you doing it and you'll get in trouble and I probably will too," he said. But she was already on her knees in front of him, unzipping his uniform pants, pulling out his cock. Once she had it out and in her mouth, he really couldn't do anything but stand there and allow his sergeant to suck him off. The Captain and Judy watched her doing it and then went outside. Allen saw them approaching and tried to push sue away, but she kept him right in her mouth and wouldn't let him move. The other two came up to them and the Captain said, "sergeant, what are you doing?" she didn't remove her mouth from Allen's cock, but managed to roll her eyes up to the Captain, pleading with him to let her stop, but he just laughed when he saw the humiliated look on her face and said, "Oh, I see. You are sucking a cock. Good little girl. Don't worry rookie, she does this a lot." Just about that time, Allen pushed all the way into her throat and shot his heavy load down her throat. As soon as he was done, he pulled out and stuffed his shrinking dick back into his pants and tried to leave. But the Captain said, "Wait a minute, she has something else to show you!" Allen followed the Captain's orders, just stood there, wondering what was going on. He didn't want to disobey an order from a superior, but didn't want to be there with them, either. "Stand up, sergeant," ordered the Captain. she stood and then he said, "Now, show him what is under your skirt and tell him why it is like that." "PPPpppppppllllleeeeaaassseee, Sir, not that!" she begged. "SHOW HIM!" he yelled. Startled, she raised her skirt up to expose her locked cunt. she couldn't look at Allen and just held her head down in shame, and the tears rolled down her cheeks. "Now, tell him why!" ordered the Captain. Allen was looking at her pussy, seeing the tiny lock hanging from the rings in her lips. He was dumbfounded and couldn't say anything. "Bbbbbeeecccaauuse i fucked you!" she cried. "I don't understand," said Allen. "Why would you have your pussy locked up like that just because we fucked?" "Tell him, slut!" ordered the Captain. "i was told not to fuck anyone, but i was so horny, i fucked you," cried sue, "Now, he has my cunt locked up and won't release me unless he wants to." The Captain laughed and said, "You see, rookie, she is my slut whore and will do what I say. But she disobeyed when she allowed you to fuck her. Now, she is locked up so no one can use that juicy cunt except me." "Oh," was all Allen could say. The Captain told him he could leave and hoped he would be at the party, because he might get some more if he attended. And also said, "Don't worry about your girlfriend. she's in good hands." Allen almost ran away, not knowing what was happening, but didn't really want any part of it, but he also liked fucking sue and she did give good blowjobs. Maybe he would attend the costume party. The other three got into the car and headed home. The ride home was quiet, but as soon as they arrived, the Captain ordered sue out of the car and into the house. Once inside, Judy said, "OK susie slut, strip!" sue removed her clothes and stood before them naked. How she hated doing this, but she didn't want the alternatives to happen. So she complied with their wishes. As soon as she was naked, the Captain said, "Shit, I forgot to get the things out of the trunk. sue, be a sweet little slut and go get them." sue started to put some clothes back on, but was stopped. The Captain said, "No, get them just like that." It was still daylight outside and sue knew she would probably be seen, since it was quitting time for everyone and there was a lot of traffic. she tried to convince him to let her put something on, but he wouldn't budge. He said, "You either go like that, or I'll make sure your little sister is at the party tomorrow night!" sue hung her head in shame and headed for the door. There was no way she was going to allow her sister to be used by these evil people. So she went to the car, naked. Opening the trunk, she grabbed bags, hoping she could get them all. But it seemed there were more than she expected and that she would have to make a second trip. It was on her second trip to the car that she heard the horn. she looked up to see a car full of young boys stopped right beside the Captain's car. They were all hanging out of the windows and shouting. The driver kept blowing the horn. sue started to go back into the house, but was stopped by the Captain. He said, "I told you to get the things from the car, now move it!" "Bbbuuuuuttttt, Sir, there are boys out there watching," sue cried. "I don't care who sees you. Do what I said," demanded the Captain. sue slowly turned back around and started walking toward the car. The boys were still watching and shouting crude remarks toward her. As she got to the car and reached in the trunk to get the last of the bags, the Captain stepped up beside her. He looked at the boys and said, "How would you like to get your cocks sucked tonight, boys?" ", NO, Sir," cried sue. The boys all looked at him and said, "Hell, yes!" "Come on over her then," said the Captain. "susie, get on your knees!" The boys jumped out of the car and walked toward sue, who was now on her knees. The boys couldn't believe this was happening, but had started pulling their cocks out anyway. The Captain said, "OK, now, one at a time, feed my little cunt your cock. she'll suck you all until you cum and swallow every drop you have. If you don't want her sucking your cock, then you can fuck her in the ass. I would let you fuck her cunt, but it is kind of locked up right now. So, enjoy. susie, when they get done, get the rest of the bags and bring them in." she knew she had to do it, so as the first boy stepped up, she took his hard cock in her mouth and began to suck. she wanted to get all of them done quickly and get back into the house. But the first one seemed to take forever. He face-fucked her for a long time and finally stiffened and shot his load down her throat, forcing her to swallow. The next one stepped up for his blowjob and shoved his cock into her mouth. He also face- fucked the little naked asian until he shot his load. Then the third one stepped up, but as she was about to take his cock into her mouth he said, "NO, I want your ass!" sue cried, knowing it would be painful in her ass. she had been fucked there before at the jail, and she knew it would hurt. The boy grabbed the lock in her ear, pulling her up, and then forcing her to bend over, and without any lubrication, he drove his large cock all the way in. Then he just fucked her without caring for her pain or need. He fucked her hard, deep and fast until he shot a huge load of cum deep inside her bowels. Then he pulled out and the fourth boy stepped up and shoved his cock down her throat. He fucked her mouth for a short time and then filled it with his cum. sue hated doing this, but her cunt was dripping with juices, running down her naked legs. Why did her cunt betray her like this? she hated being a slut, but loved it at the same time. It seemed her cunt was thinking more and more for her all the time. The boys thanked her for the good time, got in there car and left her standing there naked, with cum running from her mouth and tortured ass. she quickly grabbed the rest of the bags and ran into the house. Once in the house, Judy and Ron both laughed at how she looked, with cum on her face and running out of her ass, along with her cunt dripping her juicy moisture. she was told to get a shower and then they would try on her outfit for the party. sue got into the shower and washed away the awful feeling she had. But it still wasn't enough to cleanse her heart, since she felt it was wrong to be like this. she cleaned up, dried off and returned to the living room. As she entered the room, she noticed numerous items on the table, knowing she wouldn't be very comfortable tomorrow at the party, if she had to have all of these things on or in her. But she was a brave girl and went right to the two tormentors and positioned her self before them. she would not give in, but she would play their game. she asked, "How may this slut serve you?" This was something the other two had not expected and sat in silence for a moment. Had they finally broke her?. Was she actually agreeing to be their slut? Would she do whatever they said at anytime? They were confused by the sudden change in sue, but knew they still had a lot to do before the six months were up. Once they had done it all, she would always be theirs for whatever they desired, and they still had so much they wanted to do with her. As sue was looking at all the items on the table, the Captain told her, "you are going to the party as our little slave girl. you will wear whatever we put on you and you won't complain. At the party, you'll look and act just like a slave and will perform your duties without question." "Yes, Sir," replied sue, feeling confident that they wouldn't make her do the things they had done to her already. Or at least she hoped not. Judy said, as she picked up one of the items, "Now, let's try all of this on, so we know it fits and what you look like." Judy had sue kneel before her and she slipped a nice shiny choker around her neck. It was the kind that when the end is pulled, it tightens. sue felt the coldness of the metal on her neck and felt the weight as it hung down. The Captain said, "Mmmm, that looks nice on the slut. Maybe we'll just leave it on forever. Now, let's try the leash." Judy picked the leash up from the table and examined it. She said, "How do you want it on her?" The Captain laughed and said, "Well, let's thread it through the loop on the choker and then bring it down to attach it to her cunt lock." Judy took the end and started pushing it through the loop until it reached her cunt. Then, she SNAPPED the clip to her cunt lock. sue felt it CLICK into place and also felt the additional weight pulling on her lips. The Captain stood up and took the other end of the leash and pulled. sue wasn't expecting this and yelled, "OOOOOOWWWWWWWWWW, it hurts!" "It is supposed to, slut," the Captain replied. "This way we can get your attention real quick and when you are dressed, no one else will know how it is connected to your pussy." "Can we take her for a walk with it?" asked Judy. "Sure," said the Captain, "that's why I bought it extra long. Why don't you try it out?" Judy took the leash and pushed sue down so she was on all fours. Then she tugged the leash, which tightened the choker and pulled her pussy lips toward her belly. If she didn't move at all, the pulling would either choke her or tear her pussy lips. she had no choice except to follow. Judy walked around the room with her new little pet, pulling on the leash to make sue do anything she wanted. She walked faster which made sue crawl as fast as she could so she didn't get hurt. Both Judy and Ron laughed at her predicament, knowing that when they went to the party, sue would behave. Bringing her back to the Captain, Judy picked up the next item. She looked at them and questioned, "What are these things?" The Captain said, "Let me show you. Stand up cunt!" sue stood up, feeling better than on her hands and knees. He pulled out the key to her pussy lock and released it. Then he said, "These are called Ben Wa balls and they lodge themselves inside her cunt. When she walks or moves, they also move inside her. Supposed to keep her in a constant state of arousal and from what I hear, will not allow her to cum." Judy laughed as she took the two balls and pushed them inside sue's dripping cunt. As soon as they were inside, she closed the lock and said, "Now, she can't get them out and she'll walk around dripping all the time. I like that!" To prove how they worked, Judy took the leash and led sue to the opposite side of the room and back again. By the time they returned, sue was panting like she was a bitch in heat. The combination of the balls and the constant tug on her cunt made her so hot. her pussy was flowing like a river now, with juices running down the insides of both legs. "OK, now let's get her tied up for the night so we can go fuck," said the Captain, "I am so horny from all of this. We'll put the rest together tomorrow before the party." Judy picked up some other items and lead her into the bedroom. she put sue on the bed and then handcuffed her hands behind her back. Next came the shackles for her feet which consisted of an ankle cuff for each foot, connected together by a short chain. Then, Judy connected her hands and feet together, drawing her feet up under her body. By doing this, her locked up pussy was on full display. It would have been wide open if it hadn't been locked shut. Satisfied the little slut wouldn't go anyplace, Judy turned to leave. But before she left, she ran her finger nails over sue's swollen pussy and clit. sue wanted to cum, but just as she was about to climax, Judy stopped and left her all alone. sue cried herself to sleep with the sounds of Judy fucking Ron in her big bed echoing in her head.
SPREAD 'EM part 18 sue woke up the next morning to something running along her pussy. she opened her eyes and saw Judy standing beside her, playing with her cunt. God that felt good and wanted it to continue. sue pushed her cunt up toward Judy's fingers as best she could, but just as she was about to cum Judy stopped. "Time to get up, slut," said Judy, "we have lots of things to do today before the party tonight." She started to undo the chain between sue's feet and hands and gave her some time to stretch out before making her get up. As soon as she was standing, Judy took the leash and began to pull on it. This brought pain to sue's cunt lips as it tightened and pulled her lips upward. "Let's go piss before we eat and get dressed," said Judy as she led sue out of the bedroom and toward the front door. sue questioned, "The bathroom is the other way, Ma'am." "I know that, susie slut, but today we are going to piss outside. So, let's move it!" stated Judy. "Pppplllleeeeaasseee, no," cried sue,"i can't do that!" But Judy kept on pulling and sue had no choice but to follow or get her pussy lips pulled off. So, she followed her out the door and into the front yard. It was daylight out and a few cars were driving by. sue felt so embarrassed and humiliated being out in public, chained up like a common slave, never knowing who might see her. Judy got to the middle of the yard and stopped. She said, "OK, cunt, do it!" sue hated this bitch more now than ever. she started to squat to piss, but Judy stopped her and said, "No, stand there, spread your legs as far as you can and piss!" sue didn't move. she didn't want this to happen, especially here in front of whoever might drive by. That is until Judy said, "You either piss now or you'll stay out here all day until you do. And, if you take too long, you'll go the rest of the day naked. Even when we go to the mall. Now piss, bitch!" sue was shocked, knowing that Judy would be true to her word. So she opened her legs as far as the chains on her ankles would let her. But that wasn't very far apart. she strained and finally the first dribble of piss escaped her pussy. Then as she relaxed a little, the flow got stronger. she was pissing down her legs and when the stream hit the ground, it splattered back up onto her feet. Finally she finished. Judy watched the whole thing. she was laughing as she knew a few cars had passed by, but sue hadn't seen them. she was too busy concentrating on pissing and had closed her eyes. she didn't see the mayor of the city drive by. And she didn't notice that he had stopped for a short time to watch. He knew who it was and would have to call the Captain later about it. Once she finished, Judy led her back into the house for breakfast. Taking sue into the kitchen, she noticed a plate on the table and also two bowls on the floor. Judy said, "OK, now let's eat so we can get ready to go shopping." She pushed sue toward the bowls and then forced her to her knees in front of them. "Now, eat everything I have fixed for you and be sure to drink your milk," ordered Judy. sue was quite hungry, so lowered her head to the bowl and started to eat. How terrible it tasted to her, but she didn't stop. she was determined to do it so they wouldn't involve her little sister. sue wasn't sure what it was, but it tasted like cold oatmeal and the milk had gotten warm. But she endured it and finished it all. When she was done, Judy took her to the bathroom to wash up and then to get dressed for the day. They were going shopping for the proper outfit a slut should wear as a costume. Judy removed all the cuffs and chains from her, except for the collar, and then had her dress. she was given a short dress that buttoned up the front and Judy even let her button it. It seemed a little too small for sue and she asked, "Can't i wear something else? This seems to be too small for me." "NO, you'll wear it and like it!" replied Judy, then added, "unless you would rather go naked today and save the dress for your sister." "i'll wear it," cried sue, "but i won't like it." "And put on the 6-inch heels. you know how the Captain likes them." she finished dressing. As she followed Judy out the door, she turned briefly to look in the full-length mirror on the hallway door. The haircut revealed the lock which hung from her ear. The collar was tight against her neck. The dress was far too small, and the high heels guaranteed that the lock hanging from her pussy was only an inch or so from being visible. they left the house, heading for the mall. Pulling into the parking lot, Judy parked the farthest she could from the mall entrance and told sue to get out. As they started to walk, Judy said, "now, susie slut, walk in front of me and swing your little whore ass like the slut you are." sue started walking, determined to keep Judy happy today. Maybe she wouldn't be so mean to her if she just did what she was told to do. But sue didn't expect too much sympathy from this bitch. Judy added, "And, when I say 'Top', you'll unbutton a button from the top of your dress. Then when I say 'Bottom', you'll undo one from the bottom. your hands will be behind your back, just as if they were cuffed there at all times, except to unbutton. Do you understand, slut?" "Yyyyyeeesssss, Ma'am," cried sue. As she was walking through the parking lot, a gust of wind blew and her little dress flew up, exposing her ass and cunt. she automatically reached down to hold it in place. Judy saw this and said, "TOP!" "Oh, no," thought sue, as she reached up to undo a button. "i fucked up and didn't leave my hands behind me and this bitch is making me pay. Concentrate, sue." Judy spoke to her, saying, "Every time you fuck up, you will undo a button and from now on, you will keep your hands where they belong. I don't care if the wind blows your clothes off, keep them there." They continued walking, with sue fighting the urge to keep her dress down. The wind kept blowing it up and sue knew she was being seen by others. Getting to the door, Judy opened it and they got inside. sue felt better, knowing the wind wouldn't blow the dress up anymore, but was shocked when Judy said, "BOTTOM!" "Bbbbbuuuutttt," sue started to say, but was cut off with "TOP!" from Judy. sue reached down to undo a bottom button and then up to a top one. her breasts were now starting to show more and she knew that she would have to behave or she would be naked at some point. Judy explained, "Every time you disobey or question me, you'll undo one, so go ahead and make my day, talk some more, cunt." sue was silent as they continued walking down the hall, until Judy found the clothing store she was looking for. she told sue to go inside and to stay with her and to keep her mouth shut. Judy looked through the racks of clothes and picked out the items she had been looking for. sue watched her picking them out and started to comment, but only got out, "Ppllleeaasee." "BOTTOM!" ordered Judy! sue forgot she wasn't to talk as she reached down and undid one more button. she only had a few left now and had to watch what she did, unless she actually wanted to be naked. her mind said no, but her cunt was dripping wet and said yes. sue was so horny now, especially since those Ben Wa balls were still inside her, moving around, keeping her aroused all the time, along with the thought of being exposed in public. she hated her self for feeling this way, but her cunt loved it. Judy had the items she needed and headed for the check out. sue followed her and was made to sign the slip for the purchases on her credit card. This is what she hated the most. Having to pay for items she didn't even want. her credit card was beginning to get full and she didn't know how she would ever pay it off. Walking out of the store, Judy told her to follow. sue walked behind her this time, knowing that as she walked, her dress kept opening up just enough for others to get a glimpse at her naked cunt and the padlock hanging from her lips. Judy got close to the stairwell to go to the next floor and turned around just in time to see sue push her dress back down. She ordered, "TOP, BOTTOM!" sue knew that would only leave her with one button to keep her dress closed. she went ahead and undid the two buttons. Standing there with her dress almost completely undone, Judy said to her. "I told you before not to touch, but it seems you disobey all the time. I have a mind to make you strip right here and walk around naked. Do you want that, whore?" "Nnnnnooooo, Ma'am" stuttered sue, bowing her head in shame. "OK, let's go upstairs for a minute, then we can go home," said Judy. They walked up the stairs and sue could feel the eyes on her. A group of boys had gathered at the bottom and watched as the two girls walked up the stairs. sue heard the comments, knowing they could see all of her nakedness. she was crying in shame as they reached the top of the stairs. Judy looked around, searching for a small, quiet area to take her slut. She noticed an alcove at the far end with no one there at the time. She told sue to follow once again. About half way to the alcove, Judy turned and said, "Last one, cunt!" sue hated her, but reached around to undo the last of her buttons. her cunt was really getting juicy and was dripping down her legs. it was also right out in plain view for anyone who happened to be looking. It even got worse when she put her hands behind her back, since her dress opened up even more. Finally, they got to the little alcove and Judy said, "OK, cunt, take these clothes and change." sue looked around for a place to go, but then realized that Judy expected her to change right there in the alcove. she didn't want to do it and said, "Pppllleeeaaasssee, let me go to the ladies room to change. Please, Mistress." "NO, you will do it right here, right now!" yelled Judy. "i i i i i i can't," cried sue, "i i i i i i just can't do it!" "Then I'll pull that dress off you and leave you here to figure out how to get home by yourself. Now, get moving!" ordered sue's Mistress. sue didn't want to be left there in the mall naked, knowing the bitch would do just what she said, so she went into the alcove and removed her dress. she pulled the new clothes out of the bag, but before she could get them on, two men walked up to Judy. "Hi, Judy," said one of the men. "I have missed you since you moved. How's things going?" He hadn't seen the naked sue yet, and she did her best to try to hide behind the clothes she was holding in her hands. "Hector, how you doing?" said Judy. "Things are going great in my new house. And you? Doing OK?" Hector was the security guard at her old apartment complex and had always taken good care of Judy. He watched out for her and didn't allow anyone to bother her. "Now, Judy, I told you to call me Hec," he said. "What're you doing today?" "Oh, just a little shopping for my friend here. sue, meet Hec. Hec, meet sue." Judy was in her glory now, making sue expose herself to someone she knew. Hec looked into the alcove and saw the little, naked asian girl. "WOW," he said, "does she do this often. I mean, doesn't she know you can't change clothes out here in public." "Yes, she knows better, but I won't let her go anyplace else. You see, she is my slave slut and does what I say. She is also a cop!" stated Judy, knowing sue was feeling really humiliated now. "I don't believe that," said Hec. "Do you, Joe?" Judy said, "Well it's true and I can prove it if you want." "Sure, show me," answered Hec and his friend Joe added, "No one does this kind of thing, do they?" "susie slut, put down your clothes and show these nice men your cunt," ordered Judy. Totally embarrassed and humiliated, sue lowered her clothes and stood before them totally naked. she knew she had to show them her lock, so she just spread her legs and thrust her pubic bone out. she knew if she didn't do it, she would get into big trouble and didn't know what this bitch Judy would do if she didn't do as she was told. "Tell my friends why there is a lock on your pussy." "my cunt is locked up because i disobeyed my master. It is his cunt and i fucked someone else, so he locked it up," sue answered, barely able to get the final words out before she started crying. "WOW," said Hec and Joe together. "Maybe you are telling the truth. What else will she do?" "she sucks cock real good, too. Want to have a blowjob, Hec?" asked Judy. "UUHHH, sure, why not!" said Hec. "On your knees slut! you know what to do, now do it!" ordered Judy. sue was shaking now. she was going to be made to suck a cock right here in public and she was still naked. But she got on her knees as Hec walked into the alcove, unzipping his pants and letting his big hard cock out. He got up to sue and she just opened her mouth and started sucking. sue was thinking, "i'll just suck him off and get it over with. Then maybe i can get out of here." Hec was actually fucking her face now and it wasn't long before he stiffened and shot his heavy load down her throat. she swallowed it all and pulled back off his cock. she started to get up, but Judy said, "Not yet cunt, Joe wants one, too." sue looked up and saw Joe walking toward her with his cock out. God, how she hated this. she didn't even know these guys and she was sucking them off like some whore. Right here in public. What was she becoming? And to make it worse, her cunt was really getting juicy and she needed to cum so bad. she sucked the second cock down her throat and made him cum, too. But this time it was different. she came at the same time he did. she had never cum from sucking cock before and wondered if it was because she was so horny or if it was because she was doing it in public. Once Joe came in her mouth, he pulled out and stepped back, zipping up his pants. That's when sue heard , "CLAP,CLAP,CLAP." she looked up and saw she had an audience. There were five boys standing there watching her suck cock. her face was now turning a bright red and she just hung her head in shame. Judy helped her out, by saying, "OK, slut, get dressed so we can go get ready for the party tonight. You can all watch her, but we really do have to go." sue quickly picked up her new clothes and started putting them on. The blouse was very thin and she knew her little tits were showing through the material. The skirt wasn't as short as the dress she had had on, but it was tight around her waist. It had a slit up the side of it, which opened up whenever she moved. Judy was just talking to Hec and Joe, and sue heard her say, "Why don't you all come to the party tonight as my special guests. Hec, you know all the guys from the station anyway and they'll be glad to see you. And I promise you'll have some additional fun if you come." "Sure, we'll be there," said Hec. "I guess we'll have to wear a costume, too?" "Of course," said Judy, "everyone will be in costume. And be sure to wear a mask. That way no one will know you until later on." Judy looked over at sue, who was now dressed, but she didn't have the skirt the right way. So she reached over and undid the snap to the skirt and turned it so the slit was in the front. Then she said, "That's better. This way I can attach your leash right to your cunt and the clothes won't be in the way." sue looked down and noticed that her pussy was totally visible and the little skirt wouldn't close anymore to hide it. she cried and lowered her head, wanting out of there as fast as she could. Judy reached into her purse and brought out the leash. Then reaching between sue's legs, hooked it to her pussy lock and gave it a quick jerk indicating sue was to follow. Judy led the humiliated sue out of the alcove, past the group of people watching, down the stairs and out to the car. Then they went home to get ready for the party. It would take a little while to get both of them ready.
SPREAD 'EM part 19 They arrived back home and Judy led sue into the house by the leash attached to her pussy. The Captain was there and laughed as he watched the two walk up the driveway. He really enjoyed having a slut to play with and another female to fuck whenever he wanted. Of course, with his connections, he could have anyone he wanted and someday, he would have another little asian whore. sue's little sister would be his next prize and slut. But for now it was just sue and they had a party to go to. The two girls entered the house and Judy took her to a corner of the room where they had put some hooks. Pushing sue into the corner and attaching her leash to one of the hooks she pulled it tight. This brought sue right up to the wall so her nose and little tits were touching it. Then she pulled a little more, making sue push her pussy toward the wall. Then she tied the leash so sue couldn't move. As she started to walk away, she slapped her on the ass. Then she went to the Captain and gave him a big kiss saying, "I love you Ron, and thank you for giving me a pet to play with." "I love you too, Judy. And you are quite welcome for the pet. Did you have fun today?" replied the Captain. "Oh, yes we did. I got her the outfit for the party and guess who I ran into?" said Judy, "Hec happened to be at the mall and saw me. When he came to say hi, susie was kind of naked trying to change clothes and he loved it. Then she gave him and his friend a blowjob with an audience. It was so good. I invited them to the party tonight and promised them some additional fun. Hope you don't mind." "Not at all, Judy. You know you can do as you want. After all, you aren't the little slut in this family," replied Ron. "Think we got time for a quickie?" "We sure do! The slut isn't going anyplace for awhile," Judy answered and headed for the bedroom, stripping as she went. Then as an afterthought she said, "Oh, by the way, did you invite Stephanie, too." "Yea, I did. Called her today and she'll be there," said the Captain. The he whispered to Judy, "and I told her to bring her tools, also." Judy smiled knowingly. Then the two of them were gone from the living room, leaving little susie standing there all alone with nothing to do. she was up against the wall so tight, she couldn't get comfortable and her body started aching. However, she could hear the other two in her old bedroom. she heard the moans and groans as they fucked. They weren't gone too long and when they returned they were both dressed for the party. sue didn't see them until she was released from the corner, but they were both dressed to depict slave owners and even had whips attached to their belts, just like the slave owners used to wear. sue was dreading the party tonight, knowing that everyone there knew her and worked with her. The bad part was, she would be showing her locked-up pussy to everyone the way she had to wear her skirt. Once she was released, the two started adding the final touches to her costume. First came the chains to hook her hands to her collar. They wanted her to have some freedom, but not much. The chains were about two feet long, which made her have her hands up in the air beside her. she could carry drinks this way, but couldn't do much else with them. Then came the ankle cuffs, locked in place with a three-foot chain attached to each ankle. Then a two-pound ball was attached to the end of each chain. This would make it difficult for her to walk in her six inch heels, but that's what they wanted. The balls were not meant to be heavy, but to add to the image of a slave. Then Judy said, "Since we are going to be with her most of the night, how about unlocking her cunt. We can put the leash on the rings and if we decide to let someone fuck her, it won't take as long to get to her pussy." "Good idea, Judy, and that reminds me, I bought something special for her little pussy today," the Captain said. He went to his briefcase and brought out two little bells with clasps on them. He showed them to Judy and then attached them to sue's pussy rings as soon as he took the padlock off. Flicking them with his fingers, Judy and sue heard, "tingle, tingle, tingle." sue's eyes began to tear, but she said nothing. Judy laughed saying, "Wow, that's perfect. Now, even if we aren't close by, we can still know where she is." Judy reattached the leash to the other two pussy rings and pulled her. sue had a hard time walking in the heels, but it was even harder now with the balls attached to her ankles. And when she walked, the bells jingled. The Captain and Judy put their masks on and decided that sue would have to go without a mask so everyone would know who she was. But she wouldn't know anyone else. This was going to be quite a night. Leading their little asian whore out the door and to the car, they headed for the party. sue sat in the back, legs spread, chained hands held above her lap, like a begging dog, dreading the night ahead. The police department had rented a place for the night, which had a big main hall for most of the party, but also had some extra rooms off to the side, just in case someone wanted to have a little extra fun on their own. Those that set the party up knew that some of the cops would be using the extra rooms to get a little playtime in. They always did when they had these parties where they couldn't bring their spouses. The three arrived at the place and saw that there was already a good crowd. This was perfect for their entrance and they knew that they would be a big hit with everyone. Getting out of the car, Judy led sue by her leash and the Captain followed, watching sue's little ass wiggle. It seemed to wiggle even more with the heels on and he made a note to make her wear them more often. As they entered, the doorman announced their arrival and all eyes looked from behind masks to watch them come through the door. There was a temporary stunned silence when sue was led in. Some gasped with shock, others laughed at the sight. And some others began to clap and cheer as they saw the sergeant being led in like a common slut, slave prisoner. Many of them came up to the Captain and Judy and told them how original the costumes were, especially sue's. Some asked why she didn't have a mask and was told it was because she wanted everyone to know who she was. It wasn't that the Captain or Judy wanted it, it was because sue wanted it. sue was so humiliated and embarrassed because of this, knowing that every officer that ever worked with her and now worked for her would see what the Captain had made her. Judy took sue around to the bar to get drinks. She ordered for her and the Captain, but nothing for sue. She said, "Sorry slut, but you only have two hands and they will be used for our drinks. Maybe we'll find a nice little doggy dish for you later." Judy got the drinks and placed one in each of sue's hands and then tugged on the leash, leading her back to where Ron was. He was talking to some other men from the department, but with the masks on, sue couldn't tell who they were. They all acknowledged Judy and even spoke to sue. "Nice outfit, sergeant," said one of the men. Another said, "My, you really know how to liven a place up. Great idea." The Captain and Judy both laughed and started to mingle with the others. Judy said to the Captain, "You know, it is kind of tiring leading this cunt around all the time. Think we can put her in a room for awhile. That way, we can have some fun without her." The Captain agreed with her and said, "Yes, that would be good. But we will have to make sure she can't go anyplace." Judy said, "Good! I know just what to do." She led sue to a small room that she had looked into earlier. Opening the door, she led sue inside and made her stand in the middle of the room. Then she pulled one of her leg chains out, making sue almost fall down. Judy attached the chain and ball to a leg of a heavy chair, then did the same to her other leg, using another chair. sue stood there, her legs wide apart with the leash hanging between her legs. she wanted to say something, but as soon as she started, Judy told her to shut up or she would gag her. This made sue angry, but also afraid to say anything. she knew this bitch would be cruel to her if she didn't obey. Then Judy stood back to look at her slut and decided that if she did get loose, she could probably get out of the place. So she reached over and took sue's skirt off and unbuttoned her blouse. Then she moved her hands up closer to her neck and reattached them with the chains. Now sue couldn't do anything with her hands. But Judy still wasn't happy and disconnected her hands one at a time and took her blouse off, leaving sue standing there totally naked and spread. Judy said, "Now, you stay right here, don't move or yell and I'll be back later with your clothes. I just have to have some fun with Ron and you get in my way." As Judy was turning to leave, sue begged, "Please, Mistress..." But before she could finish her sentence, Judy whirled and slapped her sharply across the face. Without saying a word, Judy reached into her handbag and pulled out a ring gag. "Open your mouth wide, slut." sue had been shocked by the severity of the slap, and obeyed immediately. Judy forced the gag behind sue's teeth, using the straps to tie the gag behind her neck. sue knew immediately that this was trouble. her jaw ached within moments, and there was no way to relieve the strain. her mouth was wide open, a welcoming hole for anyone who wished to use it for any purpose. Then Judy pulled a blindfold out and put it over sue's eyes. sue heard her walk out and close the door. Judy had some plans for the little slut and this was the only way she could make it happen. She went out to find the two people who would make it happen for her. She didn't see Hec right away, since everyone had masks on, but he found her. He said, "Judy, is that you?" "Yes. Glad you could make it. I guess this is Joe?" replied Judy. "Actually, no, this is Victor, another friend. Joe wanted to be here, but something came up. Hope that's ok with you." "Sure. Hi, Victor. Any friend of Hec's is a friend of mine." "Thanks. How do you like our costumes?" asked Victor. "I think they're great. Now, I have a surprise for you. You remember the little slut I was with earlier. Well, I have her ready for you in that room over there. she's all yours for awhile and she doesn't have her pussy locked up tonight. So, why don't you go enjoy." "Great!" both men replied and started to leave. Judy said, "Oh, one more thing Hec! How about making sure you humiliate her real good. she can't see you and probably can't pick up on your voice. Have fun!" Hec and Victor walked away smiling. They got to the room and opened the door. As they walked in, they found the naked sue just as Judy had left her. sue heard them enter and thought Judy had returned for her. There was silence as the two men approached her. sue felt the hands on her ass and back. she knew then it wasn't Judy, but it was a man's hands. Thinking to herself, she wondered who it could be. Was it the Captain or someone else? Then suddenly another pair of hands were on her in the front. she started shaking, not knowing who was in the room with her. What would they do with her? The hands began to roam over her body and sue felt her pussy tingle with pleasure as one hand rubbed her mound and pulled on the leash. she was dripping and was so embarrassed, knowing whoever was with her could feel the excitement in her crotch. Then one of them spoke. "MMM, quite nice." sue tried to figure out who it was, but couldn't quite make out the voice. she had heard it before, but still didn't know the man who was speaking and stroking her. she wasn't thinking clearly. "Yea, it is," said the other, "but the tits seem quite small. Maybe a little enlargement would help." "Ha, Ha, Ha," laughed the other man. "Silicone works great on little tits. But then they don't feel real. And it makes some whores look like bimbos. But maybe just a little enlargement would be nice. If we could acquire her for a weekend, it might be a good idea." The two sets of hands roamed her body, pulling and pinching her erect nipples. sue was now feeling the juice from her cunt dripping down her leg. she hated this, but her cunt was loving it. "Why is my pussy doing this to me?" she thought. The men continued examining her and talking like she was nothing but livestock at an auction, degraded and touched by appraisers she didn't know. "Nice round ass, and firm too," said one of them. "Bet it would be nice to fuck or to just hold onto." "And look at this sexy mouth. Bet it would feel good with my cock in it," said the other. sue felt fingers going into her mouth and she involuntarily began to caress them with her tongue. "What am i doing," she thought. "i have never been like this before. i am a slut," she thought, as tears began to form in her eyes. The fingers probed her mouth and slid over her teeth. The other set of hands made their way to her pussy and were running up and down her slit. "Damn, she's hot," said the man who worked on her cunt, "this whore is really wet. Going to have to get it unhooked from this leash so we can fuck it." sue felt the leash being undone and soon had a finger inside her pussy. It was sliding in and out, going deeper with each thrust. "And it's tight, too," said the man. "Bet it could really milk a cock!" The fingers were removed from her mouth and worked their way down her chest over her tits and then started toward her back. sue shivered with excitement. They moved over her naked ass and slid in between her ass cheeks, up and down the crack. Then suddenly, a finger went inside her back door. she moaned, "mmmmmm, nnnnnnoooooo," easily understood despite the gag. Both men laughed as they now each had a finger inside her. One in her pussy and the other up her ass. "Wow, what a tight little bum we have. Wonder if she ever had a cock in there before?" "Well, maybe we'll find out. After all, Judy said we could do whatever we wanted with her," said one of the men. "Yea, let's get her ready. I'm so horny and this cunt is primed for action," said the other man. They unhooked her legs from the chairs and then bent her over one of the arms. she felt the hands moving her around to where they wanted her and she couldn't do anything to stop them. Did she want to stop them, she wondered. she didn't even know who they were and now it looked like she was going to be used in all her holes. "God, please help me," she said to herself, as a cock entered her mouth. she automatically started sucking it. she didn't know why she did it, but since the Captain had turned her into his slut slave, it was like she really enjoyed it. her mind kept saying no, but her body, especially her dripping cunt said, "Do it, whore!" Just as she was starting to suck the cock in her mouth, the other cock pressed against her pussy lips. she also felt the hands take her pussy rings and spread her open. Then his cock filled her pussy. It seemed bigger than the others she had and it stretched her open even more. sue was being double fucked! One cock in her mouth and another in her cunt. And she was actually beginning to enjoy it. she knew she would cum soon, as long as they continued fucking her. If they stopped too quickly, she would just die. The men fucked her and also continued to talk about her. "Man, what a little whore. she would be great on the streets. Look at the money this hot little bitch would bring us. Wonder if Judy would sell her?" "Yeah, hot as a pistol. A tattoo here, another piercing there, and she would fit right in on the streets. We could make a lot of money off of her." she listened to all that was said and soon she felt the first orgasm building deep inside her. It felt so good to have a cock up her cunt and she didn't want it to stop. she pushed back on the cock in her cunt and deep-throated the other one, sucking as hard as she could. Then it hit her! she was starting to cum and knew it would be a big one. "AAAAAAA, OOOOOOOOO," she mumbled around the cock in her mouth. she was cumming and it was a hard one. her cunt was squeezing the cock inside her and her mouth was getting sore from the sucking she was doing. "OOOOOOOOOOO, AAAAAAAAAAAA, OOOOOOOOOO!" she moaned as she got off. Then she felt both cocks stiffen in her and just as she was cumming, both men shot their loads into her. "AAAAAAGGGGHHHHHHH, SSSSSSSHHHHHHIIIIITTTTTTTT, FFFFFFFFFUUUUUUUUCCCCCCKKKKK," was all she heard as two big loads of cum filled her holes. Both men pulled out and said, "OK, let's switch" she felt the cocks leave her fuck holes, but it wasn't long and they were both full again. she could taste her own cunt juices on her tongue as the cock forced its way into her mouth. Then she felt the other one enter her just-fucked cunt. They didn't take too long before they were both pumping in and out of her cunt and mouth. It took longer for them to cum this time, but it didn't take her long at all. she was in a constant state of orgasm now and her body shook as the men fucked her. When they came this time, she swallowed the cum and felt the other one shoot deep inside her pussy. They pulled out and said, "God, this little whore is great. But now I want some of that ass." One of the men took his fingers and rubbed her cunt, then up to her tight little ass. He pushed his fingers into her, getting her lubed up for penetration. Then she felt it. He had his cock at the entrance and then he pushed hard, driving his hard dick all the way up to his balls. "NNNNNOOOOOO, HHHHHUUUUURRRRTTTSSSS!" she screamed into the gag. But it didn't help as he was now fucking her tight little chute, stretching her wide open. He continued to fuck her ass and the other man stuck his cock back into her mouth. Being the slut she had become, she started sucking him as the other man plowed her ass. she hated this, but at the same time didn't want it to stop. her cunt was once again taking over her mind and she wanted more. Once they finally came again, they decided to get something to drink, but made sure she was put back the way they found her, standing in the middle of the floor with her legs spread wide, attached to the chairs. They left her alone again. she heard them leaving as the door shut. she could also feel the cum dripping from her well-fucked cunt and ass. It was running down her legs and puddling on the floor. she stood there, naked and alone. But not for long. Another person was about to enter the room. This time it would be Stephanie, who wanted her pussy licked again. she loved it when sue ate her cunt before, and now she wanted more. But she also had another job to do. This time, the Captain wanted a tongue ring or stud or two installed on his talkative slut. But that could wait until she got off from the cunt's mouth.
SPREAD 'EM part 20 sue heard the door open again and thought those men were back. she couldn't say anything since the gag was in her mouth. And she couldn't move because of the way she was secured. Thinking of how she looked, bound, gagged, collared, blindfolded and spread wide open for anyone to see, she moaned quietly to herself. she was hating all of this, but knew she had to withstand a few more months so her little sister wouldn't forced into this position. she would never be able to live with herself if that should happen. A female voice spoke softly to her and she felt tender hands on her shoulders pushing her down. The voice said, "Now little slut, you are going to make me happy. you are going to eat my pussy until I cum in your little slutty mouth. So just let yourself down on your knees so you can get to me. I won't let you fall." The voice sounded so very familiar to sue, but she couldn't quite place it. But she knew that she had to eat this cunt in order to get through the night. After all, she had just been raped by two guys. This girl helped sue to her knees and the she felt a dress being put over her head. Not only was she blindfolded, but now she was totally hidden beneath the princess dress that this person was wearing. sue felt hands on her head, tilting it backwards and as soon as it was back, the girl stepped forward and placed her cunt right on sue's gagged mouth. sue tried to lick. It was hard with the gag in her mouth, but she did her best. "This won't do," said the girl, "I'm going to take that gag out, susie, but it will have to go back in when you finish." The dress was pulled up and over sue, uncovering her, and then the gag was released. sue was finally able to close her mouth. It was so stiff, but she did manage to flex her jaws a couple of times she could feel and hear the dress being lifted over her once again. her head was tilted back once again and the cunt placed back onto her mouth. Once she started licking, she knew it was Stephanie. The last time she was made to lick her cunt, sue thought about how sweet it tasted. Nothing like Judy's. So sweet and quite tasty. sue was going to give Stephanie a great orgasm. she licked and sucked, sucked and licked. she knew it wouldn't be long before Stephanie came in her mouth, giving her that sweet nectar. Stephanie felt her orgasm building. Her cunt was spasming and she was pushing it more and more into sue's mouth. God, this little asian slut was such a good pussy licker. Then it happened! "AAAAAAAAGGGGGGHHHHHHHH, OOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHH,MMMMMMMMMMMMM, CCCCCCCCUUUUUMMMMMMMIIIINNNGGGGGG, OOOOOHHHHHHH!" screamed Stephanie. sue was pleased with herself for pleasuring Stephanie. she liked her, even though she was the one who pierced her pussy lips so the Captain could lock it up. Stephanie tasted soooooooo good. Once Stephanie calmed down, sue tried to crawl back out from under the dress, but was held in place. "OK baby, time for a little more before I put you back in place. Now, put your lips on my pussy and make a seal. Don't fight it, just do it." sue had no idea what was coming, so she did as she was told. sealing her lips around Stephanie's hot cunt and sucking. Then it happened. Stephanie started pissing, directly into the little asian's mouth. she choked as the hot liquid entered her mouth and started down her throat. she tried to pull away, but her head was held tight against the pussy and she couldn't escape. "Drink it all, my little pet," said Stephanie, "Then you'll be done for awhile. Don't spill any either." sue couldn't do anything except swallow the golden liquid entering her mouth. "GULP,GULP,GULP," as she drank the piss. she hated this so much and couldn't figure out why people wanted to do this to her. But her little cunt was so hot and wet now. she hated it when her pussy did the thinking for her. she just couldn't control the feelings she had there. It was like someone had turned a faucet on inside her and it was gushing out of her hot little snatch. Finally it was all over and Stephanie moved away from her mouth. She pulled the dress from over the naked form and helped her stand up. Then Stephanie reattached the ring gag in her mouth and left her standing there. Once again, she was all alone. Alone with her hot thoughts and wet pussy. sue didn't know why, but she wanted more. she needed the humiliation. she wanted to be used. she was a slut needing everything she could get. While she was deep in thought, she didn't hear the door open again. But she did hear the voice that suddenly snapped her away from her thoughts. "Time to get you back to the party, slut," said Judy, as she started to undo the chains from the chair. "you, my pet, are going to entertain the ones that are left. Now, let's get you dressed." Judy wrapped the skirt around her waist, making sure the slit was right in the front, but she didn't put the blouse back on her. "Too much trouble to unhook everything to get that flimsy little blouse on, so I hope you don't mind going topless for awhile." she spoke, mainly to herself since sue couldn't respond. "Now, just follow me, slut. I won't take the blindfold off, since I don't want you to know how many are left out there," Judy told her. With that, she pulled on the leash attached to sue's pussy and she couldn't do anything but follow. Once they entered the main room, sue heard the talking. "OH, wow," came a voice. Another said, "Holly shit, she is showing her tits." And yet another said, "sarge really knows how to make a party." sue felt herself being guided along the floor, her tears running down her face from underneath the blindfold. But she also felt her cunt juice running down her legs. she hated it when her pussy did this, but she was very excited. Judy led her to the middle of the room and pushed her into a chair. The cold wood felt strange on her ass, since her skirt had ridden up when she bent to sit. she knew she was totally exposed to whoever was left at the party. Then she heard the Captain speak. "Tonight, by sue's request, she is going to get her tongue pierced. she told me she had always wanted this and we are going to do it." The moment sue heard these words, she tried to rise from the chair in some form of protest, but Judy immediately pushed her down. she tried to make some protesting sound from the gag, but a hard slap silenced her immediately. "Now, sergeant lee, we know you are excited, but you just have to control yourself," said Judy. "Will someone help me strap the sergeant to this chair so she doesn't hurt herself?" sue was strapped to the arms and legs of the chair. There was no way she was going to get loose. The Captain continued, "I asked Stephanie to help with it, since she is a professional piercer. Are you ready, Steph?" "Yes," Stephanie answered, "but I'll need a table to put the tools on." "Hec, can you get that table over there," asked the Captain. "Sure enough," was his reply as he went to the other side of the room and got the table, placing it right next to sue. sue heard him set the table down and then she heard Stephanie laying out her tools. The next step surprised her when Stephanie said, "I need someone to hold her head tightly and someone to hold her tongue in place. Hec and Judy, can you help me?" The next thing she felt were strong hands at the side of her head, and two fingers in her mouth. A clamp was attached to the tip of her tongue. she couldn't say anything since the ring gag prevented it. Then her tongue was being pulled. she tried to fight it, but it hurt from the clamp and it came out of her mouth. sue sat there, not being able to move or talk, with her tongue as far out as Judy could pull it. she then heard Stephanie say, "Judy, what can we attach this to in order to keep it out? Can't have her jumping when I put the holes in." Judy thought for a moment and said, "Why don't we hook it to her cunt rings. Then she won't be able to move it all, unless she pulls her lips off." She started laughing at the sight it would make of the little cunt. sue felt them fumbling with something and then felt hands near her pussy. The next thing she knew, her cunt and tongue were attached together by a chain. she cried even harder now, finding it difficult to breather, but she couldn't do anything else. And she felt her pussy begin to leak more juice and she knew she was sitting in a big puddle on the chair. Stephanie said, "That's going to work just fine. Now, I'll just get all my things on the table and get to work." sue heard her moving the tools and Stephanie whispered in her ear, "It won't be too bad, sue. Just a little prick and it'll be done." sue tried one more time to groan out a protest, but she knew it was hopeless. Stephanie picked up the piercing tools and put the stud that would be in her tongue into the gun. She asked the Captain, "OK, where do we put it?" He said, "I think she needs two of them. One on each side, toward the back." So she went to work. Putting the tool on sue's tongue, she found the right spot and squeezed. sue tried to scream when she felt the hole going through her tongue, but nothing came out. sue was horrified to feel an orgasm building within her. "Not here," she screamed to herself. "Please not here," she begged her inner feelings. she tried to think of other things, to take her mind off this awful night. Stephanie stopped and showed everyone the shiny new stud in sue's tongue. Then she went to the other side and did the same, squeezing her piercing tool. sue could no longer control herself. As the stud was inserted into the hole, her body arched with a powerful orgasm. she screamed into her gag and her body shook with sensual pleasure. Suddenly, the room was quiet. Time stopped. sue couldn't tell what was going on. No one seemed to be around her. Was she all alone? Did they just leave her? What was going to happen next? Then there was noise again, applauding and cheering the humiliated slut. she heard others talking, but couldn't make out what everyone was saying. All the words seemed to run together because everyone was talking at the same time. she wondered what was going on, but was not able to see anything. she was untied from the chair before her tongue and cunt were disconnected. But she was soon able to get her tongue back into her mouth. she ran it around inside her mouth and could feel the new studs. she wondered what they looked like and what others would say if they saw them. she wondered how she could ever go to see her parents, knowing they hated anyone that pierced themselves. she could never face them again. Someone had taken her leash and was now leading her away from the crowd. The voices faded away and soon she found herself in silence again. Then Judy spoke to her. "susie, my little slut, you are beginning to be a pain in the ass and we have decided that we need some time alone without you. We are going away next weekend, but we can't trust you to be on your own. So, slut, we are going to give you to someone else for a weekend. Of course, we will have to make a little money from you, so we are setting up an auction. And everything we make from you tonight is going to be given to the police charity for the homeless people. Just think cunt, you will be feeding a lot of people for Thanksgiving this year. All because you are a little, slutty whore." sue shook her head no and try to scream. But the gag was still there. "NNNNNNNN, PPPPPHHHHHH," was all she could say. "Oh, don't worry. Whoever gets you will have rules to follow and you won't be hurt. Well, at least not much. But this has to be done, so Ron and I can get away for awhile. Now, I'm going to take you back out and we will begin the auction. And whoever wins you will be able to fuck you tonight, right here in front of everyone." Leading her back into the main room, cheers arose and everyone started clapping. Ron spoke above the loud noise to quiet them down. "OK everyone, as I said earlier, this little slut is now up for auction. The highest bidder will get her next weekend starting Friday night and she'll be picked up on Sunday," stated the Captain. "And please be generous in the bidding, because what we bring in here tonight is going to a good cause. Every cent we get from this cunt will be given to feed the homeless for Thanksgiving. So let's start the bidding!" "One hundred dollars," came a shout from the crowd. Another said ,"Two hundred!" Then came three hundred and four hundred. she was going to bring in some good money for sure! The bidding continued while sue listened. she had no idea who was bidding on her and feared she would never be able to face anyone at work again. she would have to quit, if the Captain would let her. Then a voice from the group said, "Hey, can we inspect her before we go any further?" The Captain said "Sure, come on up." He reached over and pulled her skirt off leaving her totally naked now. she was in front of all the other officers, naked and about to be checked out like livestock. she couldn't do anything but stand there. Unfortunately for her, her cunt was so wet with the anticipation of all those hands on her and the need to cum. Maybe she would be able to get off when the hands were checking her out. It wasn't long and she had hands all over her body. They rubbed her smooth skin, touched her breasts, felt her naked ass, pinched her nipples, looked at the new jewelry in her mouth, spread her legs and probed her dripping pussy. she heard the comments, but couldn't make out the voices. "MMMM, nice little tits!" "Smooth skin, nice ass!" "Lovely mouth. Would be great for sucking cock." "Wow, she's hot!" "Her cunt is dripping wet!" Then, the Captain said, "OK, let's continue." The bidding continued and got up to nine hundred dollars. Then there was silence for awhile. she waited to see if anyone else would say anything. Then, came the final bid. "One thousand dollars!" she recognized that voice. It was from one of the men who had taken her earlier. she had no idea who it was and hoped someone else would put up another bid. she remembered what they had said before about her making them money and giving her some tattoos and more piercing. she didn't want this. she was horrified at what was happening! Next came the final call for bidding on the little asian cop. "One thousand going once!" said the Captain. He hesitated for a moment and then said, "One thousand going twice!" Another hesitation and then, "Sold, for one thousand dollars! This slut is yours, sir, for one thousand dollars. We ask that you come up and finalize your bid. she is to be fucked by you in front of everyone, if that is your desire" She heard the movement and the man said, "I won't mind fucking her, but my friend has put up half the money and we both need to have her." "That's OK," said the Captain. "One can fuck her while she sucks the other. Is that OK?" "Fair enough," said the man. sue felt the hands on her. she was bent over at the waist and without any kind of foreplay, she had a cock in her cunt and then one in her mouth, held open by the ring gag. Once again, she was being double-fucked, but this time she had an audience watching. she had no idea who was seeing her being used like this nor did she know who was using her. All she knew was that she was going to spend an entire weekend as a slave slut to the two men who used her in that room. And she hoped she wouldn't have to endure the thoughts that they expressed earlier, such as getting more piercings and tattoos. As they fucked her two holes, she heard others cheering them on. This made the two guys so hot, they both came together. One in her mouth and one in her cunt. But they didn't give her enough time to cum. she was once again left frustrated. she needed to cum so badly. she would have fucked everyone at the station for the chance to cum. Once they finished with her, Judy pulled her up and said, "OK, little whore, time to go home. We have some things to do before our vacation. And you need to get rested up before next weekend. I don't think you'll get much sleep with these guys." she was led to the car and she felt it start to move. Glad to be away from the party, but so hot and horny. she needed to cum.
SPREAD 'EM part 21 sue was allowed to rest once they got home and bound her to the bed. They didn't want her to have access to her pussy. she needed to be really horny for the next weekend and she would not be allowed to cum until then. Ron and Judy fucked a lot and sue heard every bit of it as she lay in her tiny bed in the guestroom. she also heard the plans they were making for their trip and how she should be treated while they were gone. The Captain had arranged for the three of them to be off work for the long weekend and also had sue off on Thursday and Friday to get her ready to submit. They all worked Monday, Tuesday and Wednesday. The days passed without major incident. sue kept to herself and spoke very little. The studs in her tongue, the lock on her pussy lips, the metal choker, and the lock that hung from her ear were a constant reminder of her slavery to the Captain. As she rubbed the studs over her teeth, she was surprised how her pussy lips began to swell. But what happened on Wednesday night shocked sue. It was quitting time at the station and sue was ordered into the Captains office. As soon as she entered the Captain said, "Show Me!" Without hesitation, she stripped out of her uniform, spread her legs and bent over placing her hands on the desk. The other two were laughing at her as she did as ordered, but she didn't know why. Judy picked up her uniform and pulled her badge, nametag, and sergeant insignias off, and threw the uniform into the trashcan. sue was shocked, knowing they weren't going to allow her to get it back, but couldn't understand what she was going to wear out of the station. Judy said, "OK, cunt, put these on!" She threw some clothes at her and sue looked at them. It didn't look like much, but she stood up and began to get dressed in what Judy had given her. sue cried as she realized what she had to wear. It was a sheer blouse with only a couple of buttons on it. It was so sheer she might as well not have anything on. Then she put the tiny skirt on, which only came to about an inch below her pussy and her naked ass was visible. Next was the pair of 6" heels, which made her taller and showed more of her ass and cunt. Once she was dressed the Captain said, "OK, sgt. lee, go out to the car and wait beside it. you know how to wait ,don't you? Just like you show me here. Legs spread and hands on the hood, with your ass facing the station house." "BBBBBuuuuuuuttttttt, sir," begged sue. Of course, she was shut up with a hard slap to her face by Judy who said, "Just do it whore!" sue left his office and tried to hurry out of the building so no one saw her, but it was shift change and many had a good look at the sergeant as she made her way out of the station to the parking lot. And they got a better look as she took the position her Captain had ordered. sue knew she was making quite a scene and everyone was now viewing her naked ass and open cunt. she cried as she waited for one of them to show up to get her out of this mess. It seemed like hours before Judy came up behind her and ran her finger up sue's open pussy. She said, "Well little slut, it looks like you enjoy showing off for every one. Maybe when we come back to work next week, you'll come in naked." "PPPPlllleeeaasseee, not that," cried sue. "Anything, but making me work naked." Judy just laughed and said, "I'll think about it. It will all depend on tonight and the weekend while Ron and I are away. Good reports let you wear clothes. Bad reports keep you naked. Now get your whore ass into the car." As soon as they got into the car, Judy drove off toward the house. She made sue spread her legs and play with her pussy, but threatened her with severe punishment if she came. And,she couldn't stop playing with herself until they were home. sue began playing with her already hot cunt and needed to cum so bad. she held off as long as she could, but it wasn't good enough. Suddenly she tensed up and had one big orgasm after another as she stroked her pussy. Judy reached over and pulled sharply on a handful of hair, bringing sue back to reality. "I told you not to cum, didn't I slut?" yelled Judy, pulling sue's head closer to the driver's side of the car. "iiiiiii, couldn't help it, please don't hurt me," cried sue. "i'll be good, i promise, please" Judy stopped the car and told sue to get out. Once she was out of the car, Judy said, "STRIP, bitch!" sue was so shaken by now, she just stripped right there beside the car. she didn't know what to do with the skimpy clothes, so she just hung onto them until Judy said, "Give me the clothes and walk home!" They were at least three blocks from the house now and sue didn't want this. But she was scared to disobey and she didn't want to be hurt anymore. So she handed Judy her clothes and started walking quickly to get there faster. Judy drove behind her with the headlights on full beam, showing her little naked slut off to everyone who was around. It was difficult for sue to walk in those heels and it made her little asian ass wiggle even more. she hated doing this, but she had no other choice If she didn't behave and do as she was told, she would have to go to work naked and the threat of kidnapping her little sister was still playing on her mind. Lucky for her, there weren't too many people around and she wasn't stopped by anyone. Finally she made it home and inside the safety of the house, but that wasn't the end of her ordeal. she didn't know it, but she had a long night ahead of her. And the temperature was starting to drop. Once they were home, Judy told her to get all the bags of her clothes she had put away and load them into the trunk. Judy said, "We are going to get those nasty things out of my house tonight. I can't wear any of them and you won't wear them. So, say good bye to them. Now move it, we have lots of things to do tonight." "Ppplleaase, Ma'am, can't i just keep them in storage for when I'm free again?" begged sue. "No you can't, stupid cunt," said Judy, "and who said you'd ever be free." "The contract i signed for the Captain said six months," sue cried. "I know what it said cunt, but the six months are not up yet and for right now you are mine, so you'll just do as I say." laughed Judy. "bbbuuttt, i will need clothes when i am free from you, please," cried the little naked cop. "Then you'll buy some more slut. Now move it!" Judy yelled at her. sue started crying. she knew she wasn't free and they could do whatever they wanted with her. she had no other choice. she was there slave and slut and knew she had to obey. So she began her task of taking all her clothes to the car and placing them in the trunk. she remained naked, since she knew better than to ask for clothes to put on. she was in shock, knowing it was going to be a long six months for her. Maybe she would escape and get away somehow, but she had no place to go, especially without clothes. Once she was finished putting the clothes in the car, she went back into he house. The warmth felt good since it was getting quite chilly outside. she was just getting warm when Judy stepped out of the bedroom, dressed in jeans, a flannel shirt and a heavy coat. Judy said, "All done, my pet?" "Yes," sue said in a whisper. "Good, now get your ass out to the car and wait for me. Don't get in it, just stand beside it until I get there," ordered Judy. "Cccaannn i put a coat on , please," begged sue. "No, you can't!" shouted Judy. "you have to earn clothes and so far you haven't shown me you deserve them. Now get your naked ass out there. I'll be along soon." As sue was starting to walk out the door, Judy stopped her and said, "Wait a minute, slut, I forgot something." sue stopped, hoping she had changed her mind about a coat, but when Judy approached her she saw something that made her eyes widen in surprise. In her hand was the ring gag and she forced it into sue's mouth. Judy was quite rough doing it and it hurt sue. she couldn't scream from the pain, because the gag was already in place and she was tightening it on to her head. "Now get your slutty little body out there and wait. This way you can't scream or talk to anyone. Move it, whore," shouted Judy, as she slapped sue sharply on the naked ass. sue turned and once again passed the full-length mirror as she headed out the door. What a sight she saw. Naked except for the metal choker, the ring gag transformed her face into an ugly expression. she could see the lock hanging from her right ear and one hanging from her pussy lips. she quickly moved out the door, into the cold air and made her way to the car. she tried to hide behind it, but knew if Judy saw her hiding her naked body from view she would be in big trouble, so she stood beside the car where anyone and everyone who passed by could see her. It seemed like hours again, standing naked out in public, but it was only a few minutes before Judy came out of the house and let sue into the car. sue was shivering from the cold and hoped Judy would turn the heat on. But as they left the driveway, Judy turned the air conditioner on instead. She was nice and warm, dressed in winter clothes, but poor little sue was freezing. They drove for awhile and then suddenly turned into the park where sue had fucked the rookie cop not too long ago. It brought memories back to her as she thought of his cock sliding into her hot cunt and wanted it to happen again. But she knew it couldn't if she wanted her pussy free from the locks that the Captain had put on her. He had promised her that if she ever fucked anyone without his permission again, she would have her cunt locked up forever. They drove through the park until they came to an area where sue saw some other cars. Judy made her get out and walk ahead of her toward the group of people standing there waiting. She heard the Captain's voice say, "OK guys, the guest of honor has arrived and now the fun begins." sue didn't like this one bit, but she knew she had to do whatever she was told. As she approached, she noticed they were standing around a small outdoor fireplace and it had a small fire in it. The Captain brought her close to the fire and said, "Victor, would you help Judy get the things from the car?" "Sure," he said as he walked with Judy back to the parking area. While they were getting the bags out of the car, sue's mind was busy thinking what would happen next. Who was Victor? God how she wanted to just die. she was so embarrassed to have others see her naked and gagged like this and then to watch everything else that the Captain had planned tonight. The Captain said, "sue, I'm sure you'll remember Hec and Victor from the Halloween party?" Then he laughed and continued, "I'm sorry slut. I forgot you can't talk with that thing in your mouth. But I'll bet you can suck cock and eat cunt with it in there, can't you?" she just stood still and cried. she hated everything that had been done to her and this seemed to be the worst so far. she remembered the auction and assumed these were the two guys that made the highest bid for her. she also remembered their ideas of what they would do to her if they had her for a weekend. What else could these evil people think of? she was about to find out when Judy and Victor got back with the bags of clothes. The Captain tore the bags open and dumped all her good clothes on the ground in front of her. she gave him a blank stare and if looks could kill, he would have been dead. "How dare he treat her good clothes like that?" she thought to herself. But the worst was yet to come. The Captain said, "OK, slut susie, I want you to pick these clothes up and put them into the fire, one piece at a time until they are all gone." she shook her head no and tried to say no, but all that came out of her gagged mouth was, "MMMMPPPPHHHHHH!" "Now don't make me punish you in front of our friends, slut. Just do as I say!" he ordered. Knowing she had to do it, she reached down with her eyes closed and picked up the first article. she held it in her hands for a moment and then tossed it into the fire. It immediately caught on fire and it burned quickly. But she was slow to pick up anymore, so the Captain reached behind her and slapped her very hard on her cold naked ass. she jumped when he did this, and almost went into the fire herself. He yelled, "I told you to put them all in there. Now, cunt, get busy. I have other things to do before the night is over and these guys might want a good blowjob, too. Move it whore!" she quickly grabbed another piece of her clothing, threw it on the fire and reached for another. Soon there was a nice hot fire from all her burning clothes. And even though she was crying from throwing her clothes away like this, she was getting warm. However, she didn't see the branding iron placed in the hot coals, so she had no idea what was coming next. she just continued placing her clothes in the fire as the others watched her and drank beer. They were getting a little drunk, just the way the Captain wanted them. His little whore was going to be really used tonight, softened up for the weekend ahead, as soon as he finished marking her as his property. After all but a couple of pieces of clothing had been burned to ashes, the Captain said, "Hec, time to get the slut ready, don't you think?" "Yes, Captain," replied Hec as he walked over to sue with several ropes and a leash that he had collected from a bag at his feet. "Let's go, slut," he said, as he finished clipping a leash to her pussy rings, and tugged her in the direction of the playground equipment a few yards away. As soon as they left the warmth of the fire, sue realized how cold it had become, but she had no choice except to follow like a domesticated pet. her heels sunk into the soft ground with every step, so she moved very slowly as Hec tugged firmly on her lips. As they arrived at the playground area, Victor had joined his friend. They marched her over to the teeter-totter. "Ok, slut, lay on your back, head near the center of the teeter-totter, legs spread on each side of the board, arms drooping over the side." sue did as instructed, having no idea what was going to happen. "Look at her tits, Hec. she is either very excited or the cold is causing them to stick out like hard little nubs. And if I know her, her pussy is dripping like a water faucet!" The men separated the ropes, and each began to tie her body tightly to the board. A rope was wound several times around the choker on her neck and tightened under the teeter-totter, and one was tied across her forehead. There was no way to raise her head. her arms were tied tightly over the sides of the board, the rope winding around her arms from elbow to wrist. It was so uncomfortable! she tried to beg for mercy, but they just laughed at her muffled pleas. And then they began tying her legs to the board. Strands of rope were wound wickedly over her thighs, then just below her knees, and finally her ankles were connected tightly below the board. Except for her fingers and toes, there was little that sue could move. Why were they doing this to her? If they planned to keep her out all night, she would surely die from exposure to the cold, night air. "Let's see if my idea will work, Victor. Go to the other end and sit down when I say. Victor went to the other end of the teetor-totter, while Hec straddled sue's head. Hec nodded, and as Victor began to sit on his end, sue began to rise, until her mouth was right at the level of Hec's crotch. "Perfect. Let's go get the Captain and Judy." Victor got off the teeter-totter, and the two walked away towards the fire and her evil captors. she could hear their voices, and laughter, but could not make out any details of what they were talking about. It wasn't long before she heard their voices approaching her. she couldn't raise her head to see them, but knew they were getting close and she didn't see the branding iron in the captains hand. But, she just knew something bad was about to happen as they approached her on the teeter-totter, she just didn't know what. sue lay there, bound and gagged, unable to move as the captain stepped up close to her and said, "Now, my slutty little sergeant, it is time to make you my property." He brought the white hot branding iron up and showed it to sue. her eyes went blank as she saw the thing glowing in the dark and wondered what he was going to do with it. she knew he was going to touch her with it, but where. she tried to beg and she cried, but no noise came out. her throat was dry and she couldn't even get a muffled sound to come out. Then the captain moved down toward her pussy and asked, "You sure she is tied tight? I don't want her to move when I put my mark on her." Hec and Victor both said, "Oh, yea, she is tight and can't move, so let's do it and then get on with the fun." sue could see the captain raise the branding iron up and begin to lower it toward her body. she froze in fear as it got closer and closer to her skin. "Oh God, please help me," she said to herself, "please don't let this happen!" The captain lowered the iron with the glowing letters "RS" on it down toward her right thigh. The closer it came, the more she could feel the heat. she was trying to beg, but nothing would come out. she was gagged and her fear made it impossible to say anything. Then, it happened! "SSSSSSSSSSSSZZZZZZZZZZZZ" was the sound it made as the white hot metal touched her soft flesh, just below her cunt on her thigh. "AAAAAAAGGGGGHHHHHHHHH" came out of the little slut's mouth just before she passed out from the pain in her leg. she didn't feel the rest of it as the captain pushed it deeper into her skin to make sure it would be a perfect mark on his slut forever. sue was now his to do with as he pleased. He had her marked as "Ron's Slut!"
SPREAD 'EM part 22 "Wake up, slut." sue began to regain consciousness. she remembered the pain of the branding iron, the cold night air and the humiliation of being tied to a teeter-totter. she opened her eyes and looked directly into the naked crotch of Hec, his engorged cock poised at the opening to her ring gag, ready to plunge it into her mouth. her forehead and neck had been freed from the binding rope, and she could move her head just enough to raise up to take the cock that was beginning to enter her opened mouth. Just as she opened her eyes, he plunged his hard cock into her mouth, and she tried her best to suck, but her mouth was so dry. she flicked her tongue, rubbing the studs over his cock, doing her best to please. she didn't want to be punished anymore. she just wanted to please the man who forced his way into her waiting mouth, to suck him dry. she was really getting turned on by the thought of being forced to suck a cock, but she was also embarrassed by the position she was in. Naked, tied and raped! Hec plunged his hard cock into her mouth and fucked her without regard to her feelings. He pumped back and forth and in a few moments, he filled her mouth with his cum. she did her best to swallow all of his sperm and to lick his cock clean as he withdrew it from her gagged mouth. Climbing off the teeter totter and moving from sue, he laughed and said, "Wow, what a great little cocksucker. I'm going to have lots of fun this weekend with this little whore." "I'm next," said Judy, removing her pants and panties, she took Hec's place, straddling sue's head. "Raise the teeter-totter a little higher, Victor." "Ok, slut, warm up my pussy with your tongue." she ordered. "I want you to make me cum like you never have before. Lick my cunt bitch!" sue did her best to flick her tongue in and out of Judy's pussy. "Oh, yes. Yes," moaned Judy as sue's pierced tongue licked the folds of her pussy. "Yes, lick it good slut, make Mistress cum!" In a few moments, she came and sue felt the liquid from Judy's cunt enter her open mouth and mix with the flavors of Hec's cum. Judy lowered herself, nearly suffocated sue with her wet cunt, as she road sue's face to yet another orgasm. "OH, yes, fuck my cunt with your tongue! Make me cum again whore!" sue continued licking Judy's pussy until she couldn't take anymore and climbed down from sue's face and off the teeter totter. "Who's next?" she asked. "That will be Victor," said the Captain. "Go ahead my friend, climb aboard and fuck this whore's face. she loves it!" sue felt the teeter-totter lowered to the ground, and then begin to rise again. her open mouth approached Victor's throbbing cock, and it was soon in her mouth all the way to his balls. she licked and sucked the best she could, but wished she didn't have the gag in. she would really show him what a blowjob was if she could only close her mouth over his cock. But she must have been doing a great job, because it wasn't long before he stiffened and shoved his cock all the way down her throat and started shooting his load into her. she almost gagged from the shock of having her throat taken that way, but managed to swallow every drop. As Victor slid his cock out of her mouth, sue licked him, making sure she got every last drop of his hot sperm. "And now, my turn," said the Captain. Once again, sue was lowered and then quickly raised, as Hec took the Captain's place a the other end of the teeter-totter. The Captain shoved his cock deep into sue's mouth, and when he came, sue nearly drowned in his semen. she choked it down, lapping desperately for air and for his cock which filled her mouth and throat. sue's mind was occupied with survival, but in the background, she could hear Judy laughing and Hec and Victor cheering on the Captain. sue was beyond humiliation. Images of her sister, of her parents, of stars in the night sky filled her thoughts. her tongue moved automatically, flicking and curling and caressing the Captain's cock. "Oh, slut, you really are good!" praised the Captain. As he dismounted sue and began to redress he continued, "You and Victor have a good time this weekend, Hec. You can get her after 5 on Friday. Tell us how you want her dressed, or undressed," he laughed lightly. "her pussy will be unlocked for your use. she is yours to do with as you please. Just remember, she is my slut," he added, as he traced the brand on her thigh. The Captain's soft touch triggered a reaction within sue. she made mewing noises through the gag, twisting her unbound neck to try to express her desire to be fucked. she needed a hard cock in her hot pussy, and right now, would do anything to have one. "You are making her hot, Ron," laughed Judy. Ron smiled at Judy and moved his fingers towards sue's pleading cunt. "Sorry, cunt, but not tonight. you will just have to wait until the weekend. By then you will be boiling over with desire, and the boys will get their money's worth." sue groaned with desire and disappointment. The Captain started to untie the ropes from sue's body. "Let's get her off this teeter-totter and back to the fire. I'm getting cold." When the last strand of rope was pulled away, the Captain and Hec helped an unsteady sue to her feet. Almost immediately she began to shiver from the cold and shock. The two men held her arms and walked her back to the fire. In a short time, she was feeling much better. "Hec, tie her hands behind her back, will you? Don't want her scratching the brand until it has healed." As Hec pulled her hands roughly behind her, the Captain continued, "slut, I will remove the gag, but don't way a word. Understand?" sue nodded and the Captain freed her trapped mouth. her jaws were sore, undoubtedly from straining so much when she was branded. she opened and closed her mouth several times, the taste of sex still quite strong. Judy had gone to the trunk of the car and brought back a blanket to throw over sue's shoulders. This act of kindness surprised sue. Then the Captain gave her some additional orders. "your hands will be cuffed or roped for the next few days, unless one of us is present. We don't want you to scratch my brand and get it infected. I've arranged your schedule at work, so you won't be going in tomorrow or Friday." The fire was nearly out. All her clothes were ashes or mostly burned scraps of fabric. she stared into the embers and nodded her understanding to the Captain's comments. she was happy not to be going to work; the last few days had been humiliating and she could not face her fellow officers. On the other hand, that meant uninterrupted hours in the hands of Judy and the Captain. she was trapped, and six months was becoming an eternity. Every time she tried to assert herself and rebel against her slavery, they would make things worse or threaten her sister, Lynn. There was nothing she could do except hold on to fragments of the past. They could torture her body, but they could not destroy her mind and soul. Victor and Hec escorted her back to the car. she was weak and tired. They put sue in the back seat of the car, where she curled up like a child, and almost immediately fell asleep. Judy got in the driver's seat and drove home. The next thing sue felt was a tug on her pussy rings. When they arrived at sue's home, which now belonged to Judy, she had clipped the leash on the rings of the sleeping slut. With a sharp tug, sue was awakened from her much-needed sleep. "Don't think I'm going to carry you in, slut. Get moving. It's cold out here." With exhausted determination, sue scrambled out of the back seat. Without the use of her arms and hands, she slid out onto the cold pavement and unsteadily followed Judy towards the house. "Leave those filthy shoes outside, slut. Don't want to get my rug dirty," Judy sneered with a wicked laugh. sue had begun to shiver again, so even Judy felt some pangs of compassion. "Turn around," Judy ordered sue. When sue turned, Judy untied the knots of her bound hands. "Put your hands in front." sue's hands were handcuffed and the pussy leash was unhooked. Grasping the links between the cuffs, Judy pulled sue towards the bathroom. She hooked the chain over the faucet head and turned on the water. The first moments were frigid and sue gasped, but within moments it began to get warm. "If you need to piss, do it now," ordered Judy, who promptly stepped away to undress. sue knew better than to argue. Within moments, the warm piss began to flow down sue's legs. Judy looked in at her soaking slut and asked, "Finished?" sue nodded yes, and Judy joined her in the shower. She washed sue's hair and used a wash rag to scrub her slut clean. There was nothing sue could do but accept the warm, pulsing water straight into her face. Judy avoided the freshly branded area, but scrubbed harshly around sue's breasts and cunt. Then Judy washed herself. "Get down on your knees and show how thankful you are," she ordered her slut, as she released her bound hands from the faucet head. sue dropped quickly to her knees and worked her tongue in and out of Judy's dripping cunt. Considering all sue had been through, this was almost paradise. The warm water cascaded down from above, and in a short time, Judy orgasmed, grabbing sue by the sides of her head, and forcing her mouth into Judy's pussy. When Judy was satisfied, she pulled sue to her feet by grasping the lock in her right ear, and turned off the shower. When they stepped out, she tossed sue a towel and said, "Dry yourself, and make it quick." With her cuffed hands, sue moved the towel quickly over her wet body. As she neared the thigh which had been branded, she slowed and stared. The red "RS" was about 2 inches in height, and raised like a welt above her flawless skin. she stared for several seconds before Judy scolded her and ordered her to hurry up. sue finished drying herself, and then Judy recuffed her hands behind her back. she stood to the side while Judy dried herself. sue had to admit to herself that Judy had a beautiful body, without an ounce of fat. When she finished, Judy used a blow dryer on sue's hair and cunt. "We should have shaved you again down here while we were in the shower. Oh well, we'll do it tomorrow. Let's go." sue followed Judy towards the guest bedroom, where she was tied spreadeagled, face up. She turned off the lights, shut the door and returned to the bathroom to finish drying her hair and prepare for Ron's arrival. Having gone back to the station to check on the night's activities, Ron arrived at the house about 15 minutes later. He showered and joined Judy in sue's bed, where they made love and talked about their plans for the days ahead. Of course sue didn't hear anything that was said. she was sound asleep as son as her head hit the bed. The next morning, she was awakened by Judy who said, "GET UP, cunt! We've got some company and you need to get cleaned up again!" sue stumbled out of the bed and onto the floor. she still didn't have use of her hands and it was awkward for her to get into the bathroom. Judy allowed her to sit on the toilet to relieve herself, but stayed with her and watched as sue pissed. Judy told her to get up and then she wiped sue's pussy for her. How embarrassing this was, having someone else wipe the piss from her. "Just stay right there a moment, susie slut," said Judy, "I'll be right back. Just want to make sure our guest is ready for you." sue stood still in front of the floor length mirror and looked at her naked body. her eyes came to rest on the brand the Captain had placed on her thigh the night before. she opened her legs slightly, twisting her thigh slightly. she saw the letters, "RS", wondering what they meant. she didn't know anyone with those initials and could not figure out why he had put them on her. As she was looking, the Captain entered the bathroom. He noticed her looking at the brand and said, "Oh, I see you are trying to figure it out!" she nodded her head, afraid to ask what it was for. But the Captain continued, "you see, susie slut, you are now mine. I own you and that on your thigh proves it. Those letters stand for "RON'S SLUT" and that's what you are." sue started crying. she would never be able to be free from the thought of being his slut. And she would always be reminded of it whenever she looked at her leg. The Captain continued, "And from now on, you will tell any one who asks about it what it means. You'll tell everyone that it stands for "Ron's slut" and I better never hear you say anything else. Is that clear, bitch!" "YYYYYeeeessssss, sir," cried sue. "Now tell me, what does it stand for?" he ordered her. "Rrron's ssslut" she stammered. "Very good, now let's go meet our guest!" he said. They entered the living room and in the middle stood Judy, talking to the mayor. sue gasped at the sight of him. "How could they do this to her?" she questioned herself. It was just six months ago that she stood before the mayor, dressed in her neatly pressed uniform, receiving an award for being the most outstanding police officer of the year. The mayor had told her she was the best the town ever had and that he was so proud to have her in his town. But now she stood before him totally naked, hands cuffed and branded. her pussy was locked up, a metal collar on her throat, and she had a lock in her ear. What would he think of her now? The Captain said, "Mr. Mayor, I'm sure you remember sgt. lee. she was the best officer last year." "Yes, I do," said the mayor, "but why isn't she dressed today and why is she bound like that?" "Well, sir," said the Captain, "sgt. lee has asked me if she could be my slave and slut for awhile. she agreed to do anything I wanted as long as she could be treated this way. So, how could I refuse her? After all, she is the best officer we have." Then Judy said, "That's right sir. sue, tell him that's what you want!" sue looked at all three of them and saw the look in Judy's and the Captain's eyes. she knew better than to argue, so she said, "Yes sir, Mr. Mayor, it is what I asked for." The Captain said, "And you'll do anything for me, won't you sgt. lee?" "Yes, sir," she said, not wanting to, but knowing she had no choice. "i'll do anything for you.' "Mr. Mayor, would you like a good blowjob?" asked Judy. "And then maybe you can use her in your office later on." "Sure, why not, since this is what she wants. I'd be happy to accept such an offer," said the mayor. The Captain then said, "Well, susie my slut, what are you waiting for? The mayor wants his cock sucked. Get to it!" sue, not wanting to disobey again, but not wanting to suck off this older man, slowly sank to her knees in front of the mayor and unzipped his pants.
SPREAD 'EM part 23 sue sucked on the Mayor's cock until he shot his heavy load into her mouth. He pulled out after he shot the first couple of squirts and blew the rest of his load all over her upturned face. Then he laughed and said, "I've always wanted to do that to a girl but never had the chance." Judy laughed also and said, "Well, sir, you can do it more often if you wish. You can take her for your use anytime you want after this weekend. And she'll wear your cum for the rest of the day to remind her of your cock." "Well, thank you," the Mayor said. "I do have a council meeting on Tuesday and they are boring. Maybe she can help liven it up for me." "she'll be happy to," said the Captain. "Just tell us when and where and she'll be ready for you." After that the Mayor left. sue was still on her knees with cum running down her face. It was starting to dry on her cheeks and eyelids, but she could taste some of it as it dripped down onto lips. she hung her head in shame, thinking, "i just sucked off the mayor. He saw me naked. Now he wants me to be at a council meeting. What am i doing this for?" But she didn't get the chance to think too long. she was snapped out of her thoughts when Judy said, "OK, cunt, time to get to work. Ron, have a good day at the station. she'll be different when you get home." sue raised her head up and pleadingly looked at Judy. "What next?" she thought. Ron walked out of the door and was on his way to work. Judy said, "Now, cunt face, I want my morning lick. Get busy." She straddled sue's face and pushed her bushy cunt into her mouth. sue started licking her right away, knowing if she pleased Judy the rest of the day would be a lot easier on her. But this time she was wrong. sue licked and sucked Judy's cunt until she was pushed away and Judy shouted, "AAAGGGHHHHH YYYYYEEEESSSSSSS, CCCCCCUUUUUUMMMMMMIIIINNNNGGGGG." Now sue had the mayor's cum and Judy's cunt juice all over her face, mixing together. And it was drying on her fast. she stayed down on her knees, waiting to hear what Judy had for her. she didn't have long to wait as Judy had things all worked out in her mind. She said, "OK, my slut, time to learn some new tricks and commands. You already know one command and that is SHOW ME, but I want more from you." sue just looked at her with unknowing eyes, wondering what she should do now. Judy said, "The next command you are to learn is HEEL! Whenever you hear this, you will follow whoever says it. If you are kneeling like you are now, you'll get on all fours and follow." Then she unhooked sue's hands so she could do what she was told. sue stared at her blankly. she was being treated like a dog, being given commands you would give an animal. "Now, let's try it slut. HEEL," she ordered. sue didn't move. she was in a state of shock at what she was just told and now she couldn't move. But a quick slap across her face made her jump back into reality. "HEEL," Judy ordered again and this time sue got on all fours and crawled behind Judy into the kitchen. "Very good, slut. Now let's try it again. HEEL!" she ordered again and left the kitchen going back into the living room. sue followed just like she was a dog and tried her best to keep up. It was difficult walking or crawling like this, trying to keep pace with the fast walking Judy. "Much better, susie. Now again, HEEL!" she said and walked back to the kitchen. Once there, Judy said she would make some breakfast , but had to teach her new pet some other things first. "your next command is to learn how to sit. Now when I say sit, you will sit like a dog, back on your heels, and you will reach down and open your hot little pussy. Keep your eyes lowered in submission. Now let's try it. SIT!" she said. Sue, knowing she couldn't get away, decided to play her games. So she got up on her knees, leaned back to rest her naked ass on her heels and put her hands to her cunt and opened it as far as the locks would allow her. She lowered her eyes, and stayed that way until Judy said something else. "Very good. My little pet is learning, but we aren't done yet. I'm going to fix us some breakfast, and I want to read the paper while I eat, so you will fetch it for me. Your next command is FETCH." sue didn't really know what Judy expected of her so she just stayed in place. Judy saw sue was confused, so explained. "When I say FETCH, you will get down on all fours, go get the paper from the driveway and bring it to me. Don't use your hands to carry it either. You are my pet today and I expect you to act like one. Now, FETCH" sue decided once again to get this over with. This weekend couldn't be any worse than playing poodle to this bitch and she was hoping it would come soon. she got to the door and found that Judy had left it open a little. so she nudged it open the rest of the way and crawled outside. It was cold out, especially since she was naked, but she did what she had to do. she crawled down the steps and driveway to where the paper lay. Luckily it wasn't a thick paper. she managed to get it in her mouth and carry it back up the stairs and into the house. Then she went to where Judy was and dropped it at her feet. "Very good, puppy dog, now SIT!" she ordered sue. sue still continued playing her game and sat back on her heels with her hands at her pussy, once again prying it open as far as she could get it. Judy patted her on the head and then sat down to eat breakfast and read the paper. She fed sue scraps from her plate once in awhile and then sat the plate on the floor in front of her. "Now eat your breakfast, slut, and NO Hands!" Being hungry, sue bent and began to slurp up the cold runny eggs Judy had fixed for her. she gobbled them down quickly and then lapped up the water from the bowl next to her plate. she had eggs smeared on her face, along with the Mayor's cum and Judy's pussy juice. she was a mess, but Judy wouldn't allow her to clean it off. Judy thought it looked quite cute and she knew it humiliated sue. So, it was all left on her face. As soon as Judy saw that the slut had finished, she ordered, "HEEL!" Not wanting anymore punishment, sue crawled behind Judy into the living room. she hated doing these things, but what else could she do? They threatened to send her back to China, force her sister to be their slut, and to even let her parents see her. she had to obey for the six months and then she would be free. Once they got to the living room and sue was in the middle, Judy said, "SIT!" sue took the position she had learned earlier and sat like a little puppy dog, her naked ass resting on her heels and her hands opening her pussy lips.. her face was turning red from embarrassment. Not only did she have to be subjected to this humiliation, she was placed naked before the Mayor and forced to suck him off. What was she becoming? But even through all of this ordeal, her pussy was beginning to drip like a leaky faucet and there was no plumber around to stop it. So, she just obeyed. "Now, my little one, we have a few more commands to learn today and we will practice them for two days. Then this weekend, Hec and Victor can use them to see how well you have learned. Are you ready?" Judy said with a big smile. sue didn't know why, but she automatically said, "Yes, Ma'am, your slut is ready." As soon as she said those words, her cunt started flowing like a river. she didn't know why, but it turned her on to say she was a slut. she hung her head in embarrassment, but was really excited. she was really a slut. "OK, next command!" said Judy. "When I say BRAND, you will show off your new marking. Here is what you'll do. Listen closely and see if you can get it right." sue's mind went back to the other night when the Captain had put his marking on her thigh, right close to her cunt. And then she found out what it meant that morning. she played those words through her mind, "RON'S SLUT!" she had not heard Judy talking until she said, "OK, slut, let's practice. BRAND!" sue didn't move, but just stared at Judy. she didn't know what to do. her mind had been occupied with the thoughts of what had happened and wasn't paying attention. she stuttered, "i'm ssssoooorrrry, Ma'am, but i don't understand." "you didn't listen, did you cunt?" and she slapped her face, leaving her hand print. "i i i i i'mmmm sorry, Ma'am, no i didn't," cried sue. "Pppllleeeaaase explain again. i'll do better." Judy went back through it all over again, explaining just what she expected of sue. "When I say BRAND, you will get into a pose that allows others to see your new brand. you will put your right leg out in front of you and turn it so your brand is visible. Then you will put your right hand on your hip and your left hand on your thigh, right near the brand and put your index finger out like you are pointing to it. Turn your head to the left, showing the lock on your ear. And thrust those little titties out and smile." sue was taking it all in, but quickly got confused. she used to think so clearly. So when Judy said, "Now let's try it. BRAND!" sue did her best, but did not do it right. Judy knew this would take some time, so she positioned sue just the way she wanted her, then said, "Now, just stay like that for awhile. I'll let you know when to move. I think if you remain that way long enough, you'll learn it." Judy left sue standing there in the position to show off her new brand. She went to the other room, taking her time doing little things to get ready for her long weekend with Ron. They would have time alone, but the best part was, they would bring sue's little sister lynn home with them. Oh, sue wouldn't know for awhile that lynn was near by, since she was going to be put up in a motel as a whore. Judy's little whore. Her mind drifted to the pictures she had seen of lynn. Such a sexy little creature who will be such a good little whore, bringing in lots of money for her. Especially since lynn had just turned 18 and as far as they knew, was still a virgin. Finally, she shook the thoughts of lynn from her mind and went back into the living room where she had left sue. She found her in the same position she had left her in and decided to get a few pictures of her like this. So bringing out the camera, she went around and snapped several pictures. She said, "Just want to add to your scrap book, my pet. After all, someday you might want to look back to when you were a slut." sue was starting to hurt all over, being made to stand in one position for so long. she hoped that Judy would allow her to move soon. It seemed as though Judy read her mind and said, "OK, susie slut, you may move now. Loosen up and we'll practice some more." sue moved and stretched her legs and arms. They were sore, but once she moved around some, she felt better. she was hoping that Judy would give her a break from this, but her thoughts were soon diminished. "OK, slut, let's practice again. BRAND!" she shouted. sue jumped at the shrill voice, but automatically got into position to show her brand. she stayed like that for awhile, waiting to see what Judy would do next. "Very good pet, now let's review. SIT!" she said. sue got down on her knees and leaned back on her heels with her hands spreading her locked pussy. "Good girl. HEEL!" she ordered. sue got down on all fours and followed Judy around the room. "SIT!" she yelled, and sue got back into the position of a sitting puppy. "you are doing so good slut. BRAND!" Judy laughed. sue jumped up and showed off her brand, just the way Judy said to. she hated it, but she had to do it. Maybe the bitch would be good to her and allow her some rest and maybe a good orgasm, which she really needed. This stuff was actually turning her on. "SIT!' was the next order. sue got back down on her knees with her naked ass resting once again on her heals. "OK, my little cunt, one more command and then it's practice for two days. your next one is KNEEL!" Judy said. sue looked at her, puzzled, panting from both the exercise and the excitement, but actually interested as to what this would make her do. Judy started explaining the new position. "When you hear this, you drop immediately to your knees. If your hands are free, you lock them behind your neck and again thrust out those pitiful little titties like headlights. Direct your eyes at the crotch of whoever is giving the order, and the most important thing is, spread your knees as wide as you can, invitingly, completely revealing your sorry cunt and rings. Understand, whore?" "yyyyeeessss, Ma'am," sue cried. she had never been so degraded in her life. Showing everything wasn't too bad, but those words she used to describe her body hurt. sue always was proud of her body and now this bitch just cut her to pieces with words. How hateful was this woman. "OK, KNEEL!" shouted Judy. sue got up on her knees and spread them out. Then she placed her hands behind her head and thrust out her tits. she would show her that she had something there. Judy just laughed at them and at her, and said, "Open those legs up more, slut." sue worked her legs open even more, until she thought she would split. she couldn't go any farther apart. Judy watched and noticed her head was down, looking at the floor. "This won't do cunt," she said. "When you are in this position I want you looking into my crotch or the crotch of anyone else who is standing in front of you. Now do it!" sue raised her head up and looked straight into Judy's bare cunt. she could see the juices forming at her lips and for some reason wanted to lick her. she didn't know why, because before she was forced to be a slave/slut, she never even thought about eating pussy. But now she wanted her Mistress' cunt on her mouth. Judy left her like this for a short time, then said, "OK, fuck slut, let's practice!" sue knew she was in for a long couple of days, doing all of these things all the time, but she also knew if she didn't do them and do them right, she would get punished. So she did everything Judy ordered. "HEEL, KNEEL, SIT, BRAND, FETCH!" were the orders. Judy changed them at times and when she had to fetch, it was always something different. Of course, pictures and videos were being taken all the time.. This continued until the doorbell rang. "Well, slut, go answer the door," said Judy. sue was shocked that she had to go answer the door naked, not knowing who was there. But Judy insisted that she do it. And when she started to stand up, Judy said, "No, crawl like a good little pet. We wouldn't want our guest to think I didn't train you right, now would we." So sue crawled to the door and carefully reached up to the doorknob and opened it. As she looked up to see who was there, she gasped at the sight of Hec standing there, looking down at her. Her eyes were right into his crotch and she could tell he had a huge hard on already. "Well, Judy, it looks like your little pet is learning well. What other little tricks can she do," he laughed as he walked past the little slut. "OH, she has learned all kinds of things today, Hec. I'll show you later. What can I do for you?" asked Judy. "Oh, I just stopped by to give you a list of things she has to have for the weekend and let you know how we want her when we pick her up tomorrow night. But now that I'm here, how about a little preview," asked Hec. "Of course you can have some fun with her. How about a nice blowjob?" asked Judy. "Wow, that would be great," said Hec, "I'm always ready for a good blowjob and she is a good cocksucker. Let's do it!" "And, while she sucks, we can discuss what you need," said Judy, "but let's get comfortable. HEEL!" Judy walked into toward the couch and motioned for Hec to join her. sue crawling behind them. They sat down and Judy ordered, "KNEEL!" sue did as she was told, kneeling as she had been taught, right in front of Hec. Judy helped him get unzipped and pulled his cock out, pointing it right at sue's upturned face. "Now, slut, suck it. But, do it slow. I don't want him cumming until we have finished discussing thing," Judy told the submissive little slut. sue leaned forward and took his big hard cock into her mouth and slowly sucked it. she listened as they discussed her clothing, and other items that she would need to have ready when Hec and Victor picked her up on Friday. Tears were dripping from her eyes, running down her cheeks as she sucked his cock. But her hot little cunt was flowing like a river. "Why did her pussy do this to her?" she questioned herself. "It is so humiliating, but i'm so fucking wet," sue thought. As she sucked him slowly, trying very hard not to make him cum, she heard the plans and even heard Hec say, "And, I'll also need to get in touch with Stephanie to see if she can help us Friday night. And can you ask Ron to contact his doctor friend. We have a little surprise for her when we get her." "No problem," said Judy. "You can do anything you want with her. After all, you spent good money for the cunt, and she will have to pay you back somehow. It will be a big surprise when we get back to see what you have done with our little whore slut," Judy said.
SPREAD 'EM part 24 Finally the two finished their talks and Judy said, "OK, susie slut, make Hec cum and don't swallow, yet." sue's mouth was getting tired from having to suck his cock so slowly and she was ready to finish him off. But why couldn't she swallow? she started sucking the hard cock in her mouth harder and soon he was cumming into her mouth. "AAAAAAGGGGGHHHHHH, YYYYEEEESSSSSS!" he yelled as he shot his load into her. she had such a hard time holding it in her mouth and not swallowing, but she did manage to hold most of it. While she was finishing Hec off, Judy was thinking of something else and as soon as Hec left, she would call Ron to see if he could stop on the way home to get what she needed. Once Hec stopped cumming, he pulled out, leaving poor little susie kneeling with her mouth full of cum. Judy said, "OK, let's get you out of here, Hec, so I can continue with the whore's training. susie slut, go with him to the door. Hec, just say HEEL and she'll follow." Hec laughed and said, "HEEL, slut!" He turned to walk toward the door and sue was right behind him on her hands and knees, following him all the way to the door. she had her mouth full of cum, wanting to swallow, but knew she couldn't. If Mistress wanted to see inside, she knew she had better have the cum in it. Once Hec left, Judy said, "Ok, pet, show me what you have in your mouth." sue opened her mouth, glad that she hadn't swallowed, and Judy just laughed. Then she said, "Swallow it, bitch!" With one gulp, sue swallowed the big load. she could still taste him, but at least she didn't have it in her mouth any more and she could breathe better. "OK, now let's continue, slut. Stand up!" ordered Judy. sue stood up, thankful to be off her knees, but worried about what was next. she would soon find out when Judy said, "One more new command and then we'll practice some more until the Captain gets home." sue lowered her head in shame, knowing Judy was going to humiliate her some more and then again when the Captain got home. "ASS, will be the last command for today," said Judy, "and when you hear it, you will bend at the waist with your tiny little butt on full display. Now, let's try it. ASS!" sue bent over, keeping her legs together trying not to show very much. she figured Judy would change this, but she had to try. And she was right. she heard Judy say, "No pet, not like that. Bend over and spread those legs. Give me a good clear view of your tiny little hole and pussy." sue knew what she had to do and spread her legs apart, but it wasn't enough for Judy. She said, "Open up more, slut. I want to be able to see all of you down there. Now do it right or I'll whip your naked little ass." sue was worried that she would get hurt, so she spread her legs as far as she could get them, knowing she was showing Judy everything she had. Then Judy said, "That's better, now put your hands on your cheeks and spread them open." sue was crying again, being made to get into this humiliating position for Judy. she also knew she might have to do it in front of others as well. she hated Judy so much and some day she would get her revenge. Just as soon as this six months were up, she would find a way to get even. "That's a good little cunt, now just stay like that while I make a phone call. It'll get you used to being like this," said Judy. sue remained bent over, spreading her naked ass cheeks, showing everything. "How humiliating," she thought, "and what a nasty position to be in." Judy left her alone and went to the phone in the bedroom. She called Ron to see if he would stop by the sex shop on the way home. She asked him to pick up a special toy and some lubrication. She had made up her mind that sue was going to be a real pet for her and this new toy would make it just right. After talking to Ron, she came back into the living room and just stood still for a moment watching her little toy. she could see sue's bald cunt shinning as the juices dripped from it. She thought to herself, "The little whore loves this. she is so wet from being treated like a slut. Bet she would love to cum. I know I would like to right now." She walked over to sue and ran her fingers along the puffy cunt lips and then up to her asshole. she inserted a finger in her ass and wiggled it around some before she went back to her cunt. she ran her fingers up and down the slit and then rubbed her little clit. sue was squirming with the need to cum, but Judy wasn't going to allow it. she stopped just before sue was getting ready to get off. She said, "OK, slut, let's practice. KNEEL!" sue left her ASS position and got into the KNEELING one. she did it perfectly. Then, Judy said, "HEEL" sue got own on her hands and knees and followed Judy into the bedroom. Judy took her clothes all the way off and lay back on the bed, leaving her feet dangling over the side. She spread them wide open and said "Eat me, cunt!" sue crawled between her legs and started licking the juicy cunt before her. she had learned to lick Mistress quite well and knew just how to make her cum. And, it wasn't long before Judy did just that. "OOOOOOOOHHHHHHH, YYYYYEEEEEESSSSSSS, EEEEAAAAAATTTTTT MMMMMYYYYYY CCCCCUUUUUUNNNNTTTTT WWWWHHHOOOOORRRREEEE, CCCCCCUUUUUUUMMMMMIIIINNNNGGGGG!" sue swallowed all the pussy juice she could get into her mouth and her face was once again covered in sex juice. Judy wouldn't allow her to wipe it off since she wanted sue to be able to smell her pussy all the time. Once Judy had calmed down, she took sue back into the living room to practice the commands once again. "SIT, KNEEL, BRAND, ASS," she ordered. Judy went through all the new commands one right after the other, wanting to be sure susie knew them well. As she was doing this, Ron walked in and just stood back to watch. Judy was turning into quite a Domme. He laughed at the positions she made sue get into and finally said, "Very good, Judy. she learns well. Here is the thing you wanted." He handed her the bag and Judy gave one last command to sue. "ASS!" sue bent over like Judy had trained her, and her ass was in the perfect position to insert the new toy. Judy got the lubrication and smeared it around sue's puckered little hole, slipping a finger inside, then two fingers. she worked them around, opening sue's tight little hole. Then, she removed her fingers and said, "Now little slut, don't move. you move and I'll whip your ass." Judy pulled the butt plug from the bag and played with it for a little while. She loved it! The butt plug had a tail on it and Judy ran her fingers through the life-like hair. "This is going to be really cute," she thought, as she lubed it up and positioned it at the dark little hole of the girl bending over in front of her. Then, she pushed it into the opening. "MMMMMPPPPPHHHHHH, NNNNNNNOOOOOOOOO!" sue screamed, " IT HHHHUUUUURRRTTSSSSS!" "Hold still, cunt!" ordered Judy. "I'll have it in soon, and then we can look." Pushing harder and getting more in, sue's tight little ass began to open. It hurt, but at the same time felt good. her pussy was really dripping now. "Why am i like this," sue questioned herself. "i am not like this, but every time they do something to me, my cunt drips like a leaky faucet." Finally, the butt plug slid all the way in and sue's ass clamped around the shaft. It was there to stay. "OK, slut, KNEEL!" ordered Judy. Without even thinking, sue got into her kneeling position. It was almost automatic now and sue didn't understand why she did these things. she just did them. "HEEL!" was the next command and sue got on all fours and followed Judy down the hall to the full length mirror in the hallway. Once they arrived, sue looked in the mirror and saw the thing sticking out of her ass. "NNNOOOO," she yelled, "don't do this to me!" she stared at the mirror that showed her reflection. she looked more like a puppy dog now with a tail sticking out of her little ass, and a collar on her throat. It was the same color as her hair and it appeared to actually be a part of her. It looked like she actually had a tail growing from her ass. "OK, now that you have admired your new tail, let's see if you can wag it for me," said Judy. Embarrassed, sue moved her ass, making the tail move back and forth, just like she was wagging it. Ron said, "Looks like your little pet is happy. she wags her tail so cute. I think it should stay there for awhile. At least until we finish fucking. You ready, honey?" "I'm always ready for that hard cock, Ron," said Judy, "let's go do it." They started for the bedroom and Judy turned toward sue and said, "HEEL!" sue, embarrassed once again, crawled behind the other two. They went into the bedroom and Ron said, "I think she should watch as we fuck, don't you." Judy replied, "OH, yes, SIT slut!" sue got on her knees, rested her ass on her heels and pulled her cunt apart as far as she could with the lock on it. Ron noticed she couldn't open up very far, so he said, "I think we need to take her cunt lock off so she can get that little hole wide open." "That's a good idea Ron," said Judy, "and maybe we should leave it off as long as one of us are with her." The Captain reached down and unlocked the thing that had held her cunt together. Now her pussy could be open. Then, she was made to take the rings in her hands and pull her puffy pussy lips apart. she didn't pull too far since it hurt when she did. But Judy noticed this and said, "Open that disgusting hole up, susie slut. Make it nice and wide for us." sue pulled her pussy lips open a little more, hoping she didn't have to go much farther. But Judy kept telling her, "More, More, More." sue pulled and pulled her pussy lips in opposite directions until finally she had her cunt wide open and the pinkness on the inside was in total view. "That's better, bitch, now just stay like that and watch us," ordered Judy. sue was so humiliated, being made to have her fuck hole open so wide, but it was so wet, they could see the juice flowing out of it and onto the floor. Her little clit was also sticking straight out like a little penis. The other two just laughed at her as they removed their clothes. she watched it all, wanting to get fucked too, but knew that wasn't going to happen. Judy and Ron got into the bed, made out for a little while. Judy sucked his cock, while he ate her pussy. sue was so embarrassed watching the two lovers doing these things, but it made her so hot. It wasn't long and Ron got between Judy's spread legs and shoved his hard cock into her waiting cunt. He went all the way in, up to his balls and then slowly pulled back out, leaving just the head inside Judy. She was already moaning, wanting to be fucked hard. But Ron just slowly pushed back into her and picked up a slow steady pace. sue watched them fuck, while holding her pussy wide apart. she was so hot and wet, she was wanting to cum. But knew that she couldn't allow her pussy to close up and could not play with her hard little clit. she just had to sit, watch and suffer. They really started fucking hard now, moaning and groaning. Ron was picking up speed and Judy matched his thrust, pushing her cunt onto his hard cock. sue was amazed at how these two people fucked. But she also wanted some of the action. Hopefully this weekend she would get her cunt full of hard cock and be able to get the satisfaction she craved. Finally, after what seemed like hours for sue, both Ron and Judy stiffened up and she knew Ron was shooting his cum deep into her cunt. sue wondered if Judy was on birth control like she was. If not, then she would be pregnant after this fucking. They both came together, shouting, "AAAAAAAGGGGGGGHHHHHH, OOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHH, FFFFFFUUUUUUUCCCCCCKKKKKK, MMMMMMOOOOORRREEEEEE!" sue didn't ever remember being that loud, but then again, they probably didn't realize it either. sue hoped that they would let her up to stretch now that they finished. But her hopes were diminished when Ron finally pulled his softening dick out of Judy's wet cunt. It even POPPED as it came out. He stood up and walked to her saying, "OK, cunt, now I need to get clean. Don't move from that position and lick me clean!" He stuck his cock right up to her lips and for some reason, she just opened up and took him in her mouth. she licked and sucked all the mixed juices from his cock and she could tell he was getting hard again. But he pulled out before he became fully erect and walked away, leaving her with her mouth wide open. But she wouldn't be left alone for long. Judy got up and repositioned sue's head, making her lean back even more. Then she said, "Now, slut, suck my cunt clean and you better get it all. And don't you dare let go of your whore hole!" Judy climbed onto her face and almost suffocated her. she had no other option available except to suck and lick the well fucked hole of her Mistress. she lickrd and sucked her, tasting Ron's cum sliding into her mouth and down her throat. But it was different now, since it was mixed with Judy's cunt juice. "Not really a bad taste," she thought as she tried to get it all out of the pussy on her face. When Judy thought she was cleaned enough, she pulled back off sue's face and walked away. As she was leaving the bedroom she said, "HEEL!" sue was actually grateful for this since she could move a little and stretch her tired limbs. But, it wouldn't be for long. Judy walked into the living room and ordered, "Fix us a drink and dinner, slut" "May i get up to do it, please," sue begged. "Yes, get your ass up and hurry. But make sure you keep your little tail moving all the time," said Judy. The two of them sat down on the couch and watched as sue rose to her feet and walked into the kitchen. They laughed at the tail she now had and sue heard Judy say, "I think she needs to wear that all the time. How about you?" Ron laughed a little louder and said, "Yea, it might be kind of fun to watch her at work, trying to hide it from the others. But if she is naked, she won't be able to hide anything." sue turned bright red with the thought of being at work in the station, naked and sporting a tail. They wouldn't make her do that! Or would they? sue returned with the drinks and then went back to fix dinner. she hurried as fast as she could, with the hopes they would allow her to go to bed. she had had quite a day and she needed to rest. Once dinner was served to the two of them Judy said, "KNEEL!" sue got down on her knees in the position she had been trained to be in and waited. They fed her scraps from their plates and then when done, she had to clean everything up. Finally, Judy said it was bedtime and took sue into the little guestroom. She bound her to the bed, put a dildo in her cunt and turned out the lights. Shutting the door, she said, "Get some sleep whore. Tomorrow we practice some more and then Hec will be by to get you for the weekend." Even with her ass and cunt full, sue fell asleep quickly.
SPREAD 'EM part 25 The next day wasn't too hard on sue. Once she was allowed to get up, she took a shower and had breakfast. she was allowed to eat with Ron and Judy at the table. she was still naked, except for her choker and lock on her ear and pussy rings, but it felt good to eat like a human again. Ron left to go to the station to finish up the weekly reports before going on vacation. Judy and sue stayed home to finish packing and getting ready for the weekend. Judy packed a small bag for sue, only putting the things Hec wanted her to have. He had said he would have a surprise when he came and picked up his weekend slut. But he wouldn't say what it was. sue had to pack for Judy and Ron. she hated doing this, especially since some of the clothes she packed for Judy were once hers. Judy had kept all the clothes that fit her before making sue burn the rest. But she knew she had to do as she was told or Judy would make her go to the station naked and it was hard to tell what else the evil woman would force on her. So in silence she packed the big suitcases. she also saw her little bag, but didn't know what Judy had put in it. sue also cleaned up the house and changed the beds. she washed the dishes and did the laundry while Judy sat around watching her. Of course, since Judy was horny most of the time, sue had to pleasure her in between her chores. she had to eat Judy's cunt numerous times during the day, but sue was never allowed any relief. Ron got home around four p.m. and started packing the car. Judy made sue get into her SITTING position in the middle of the living room and watch as Ron took the bags out. Beside sue was her leash and butt plug with the tail. she was in her position, spreading her cunt apart when Ron came in after taking the last bag out. With him was Hec. They just ignored the little slut in the middle of the floor and went to get a beer. sue could here them talking, but wasn't sure about everything they said. she only caught bits and pieces of what they said. Once they had the beer, they came back to where sue was SITTING and walked around her. Hec said, "Well, looks like she is ready to go." Ron replied, "Yes, Judy made sure her little bag was packed and things are all ready for you. I'm sure you'll all have a great weekend. Just remember, if she disobeys, let us know and she'll get punished." "Great!" said Hec, "I'm sure she'll behave, knowing that Judy said she would have to go to work naked if she doesn't." They all laughed at this. Everyone except sue. Tears were beginning to form in her eyes, but she could also feel her cunt getting wet. Just the thought of being naked made her hot. "STAND UP cunt," ordered Hec. sue stood up, but still held her cunt lips apart. she didn't know if she should let them go or not, so she stood there, legs spread, holding on to her cunt rings. But just then, Hec gave another order, "ASS!" was all he said. sue quickly changed positions, bending over and grabbing her naked ass cheeks, spreading them apart. Hec walked behind her after he bent over and picked up the butt plug with the tail. Then, he placed it against her asshole and pushed. He didn't use lubrication, but surprisingly, it went right in. By having it in her ass all night, her little brown hole stretched enough to take it again without the lube. Once he got it all the way in, he told her to stand up straight and he picked up her leash, passed it through her collar ring and hooked it to the rings in her pussy and said, "OK, slut, let's go. We have so much to do this weekend and it is time to get started." He tugged on her leash and she couldn't do anything but follow. As they walked out of the door, Judy said, "Have fun little slut, and be sure to behave. You know what will happen if you don't." The door was closed and sue felt the chilly night air on her naked skin. she thought it would be better once they got into Hec's truck, but was soon to find out differently. she followed him to the truck feeling kind of ashamed that she was naked like this, but also was excited about her weekend with Hec. she was starting to have feelings for him, and when her six months were up, she might pursue him more. When they arrived at the truck, Hec opened the door and threw her little bag inside. But before she could get in, he closed the door and led her to the back of the truck. He said, "OK slut, climb in." she looked at him with disbelief since it was getting colder and she was naked. Inside the bed of the truck, she saw a cage with the door open. she just stood there, not moving until he slapped her on the ass. He said, "I told you to get in cunt. Now move it." she jumped from the hard slap to her ass and it really stung because it was cold. she was afraid he might do more, so she climbed up onto the bed of the truck. Then he said, "Into the cage, slut." she slowly got to her knees on the cold metal and crawled into the cage. As soon as she was inside, he shut the door and she heard it lock. Knowing there was no tailgate on his truck, she felt so open. Anyone driving behind them would see her naked ass with that awful tail sticking out. she started crying again. Hec got in the front and closed his door. she heard the truck start and then felt the motion as he drove away from her house. It was cold and she shivered and she hoped she wouldn't get sick from being exposed so much. she had no idea where she was or where he was taking her. she cried even more now, but her cunt was on fire from her need to be used. she couldn't understand why she felt like this, but she didn't like it. At least that's what her mind said to her, but her hot pussy told her she needed and wanted everything that would happen. Suddenly, she heard a horn blow and opened her eyes. she could see the lights shining behind her and knew that someone saw her naked ass. The tail in her ass had been blown to the side, so her hot cunt was also visible. Hec slowed the truck and turned off the road. she felt him going slower and then suddenly, he stopped in a well-lit area. He shut the truck off and got out, not paying any attention to her sobs. He walked away from the truck, but soon he returned. she heard him say, "I told you I had a slut for the weekend. What do you think?" Another voice said, "Wow, that is one hot looking ass. I sure could use some of that." Then it was Hec's voice again, "Well, if you come to the club tomorrow night, you can have some. But, it will cost you. I put out alot of money on this cunt and I plan on getting it back." sue didn't like the way he talked and dreaded what she was going to have to do. But, she also thought in her mind, that she was going to finally get fucked. she needed to have a hard cock inside her so she could cum. It had been so long since she was allowed to be fucked and to cum. Some other voices could be heard by sue, but she couldn't make out what they said. Then Hec said, "OK, you've all seen enough for now. Be at the club tomorrow night and you will get some of this slut's ass. I might even give it away free to you guys. All depends on how much everyone else will pay to fuck her." "Oh, my God," thought sue. "i am now going to be a whore for real. He is going to charge to get me fucked." her mind wandered to her little sister. They had threatened to get her and make her a whore. And then to her parents. They would die if they knew what she was doing, even if it was against her will. Why didn't she just go back to China instead of picking this option? Hec got back into the truck, started it up and drove off again. she knew there were cars behind them, but didn't know how many or who it was. All she could see was the front of the cab and the reflection of the lights behind her. she knew she was showing everything. They drove a little more and then she felt the truck turn onto another road. It felt like a dirt road. But it wasn't very long before the truck stopped and Hec came around to the back and unlocked the cage she was in. "OK, cunt, get your skinny little ass out. We have lots to do tonight," he said. sue was glad to get out of that cage with the hopes of getting inside where it was warm. she was so cold now. Everything but her cunt was cold and for some reason, that was hotter than a fire. He took the leash on her cunt rings and walked her into the house. He took her into the kitchen and there she saw Victor. He said, "It's about time you got back with the cunt. The doctor and Stephanie are on the way." "Great," said Hec, "It won't take long to get the little slut ready for her treatments." sue didn't understand what he meant by treatments, but since it was a doctor, she thought of all kinds of things. She knew that having Stephanie here, she would probably get pierced again or tattooed. Hec led her to the kitchen table and picked her up. He layed her on her back on the table and then began to tie her down. He took each arm and pulled it to the side, tying a rope around her wrists and then to the table legs. He also did the same to her legs. she was now spreadeagled on the large kitchen table. she tried to move her limbs, but he had her tied down nice and tight. Then he raised her head up by pulling on her hair and shoved a couple of pillows under her head. she now had to look straight down her body. her little tits were pushed up and she could see between them to her bald mound. The guys sat back to drink some beer while they waited for the others to arrive. They also admired the naked girl on the table and talked about her like she wasn't even there. They said things like, "Pretty little cunt she has. Bet it will take a big cock." Tits are kind of small, but we'll fix that." Wonder if the guys at the club will enjoy her." Then there was a knock on the door. Hec said, "That's got to be them. Victor, how about letting them in." Victor got up and made his way to the door. sue heard some talk and knew one of them was Stephanie. But she had never heard the other voice before. Victor led them into the kitchen and Stephanie said, "Well, it is good to see you again, susie. We are going to have such a good time tonight and I'm going to get my pussy licked again. you do it so well." "I would like to watch that," said the doctor, "but I think we need to do the procedures first before we play." "Yes," said Hec, "let's get the work over with and then we can play. Like I told you doc, you get to have her for yourself for awhile once you are done making those tits bigger." When sue heard this, she gasped. "They couldn't do this to her," she thought to herself, "i can't have my tits bigger. i'll look like a bimbo!" sue watched as Stephanie and the doctor got all the equipment out. It looked so evil to her. Needles, clamps, vials of liquid. she didn't want this to happen to her and she tried to say something. But was slapped across the face by Stephanie who said, "Just shut up slut, or it'll be worse on you." sue cried, but did try to beg for them not to do this to her. Stephanie said, "I'll fix her crying little mouth." She reached under her skirt and pulled her panties down. Once she had them off, she went to sue and pried her mouth open. Then she stuffed the panties in her mouth, making sure the wet crotch went in first so she got a good taste of pussy. "OK," said the doctor, "I'm ready. Should I go first or do you want to, Steph?" Stephanie said, "I think you need to get them bigger first. Can you also make her nipples bigger?" "Oh sure," said the Doctor, But I'll have to fix some more of the solution." "OK," said Stephanie, "Go ahead and mix it up. I want to do something with her." Stephanie reached down between sue's legs and ran her finge nail up her slit. she then found her clit and scratched it with her long nails. sue started squirming and moaning through the panties she had in her mouth. "Wow, this cunt is wet," said Stephanie, "Bet she is loving all of this and just begs to make us think she doesn't" Stephanie played with the little cunt while the doctor was getting the rest of the things he needed. When he came back, he said, "OK, now how big do we need these little titties and nipples." Stephanie said, "Well, the nipples should be at least a quarter inch long, if not a half inch. It's up to the guys as far as how big they want her tits. But, just remember, the bigger they are the worse she looks. Her frame can't handle big ugly tits. I would suggest going up one or two sizes." Hec said, I think she is about a 32 right now, so let's try for a 34. Can you go bigger if they aren't big enough." "I sure can," said the doctor. "All I need is a little more fluid and I can make them into 38"s." "Well," said Victor, "I think a nice 34 would look good on her, especially when she wears tight clothes." "OK, then 34 it is," said the doctor. "And about a quarter inch nipples should look good, too." Then the doctor grabbed her left tit and squeezed it. sue jumped as best she could, but couldn't move very far, since they had tied her down really good. And all she could do was moan into the panties. The doctor played with her tit and finally said, "OK, she is ready. Here we go." He took the needle and placed it into the fleshy part of her tit and wiggled it around. Then, he began to push the plunger on the syringe. sue screamed into the panties, and her tit felt as though is was on fire. He squirted the fluid into her tit and then moved it to another spot. He continued doing this until the syringe was empty. He stood back and the others looked at sue's bigger tit. "Perfect," they all said together. "Looks like she actually has a tit now. Let's get the other done." The doctor left that tit alone and moved to the other side. He played with it for awhile, just as he had the first one. Then the needle went in. sue was feeling weak now from the pain of the needle and the humiliation of having it done against her will. But she was able to stay awake for the whole procedure. Once the doctor had finished, he stood back and said, "Well, is it OK?" "That's great," Hec shouted. Now let's do the nipples so Stephanie can get her job done. It is going to be great tomorrow night having a true cop fucking everyone." This scared sue. she wanted to fuck, but how many would be there and what else would they do. The doctor was now pinching her left nipple and she suddenly became aware of the needle puncturing it. He had centered it right at the tip and pushed it into her. Then, he squeezed the plunger and she could actually see her cute little nipple grow. How gross she thought she would look, having her nipple erect all the time. The doctor squeezed just enough into her to make her nipple stick straight out and it looked to be about a quarter of an inch long. Then he did the other nipple and tried to get them to match. He got them as close as he could and then stepped back. "Wow," said Stephanie, "they look delicious. If I was Bi, I wouldn't mind sucking those titties." Every one laughed and Hec said, "OK Steph, now it's your turn. Once you're done, we'll have some play time. The doc says he wants some of that asian cunt." "OK," said Stephanie, "I'm ready. Now are you sure you want her badge on her left tit and a one-inch ring on the other one. How about a name tag instead of a ring?" sue could not believe what she was hearing. First the lock in her ear, for all to see, a choker that never came off, pussy rings that could be used to lock her cunt, studs in her tongue, a brand that boldly announced her slavery, and now this. "We thought about the name tag, but the ring can be used for so many other things," Hec replied. "And besides, her name tag is already branded on her thigh. The badge and ring will look so good at the club and we'll get all our money back from this little slut." Stephanie went to sue and played with her nipple some more, loving the feel of it. Sometimes she wished she could be like sue. It really turned her on to think of herself in this position. Then she got the piercing tool and placed it on sue's left nipple. Then she squeezed and everyone could hear it pass through the tender skin. sue held her breath and tried to cry out from the pain. But she couldn't get anything out since her mouth was full of Stephanie's panties. Once the tool had made its hole, she quickly got the badge and put it in sue's nipple. Then she stood back to admire her work. "Looks good to me," she said. "Do you want it permanent. I can solder the clasp closed and she'll never get it out." "Great idea," exclaimed both Victor and Hec. So before she started on the right nipple, she got the soldering gun out and plugged it in. It had to warm up before she could do it. Poor sue would be in pain again, since she would feel the heat and it might even burn her if Stephanie slipped. Then she went to the other nipple and proceeded to pierce it. She placed the tool on the nipple and squeezed, making the hole. Once again sue felt the pain and this time she did pass out. Stephanie threaded the one-inch gold ring in place and then went to work fixing both the badge and ring so they would be permanent. She held the soldering gun up to the metal and heated it up. She was glad sue passed out, since the burning of her tit was noticeable. At least to her. When she finished soldering them in place, she stepped back and said, "OK, guys, you now have a naked cop with badge. She'll never get them out, unless they are cut." Now it was play time for the doctor and he held something under sue's nose. He wanted her awake when he fucked her. sue came to, just in time to see the doctor strip off the last of his clothes. she stared right into his hard cock. She thought, "My God, he is huge. The doctor had a 10" cock and it was quite thick. He went to the end of the table and started sliding it into her wide open cunt. It stretched her tiny pussy and sue cried from the pain it was causing her. But, the doctor kept pushing and finally he was up to his balls in her tight little cunt. While he was fucking sue, the guys walked Stephanie into the living room to thank her, but they had other things on their minds. They were going to fuck Stephanie tonight while the doctor had his fun with the little whore on the table. Stephanie didn't know this, so she was caught off guard when the men grabbed her and tied her hands behind her back.
SPREAD 'EM part 26 Once the doctor was all the way inside sue's tight little cunt, he stayed still just for a moment feeling the pleasure. But it wasn't long and he began to withdraw his huge cock. He pulled all the way out so only the head was inside. Then, with a strong push, he was once again buried all the way in. He was really enjoying this hot little slut, especially the rings in her pussy lips. They seemed to add to his pleasure as they rubbed against his hard 10" cock as he went in and out of her. sue lay on the table, unable to move, but the feeling she had in her pussy was so overpowering. she tried her best to meet his thrust as he pulled out and then slammed back into her hard. He was moving slow inside her, wanting it to last. sue wanted him to fuck her fast so she could at least have one orgasm. It had been so long since she was allowed to cum! The doctor continued his assault on her hot little cunt, fucking her slow, but deep and hard. she knew that soon he would cum and hoped that she too would get hers. In the living room, Hec and Victor were having a great time with stephanie. she knew she was in trouble as soon as her hands were tied behind her. she hadn't expected this at all. The only thing she wanted was to have her pussy licked by the little whore on the table, but it looked as if she would get more than she bargained for. The two guys had opened her blouse and pushed her bra out of the way and now each of them had a tit in their hands, getting ready to suck on her nipples. stephanie tried hard to get away from the attack, but they held her too tight. she knew her nipples were getting hard and unfortunately for her, her little cunt was getting so wet. The juices began to flow out of her pussy and down her legs. she hoped they wouldn't notice how hot it made her to be used this way. she often thought about what it would be like to be a slut like sue had become, but never thought it would happen to her. And she also thought, "What will Derek think of her or what would he say?" Derek had been her boyfriend for over a year. He was conservative and earned good money in the computer world. They saw each other several times a week, and often spent weekends together. He was a good lover, and she was sure he never cheated on her. she had been faithful to him, also. The recent activities with Captain Ron and his slut had awakened some new feelings within her, but her heart still belonged to Derek. Now Victor and Hec each had a nipple in their mouth, sucking on them. stephanie was getting hot and the guys knew it. They would definitely get a good fuck from her tonight. And maybe even make her their slut once they took sue back to Ron and Judy. sue was grinding her hips to meet the thrust of the doctor. He was going faster now, fucking the little asian whore on the table. He figured he could cum in her cunt, then get a good blow job before he fucked her again. This was going to be a great night. And he might even get to watch the two girls fuck each other. He had never seen that before, and wanted to make sure this one was full of his cum. That way stephanie would get a good taste of him while she was made to suck sue's well-fucked cunt. The doctor picked up the pace as he thought of all that could happen and knew that if he fucked her now, he could fuck her again later and maybe even get some of the other little bitch. So he started going faster, which made sue want more. she bucked her hips up to meet his thrusts, and even though the ropes held her back, she was able to push her pussy onto his hard cock. she felt the doctor's cock begin to grow and knew she had to cum soon or he would shoot his load in her and once again be denied. she forced her mind to think of cumming more and more. Then it happened. The doctor pulled out one final time and then drove into her so hard, the table moved. That's when it hit sue. "AAAAAAAAAAGGGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHHH! OOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHHH! FFFFFFFFFFFFUUUUUUUUUUCCCCCCCKKKKKKKK! AAAAAAAAAAAGGGGGGGHHHHHH!" she screamed as she had the first orgasm in many days. The Doctor also was cumming, shooting his load into her hot cunt. "OOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHH,SSSSSSSHHHHHHIIIIIIIIITTTTTTTT, HHHHHOOOOOOTTTTTT, CCCCCCCCCUUUUUUNNNNNNTTTTTTT!" Once they both calmed down just a little, the doctor pulled out and moved up to her head and forced his cock into her mouth. sue was so hot right now, she quickly pulled his cock into her mouth and down her throat. she could taste her juices along with his cum on it, and savored the taste. God, she was such a fucking slut now; she couldn't get enough cock. But she figured that was because she had been denied for so long without being fucked. Hec and Victor finally finished fucking stephanie in the living room and raised her up from the arm of the couch. They didn't want any cum leaking out of her cunt, so they carried her, almost upside down into the kitchen. They stood watching the doctor getting his cock sucked, but wanted to get things moving, so they interrupted him and asked if he wanted to watch a show. "Oh yes, I have never seen two girls getting it on before, so let's do it!" he told them. They carried stephanie over to the table and placed her right over sue's mouth. Then they pushed her down so her freshly fucked pussy was right on her mouth. Hec said, "OK, little susie slut, suck our cum from this whore's hole!" stephanie started to tell them, "I am not a whore," but was slapped hard across the face to shut her up. Victor said, "You are whatever we say you are. Now shut up!" sue started licking stephanie, since she loved the taste of her pussy. Ever since the first time, she couldn't get enough of her. she hoped stephanie enjoyed being eaten as much as she loved eating her hot pussy. sue licked at the pussy she had come to love, even more than Judy's cunt, but found out that it was quite different this time. she had gotten a mixed flavor of juices. Some of stephanie's, mixed with Hec's and Victor's cum. But she licked it all into her mouth and swallowed. she knew she had to, or she would end up naked at work next week and she didn't want that to happen. As sue was licking stephanie, Hec pushed stephanie's face toward sue's pussy. He said, "OK, cunt, do the same for her!" stephanie, not used to being treated this way argued. "No, i have never eaten a pussy before, and i don't want to start!" A hard slap on her naked ass shut her up, but she still tried to push away from the pussy that was now just inches from her face. But that wasn't going to be for long, since the guys pushed even harder and forced her into sue's well-fucked cunt. stephanie held her mouth closed so she wouldn't have to do it, but this was noticed by the doctor He reached down and grabbed her nose, pinching it so she had to open her mouth to breathe. When she did, the other two pushed her mouth right into the pussy they wanted her to eat. stephanie got the first taste of pussy just then. Hec said, "You either lick that cunt, or I'll have to call your boyfriend and show him how you fucked me and Victor." Of course, she didn't want Derek to find out, so she slowly stuck her tongue out and tasted sue. It wasn't so bad, as she licked up and down the slit and even touched sue's hard little clit. she thought about how she had put the rings in sue's pussy, but never thought she would be licking it. Now that the girls were eating each other, the guys just stood back to watch and play with their cocks so they would be ready for more when they finished. And they also set the video camera on a tripod to get all the action for use later on. Ron and Judy would love this when they got back. Stroking their cocks and watching the two sluts eat pussy was getting all three of them so horny again. They all knew they would have to fuck the whores at least one more time tonight before going to bed and allowing stephanie to leave. They had some good plans for her and she would end up getting quite humiliated. As they watched, the girls kept licking and sucking each other, getting each others juices in their mouths, along with the guys cum. Then, suddenly, both girls shook as they had an orgasm. "MMMMMMMPPPPPHHHHHH" was all that could be heard as they never pulled their lips from the pussy they were eating. Once the girls had calmed down and just rested between each others' legs, the guys clapped and cheered! "Great performance!" they yelled. Both girls just looked at them and gave an embarrassed pout. they were so worn out, they didn't want to move. Of course, sue couldn't since she was still strapped to the table. The guys picked stephanie up and got her back on the floor. Then they untied sue to allow her to move and get the kinks from her body. But the guys hadn't finished yet. They were going to use these two sluts as much as they could, but still didn't want it to go all night. sue needed some rest since she would be used in a different way tomorrow. And they might even take stephanie with her, but hadn't thought too much about it yet. Once the girls had regained what little composure two naked sluts could get, they got ready for the next part. They took stephanie into the living room and layed her down on the coffee table. They quickly tied ropes to her ankles and spread her legs wide apart. The other ends were tied to the heavy furniture in the room, so she had to stay spread. Her arms were hurting form laying on them, so Hec took them and retied them to the legs of the table. Victor had left to get some supplies from the bathroom and when he returned, he placed them all on the floor next to the table. He had some towels, a bowl of nice warm water a razor and some shaving gel. Hec and the doctor laughed at what he had brought out, and Hec said, "OK susie slut, since your cunt stays bald most of the time, we want steph's cunt the same way. Shave it off!" stephanie heard this and began to protest. "Oh, please don't do that. Derek likes it this way. He doesn't like it shaved. Please, don't!" Hec laughed again and said, "Too bad slut, I don't like a hairy pussy. So what you have goes!" stephanie tried to argue again, but found she couldn't speak when the doctor put his huge cock into her mouth and forced it into her throat. All she could do was gurgle around it. He said, "There, this will keep her quiet while the other one shaves her." sue didn't want to do this to steph. But once again the threats about work and her little sister made her do as she was told. she picked up the bowl of water and using her hands, got stephanie's crotch wet. Then she shook the can of gel and squirted it onto stephanie's pubic mound. Next, she rubbed it all in, causing it to turn to foam and then she started shaving her pussy. stephanie squirmed at the touch of the razor, but was warned that if she moved, sue might cut her down there. So stephanie tried to stay still. It was difficult, but she did manage. her pussy was so hot and dripped like a faucet from the touch of sue's hands on her. sue couldn't resist and stuck a finger inside stephanie. Then she intentionally rubbed her finger across her clit. This made stephanie squirm some more, but lucky for her sue didn't have the razor on her. After a while, stephanie's pussy was totally bald, even around her puffy little lips. sue wiped it all off and then bent over and kissed her there. stephanie groaned around the cock in her mouth and began to suck it even more. she wanted it over with so she could get out of there. But the guys had other plans for her. They pushed sue out of the way and rubbed stephanie's pussy, making sure all the hair was gone. Once satisfied, Victor brought out a permanent magic marker and wrote just above the top of her pussy the word "SLUT", as he said, "Maybe we'll tattoo it on her later to make it permanent." They loved that and then each of them once again took turns fucking her. This was going to be the greatest ending to a great night. At least for all the guys. Hec fucked the little asian and made sure he filed her with a good load. Then Victor took his turn at her. He too gave her a good size load. Then the doctor, being a little bigger than the other two, drove his big 10" cock deep inside her. she had it in her mouth and now he was fucking her pussy. stephanie thought she was going to be slit apart from the size of that thing. It surprised her when he just slid right in and her tight little hole expanded to take it. he fucked her hard and then shot another load into her. The guys left her alone on the table while they got sue ready for bed. They took the leash and connected it through her collar, and down to her cunt rings. Then Hec tugged on it and she followed. But he stooped suddenly and looked at her. He said, "Wait, you have a new ring to play with, so let me adjust this leash for you." He reached over and disconnected the clip from her pussy rings and brought it up to her nipple ring. Then feeding it through the hole, he brought it back to her pussy and reconnected it. "There, that should work better," he said as he gave it a tug. sue felt it pull on her pussy rings first and then on her nipple ring. This made her cunt lips raise up toward her belly and her nipple seemed to grow even more. Then it pulled her collar around her neck. Hec just turned and walked away, forcing her to follow. It was painful to her nipple since it was a fresh piercing, and her pussy was getting so hot and wet from it. "Why does my pussy do this to me," she thought to herself. Leading her through the house and into a dark room, she was forced to her knees and then a boot on her ass shoved her forwards. she ended up on her hands and knees and since her eyes had gotten accustomed to the dark, she saw the cage in front of her. she didn't want to be in it again, but a sharp sting on her naked ass from the whip in Hec's hand made her crawl into it. As soon as her ass cleared the doorway, the door closed and she could hear the padlock close. "Now, that should hold you all night," said Hec. " We'll see you in the morning, slut. Sleep tight!" Victor added. They walked back into the living room and saw the doctor examining stephanie's tits. He said, "You know, I could make these a lot bigger and even make her nipples look like the other slut's." Hec laughed and said, "Well, maybe some other time, once we have some more fun with her. But it is time to get some sleep and we need to send her home." "But maybe we can pierce those puffy cunt lips and put some rings in it, just like the other whore," said Victor. "Great idea," agreed Hec, "It'll give her something to remember this night. Let's see if she has the stuff in her bag!" Getting her bag out, they rummaged through it and found just what they needed, the piercing tool and some rings. "Oh, yes," cried Hec, "These will do just fine. Then we can lead her around, too." None of them had ever done this before, so they told stephanie to tell them how to do it. But she said, "i won't do that. How can you expect me to tell you how to pierce me there, when i don't want it done." "Well, then we'll just have to figure it out on our own," said Victor. stephanie thought about that and then decided if it was going to be done, she had better explain how to do it right. So step by step, she explained how to put holes in her cunt and add the rings. she hated telling them, but if she didn't, they might fuck up and ruin her. The guys followed her directions and soon she had two nice little rings in her cunt lips. And they even made them permanent by welding them shut. Hec and Victor started to untie her, but the doctor asked if he could fuck her one more time before she left. It had been so long since he had fucked, he just couldn't get enough. They agreed and as Hec and Victor walked from the room, the doctor shoved his big cock into her one more time. Hec and Victor went to get a beer and when they got back, the doctor was fucking her quite hard. she was moaning and groaning with each thrust and soon she had an orgasm. "AAAAAAGGGGGGHHHHHHH,OOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHH,MMMMMMMMYYYYYYY,FFFFFFFUUUUUUCCCCCKKKKKK MMMMMMMMMEEEEEEE!" she screamed just as he shot another load deep inside her. Laughing, the guys released her from her bonds and told her to go home, but to expect a phone call later with instructions. stephanie started to look for her clothes, but Hec said, "Oh, forgot to tell you. Your clothes are now ours. Go home like you are and don't even stop to clean up." "You can't do this to me," she yelled. "i'll call the cops on you!." Hec said, "Go right ahead, slut. But who do you think you'll have to talk to. Captain Ron will just laugh at you. So get your horny little ass out of here. You'll hear from me soon." Crying, stephanie ran from the house to her car. How would she ever get into her house without Derek or anyone else seeing her like this? He would probably be waiting for her. How could she explain? What would he say? she could never have him again, especially once he saw the cum leaking from her cunt. He would know she was fucked. And what would he do when he saw her pierced pussy lips. she cried even harder now. she drove home in silence, praying that he wouldn't be there.
SPREAD 'EM part 27 While stephanie was driving home, Hec was on the phone to Derek. They had met a couple weeks ago when Hec needed some things done to his computer. He didn't want just anyone seeing what he had on it, so another friend recommended Derek. Derek was one of those guys who would never turn anyone in for what he saw on their computers and when he saw what Hec had, he was very curious. Things like bondage, SM, sluts, and slaves. He had asked Hec about the pics. That's when Hec told him about sue and how he had won her for the weekend at an auction given by Captain Ron. Derek sounded interested and told Hec that he wished his girlfriend could be like that. After they had talked, Hec realized who his girlfriend was. He told Derek about his plans for the weekend. Of course, steph didn't know that Hec and Derek knew each other and had plotted her enslavement. Innocently, she was driving home, thinking for sure that Derek would leave her and she would end up like sue for the rest of her life. Nothing but a slut! Derek was waiting for her when she tried to sneak in without him seeing her, but it didn't work. He caught her just before she got to the bathroom and questioned her about being naked, having her cunt pierced and being fucked by others. stephanie just cried and begged him not to leave her. It wasn't her fault. she was raped. "Please, Derek, please believe me," she cried. "i didn't want this to happen!" Derek just laughed at her and said, "Oh, I know what happened and from now on steph, you are a slut. My slut!" stephanie just stared at him. she didn't know what to say or do. Tears ran down her cheeks, and unfortunately, juice was running out of her well-fucked cunt. Then Derek said, "OK, now get in the shower, wash up and get into bed with me. I am going to fuck my new little slut and tomorrow you'll be used even more." The next morning, Hec and Victor went to the little room where they had left sue in her cage. They turned the bright light on and she had a hard time adjusting to it. While she was trying to adjust, they unlocked the cage and pulled her out. Giving her a few minutes to stretch before leading her to the bathroom, they instructed her to get cleaned up and shave her cunt. It had to be very smooth for later today. As soon as she finished, they reconnected her leash, slipping it through her collar ring, down through her nipple ring and attaching it to her cunt rings. Then she was led to the kitchen for breakfast. sue ate her cereal and juice from two bowls placed on the floor. The men ignored their little slut as she quietly lapped her food down to the last morsel. As soon as she was finished, it was time to leave, so she was led through the house and outside to Hec's truck. There was no cage this time and she hoped she would get to sit up front with the men. At least if she was in the cab, she would be partially hidden. But, that was not to be, as they pushed her onto the bed of the truck. They forced her to lay on her back and then the two guys each took an ankle and spread her legs apart, tying them to the hooks on the sides. They did the same to her arms. sue was spread eagled in the back of a pick-up truck, laying on the cold metal, her cunt wide open and she couldn't move. They closed the tailgate since it was broad daylight and climbed into the cab and started the truck. They backed up and pulled out of the long drive onto the highway. sue was cold with the air flowing over her naked body, but her cunt was dripping with her hot juices. she just couldn't understand it all. she was tortured, exposed and made to have sex with everyone, which was all wrong, but her cunt was always wet. she felt the truck going along the highway, not knowing where she was or where she was going. The only thing she ever saw were the truckers going by and all of them blew their big air horns when they saw the naked girl strapped into the back of the pick-up. she even looked some of them right in the eye as they slowed down to get a better view. And each time she was seen, her cunt got hotter and wetter. They drove for awhile, then suddenly sue felt the truck slow down and turn. They drove for just a short time before the truck stopped and both men got out. Victor came around to check the ropes on sue while Hec went to the house they had stopped at. Victor was laughing at sue as she was shivering and when he put his hand on her pussy he noticed how wet she was. He said, "No matter what we do to you slut, you are always wet. you must love it. A true little whore you are." sue just looked up at him with a blank stare, but didn't respond. she was cold and didn't want any part of this. After all, she was a police sergeant and should never be treated this way. she just wished she had never agreed to the terms her Captain had made. Why didn't she just go back to China? It wasn't long before Hec came out of the house, holding a leash which was attached to stephanie's cunt rings. she was ball gagged and handcuffed so she couldn't do anything but follow him. And once again, she was walking out of a house naked, but it was worse this time, since it was her house and her boyfriend Derek was standing in the doorway watching as someone else took her away. As they neared the truck, Hec said, "OK, we'll see you at the club later and bring some friends. This is going to be a great night for us." Derek laughed and said, "Oh, I'll be there all right and I'll see if David can come, too." David was someone he had met a while back when he had thought about buying a house for him and steph, and they had become friends. Every time David got a new property he would call Derek to come look at it. Then they would go have a few drinks and talk about the girls they liked. David didn't have a girlfriend, so he would be happy to come along for some pussy. Hec got steph to the truck and made her sit in the cab with him and Victor. They decided they needed something to play with while they finished the drive to the club. So steph sat between them, naked and unable to do anything to resist their advances. Once they got moving again, Victor made her spread her legs by pushing them apart and placing a leg over each of their laps. Then he began to play with her pussy. steph let out little muffled sounds around her gag, but no one knew what she was trying to say. And they ignored her anyway. Victor had his fingers in her pussy and said, "Damn, this whore is so fucking wet. I think she likes it!" Hec laughed and put his hand between her legs to feel. "Sure enough," he said, "the bitch is hot. But that's good for us, and between the two of them, we'll get our money back!" steph was thinking hard now. "My God, they are going to make me a whore and charge people to fuck me. That's not right. I'm not a whore for anyone!" They drove a little farther and soon they were pulling into a large parking area. There was also a large warehouse type building there, but nothing else. steph saw it all, but sue couldn't see anything but the sky. Stopping the truck, they pulled steph out and then went to the back of the truck to release sue. Once they had her untied, they pulled her from the truck and that's when she saw steph standing there naked, gagged and handcuffed with a leash attached to her cunt, just like her. "OH, my God steph, what have they done. How did you get into this?" questioned sue. sue was slapped hard across the face and told to shut up and steph couldn't answer her since she was gagged. Each of the men took a leash and tugged at them, making the two naked girls follow them. They led them into the building and then into the middle of a large room. They were pushed up on a stage and Hec ordered, "SIT!" Of course, sue knew exactly what to do, but steph had not been shown anything so far. she just stood there looking at the men and sue. Hec pushed her down onto her knees, facing sue, and told her how she should be. sue was already in the SIT position and holding her pussy lips apart by the rings. However, steph couldn't do that since she was still handcuffed. But they didn't want to release her wrists for fear she would run off, so they went to work on the next step before freeing her hands. Victor pulled two 3' chains from his pocket and attached one to each of steph's pussy rings. Then, he did the same to sue with the other ends of the chain. It was still slack in between them but wouldn't be for long. Hec removed their leashes and laid them beside each slut. He also removed steph's gag, but not before warning her to be silent. Then each of the guys got behind a girl and began pulling them backwards, which tightened the chain connecting their cunts. As they pulled the girls pussy lips began to stretch outward. Once the chain was nice and tight between them, the guys stopped. Then steph's hands were freed. sue was still trying to remain in the proper sit position since she didn't want any bad reports going back to Ron and Judy once the weekend was over, but it was hard for her to keep her pussy lips apart with the chain pulling on them. Hec said, "Now, both of you make sure you get those lips opened up and keep them that way, or you'll be in big trouble later." steph could see what sue was doing and reached down to grab the rings in her pussy. Both sluts leaned back on their heels and pulled their pussies open. When they did this, the chain hooking them together tightened even more and made their pussy lips stretch forward. Once they had them right where they wanted them, the guys both said, "you are to stay just like that and don't move for anything. We'll be back later." Both sue and steph nodded they would and the guys left. No one else was around for awhile and they began to ache from the position they were in. sue was afraid to move because if she did, she knew they would tell on her and she would have to go to work naked or worse. steph didn't move because she was in shock of what was happening to her. After awhile, they heard noises coming from outside, but didn't know what it was. Before they could do anything, the doors opened and a group of people walked in. They all came to the stage and looked at the two little asian girls sitting there and made comments about them. This really embarrassed them both, being exposed like this in front of people they didn't even know. But they still didn't move and heard people saying, "Yes, I think the one on the right would be a good fuck," and "That little cunt with the badge will be good to play with." "Is she really a cop?" The crowd of people got bigger and soon they were surrounded by people staring at them. Then Hec and Victor showed up. "OK," said Hec, "these two whores are available to everyone. But there is a price for them. I will need one hundred dollars from everyone who wants to use them." There was some small talk and soon wallets and purses were being opened. Hec collected the money and Victor wrote down the names of who paid. Once everyone had finished with the exchange, Hec began to undo the chains so they could get the sluts into position to suck and fuck. He took sue and Victor took steph and led them down off the stage. That's when the girls noticed two beds had been wheeled into the room. Each girl was positioned on a bed with their legs and arms wide apart and their heads propped up. They were ready now. Hec said, "OK, everyone line up. We have all night, so take your time." The other men and some ladies lined up to get to the girls. Each of them saw a man coming toward them. It seemed like everyone was naked now and as the men approached, both girls felt their pussies twitch with desire. Neither of them knew why it was happening to them, but both pussies were well lubricated with pussy juice. The first two men got on the bed and began to thrust their cocks into the cunts of the tied up girls. They fucked them hard and it wasn't long before the men began to cum, but so did the sluts. The first of many orgasms for the night had started and for some reason, both girls wanted more. One after the other, the men fucked them. They also ate pussies and sucked cocks. It seemed like they had been on their backs forever and were actually enjoying it. Their hot little cunts were sore from all the cocks in them, but they wanted more. They even begged for more. Hec and Victor sat off to the side to count up their money and found out that not only did they get all their money back, but had even made some extra in the deal. This was OK and if they could, they would get more from the people. All the guests were finally worn out and walked away to the side of the warehouse to get some refreshments, provided by Hec and Victor. They all sat back drinking and eating while the sluts just lay there, also worn out. Cum was all over them, dripping from their pussies and asses, running off their chins and from their mouths. They had pussy juice all over them and even had a mixture of it in their hair. The sluts could not hear the conversation among the paying customers, and it was just as well. Hec had invited one friend he knew from his army days, who had since opened a very successful piercing and tattoo parlor near the local state university. Hec had told Matt what he wanted, and that he would get all the pussy he desired free of charge as a result. Matt had enjoyed both girls, emptied his seed into each, had his cock licked clean, and was relaxing with a Bud Light when Hec spoke up. "I hope each of you have enjoyed yourselves and gotten your money's worth. Vic and I want to give the sluts something to remember this evening. Matt here runs the tattoo parlor over on University Drive, and has offered his services. Victor and I can't decide where to tattoo their bodies and what it should say or look like. Any ideas?" Several of the customers spoke up, and gave their ideas. "I think a tattoo above their tits would be perfect. SLUT or WHORE would look great!" "How about above their cunts, something like FUCK ME." "The trouble with those is that they cannot be seen unless the sluts are naked. I think it should be something that can be seen even when they are dressed, for maximum humiliation." "You mean, like on their eyelids, so when they blink they also flash the words SLUT or CUNT?" Matt finally joined in, "I don't think that is a good idea around the eyes. Too much danger of infection and swelling, and besides, you would have to put them asleep for that, and I know nothing about that." "OK, then how about something like that slut blond Pamela Anderson has around her upper arms, like linked barbed wire, weaving the words SLUT, CUNT, or WHORE. They can't hide that unless they wear a long sleeved blouse or sweater all year around." Hec had been listening to all the suggestions, but the last one gave him an idea. "I think you hit on something there, friend. I had been thinking some jewelry for each slut, that they could not remove, but would readily identify them, something like an anklet. But why not a tattooed anklet? Imagine the sluts in high heals, strutting around with a tattoo on their ankles announcing SLUT or CUNT or WHORE. Perfect, don't you think?" Everyone seemed to agree, or at least not dispute Hec's idea, so it was decided. Matt went out to the car to get his equipment, while everyone else finished up their drinks. A few moments later Matt returned with Derek and David, who had just arrived. Hec greeted the newcomers, and told them of their plans, and not to worry, they would still get their fill of pussy. Then they all walked over and gathered around sue and steph. The sluts had seen the group returning, and expected another round of fucking and sucking. Both were exhausted, but knew there was no choice. steph saw Derek among the crowd, and her stomach turned with embarrassment. she caught his eye, but he merely grinned in an unpleasant sort of way. "sluts," Hec began, "we wouldn't want you to forget this evening, so we thought we would give you a permanent way to remember it. My friend Matt is quite a talent with the tattoo needle, so enjoy." As soon as the girls heard this, sue began to cry, but steph arched her back and begged them not to. "Better shut them up, Victor," Hec suggested. Victor reinserted the ball gag in steph's mouth, and got a ring gag for sue. Neither slut put up much of a fight, knowing there was nothing they could do about it. With that done, Hec asked Derek and David if they would like to help. Derek was directed onto the bed to hold steph's leg still, while David did the same to sue. David couldn't resist, and ran his fingers along sue's pierced lips, tugging and twisting her rings. Immediately, sue's sensitive cunt began to respond. David noticed the reaction, and smiled at sue. Matt had plugged in the equipment and approached the beds. "That one first, Matt," directed Hec while nodding towards sue. "Let's put it on the right ankle, whatever design you think best, with SLUT 1 interwoven." sue shrieked in terror and pain, as the needle began to permanently mark her already well-marked body. The pain was awful, but the anguish of being tattooed against her will was even worse. David continued to tease her clit, and before Matt was halfway around the ankle, sue had an explosive orgasm. Matt had to stop, since not even David could hold her leg still during the height of the orgasm. Most of the crowd just laughed at the scene. When sue had calmed down, Matt continued and soon finished his handiwork. sue's right ankle now had a striking tattoo of interlocking chain links, and on the outside of the ankle, a bold SLUT 1. "Perfect," praised Hec. "Now this one," as he pointed at steph. Derek joined in, "Let's do the left ankle, and how about SLUT 2? Matt nodded, and went to work. Having seen the effect on sue, Derek began to tease steph's pussy and clit. she screamed into her gag, as the needle began to trace its way over her ankle. As Matt placed the T in slut, steph could contain herself no longer, and was horrified to explode into a dynamic orgasm, as everyone cheered her on. her nostrils flared and her lips curled around the gag. she arched her back, and Derek and Matt just stood to the side watching her reaction. "Hottest pair of sluts I've ever seen," commented Matt. "Even the whores of Bangkok are mild compared to these two." Many laughed at his comment. Matt finished his work, marking steph's ankle with a barbed-wire design and SLUT 2. As he stepped back, with a satisfied smile on his face, Hec announced, "OK, guys, they are all yours." David immediately stripped and entered sue. she gripped his cock tightly with her pussy muscles and moaned with pleasure. Derek decided to remove steph's gag first, but she immediately started pleading so he regagged her. Within moments, he was happily pumping away into his cunt. Once they were finished fucking the sluts, Hec announced that they would have a contest. "We are going to string these bitches up and see how long they can hold back an orgasm." sue and steph tried to cry out, telling them they had enough. But being gagged all that came out was, "NNNN,MMMMMM,PPPPP,HHHHH!" Everyone laughed as the girls were untied and brought to a frame that had been brought in. Hec and Victor tied their wrists and began to hoist them up. their arms were being stretch upward, pulling their bodies tight. Soon their feet were leaving the floor and they were hanging by their wrists about three feet above the floor. To make it worse, their legs were pulled apart and tied to the sides of the frame. In this position, they were pulled tight, with their weight on their wrists and their legs open so far that their hot little cunts were like open doors for all to use. "Now," said Hec, "here is how it works. Everyone will play with these cunts in anyway they desire. The first whore that cums gets punished and the other is set free." "Now, lets' begin." He reached up into steph's cunt and rubbed her pussy lips, while Victor did the same to sue. Both sluts tried to move away, but couldn't do anything. they both cried, trying to hold back and not cum. Everyone was taking turns with the sluts, rubbing their cunt lips, pinching their clits, fingering them and even sliding fingers into their assholes. The sluts cried and tried to beg, but couldn't do anything the way they were bound and gagged. This continued for quite sometime as the sluts did their best not to cum. It was so hard on them both since they were always hot and horny. But they did manage to hold off for awhile. But the final outcome was never in doubt. they couldn't control their desires any longer and suddenly, both girls shook and came together. It was amazing watching these two whores shake and squeal through their gags as they had one orgasm after another. There was no winner in this contest, so both sluts would be punished.
SPREAD 'EM part 28 As the sluts hung from their wrists, with their legs wide open, one of the men climbed up to remove their gags. They wanted to hear the sluts when punishment was delivered. Both sluts worked their jaws to loosen them up and then begged to be let down. They had had enough of this humiliation and just wanted to leave. But no one listened to them. The girls saw someone bringing in paddles and whips, which were laid them at the feet of the sluts. The girls both cried, knowing what was about to happen to them. They were going to get whipped and spanked for cumming. But why were these people doing this to them? They knew if you played with a cunt long enough it would cum. Hec announced that everyone would take a turn and each person had five strokes apiece to punish the sluts. He would go first and started on sue. "SSSSMMMMAAAACCCCCKKK" as the first blow with a paddle landed on sue's naked ass. "AAAAAAGGGGGGGHHHHHH, NNNNNNOOOOOOO!" she screamed, but it didn't do any good as Hec continued his assault on her naked ass. He landed all five blows of the paddle on her ass cheeks and then moved to stephanie. He did the same with her, using the paddle, swinging it hard. "SSSSSMMMMMMMMAAAAAACCCCKKKK" came the sound, along with NNNNNNOOOOOOO, SSSSSTTTTTOOOPPPPPPP, DDDDEEEERRREEKKK!" Finally Hec had delivered his five to each slut and put the paddle back. Next came Derek who started with stephanie, but picked the whip. He tested it in the air and made it SNAP right behind steph's naked ass. Both sluts jumped as best they could when they heard the noise, but nothing hit them. Then steph let out a blood curdling scream as the whip found its mark on her already sore ass. It sounded like a gunshot when it hit her. "CCCCRRRRAAACCCKKKK!" Her screams cut off the sound of the whip, "OOOOOOOOOWWWWWWWWWWWW, AAAAAAAGGGGGGGHHHHHHHH!" But Derek continued with the whip, placing the next three on her naked ass and then it stopped. He took careful aim and brought the fifth one right up between her legs, landing it on her wet pussy. her screams were defining to the ears. "AAAAAAAAGGGGGHHHHHHH,NNNNNNNOOOOOOOO,PPPPLLLLLLEEEEAAAASSEEEE!" she yelled. Derek just laughed and moved to sue who was crying from both ends. Tears running from her eyes and juice running from her hot cunt. she didn't know why, but this turned her on and she fought to keep from cumming again. The whip found it's mark on sue's bare ass and she also screamed when it kissed her. But she also came at the same time. she hoped no one noticed because if they did, they would probably continue with her punishment. Derek did the same to sue as he had to steph. Four on her naked ass and the last one between her legs on her swollen pussy. God how that hurt, but sue came once again. "AAAAAAAGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHH, YYYYYYEEEESSSSSSSSSSS! she yelled. stephanie heard what she had said and wondered how sue could cum when being hurt. she didn't understand, at least not yet. she hadn't been a slut for as long as sue, but would soon realize just how turned on she got from the pain. David went next, using the paddle for three hits on each slut and the whip on the last two. He hit their titties with the whip. They were getting red all over and had welts on places they never thought possible. After David finished, all the others took their turns with the paddle and whip and both girls were screaming in pain. steph was starting to realize that the pain gave her some pleasure and knew just how sue felt now. Finally the punishments stopped and the girls just hung from their sore wrists as they heard Derek, David, Hec and Victor talking. They were talking about what to do with sue, since they already knew what stephanie was going to get. Hec was saying, "I think her clit needs a nice ring in it so she can be led around by it." sue could tell that his words were getting slurred. He had been drinking all evening and was now quite drunk. He might do anything to her in this condition. Then David said, "Well, I was thinking of another area. You know that thin wall between her ass and cunt. I think that would look nice with a ring it, too." Derek stepped in and said, "But a nice nose ring would also be good. The kind you can put in and remove when you are done. Something like a metal sleeve that can be permanently installed, but you are able to remove the ring." sue could not believe her ears. she would soon be a freak, unable to ever see her parents and sister again. Unable to walk into the police station. Unable to do anything but satisfy the wishes of those that controlled her. Then Victor laughed and said, "Why don't we do all of it before we work on the other whore." They all liked this idea of Victor's and called Matt over to see if he could do it all. He listened to what they wanted and said, "I can do everything but the thing in her nose. But if you want to do it later, I know a guy who can do it for you." Hec and David looked at each other with big smiles. Hec said, "Is it OK if we do her clit first and then do the other part. Maybe we can connect the two together when it's all done." "Great idea, Hec, let's get started so we can enjoy watching this other slut get marked for ownership," replied David. "she is all yours now, Matt!" Matt got out his tool and the next thing sue felt was a clamp on her clit. He had put it right at the end and then added some weights to it so her clit was pulled out and down. sue cried out in pain as the clamp was put on and she felt her little clit extend even more. it had never been abused like this before and it hurt. But even though it hurt her, sue's pussy was dripping. she still couldn't understand what was happening to her. The more they did, the hotter and wetter she got. They left her alone while Matt got the rest of the tools ready and sue started thinking back to what had happened to her so far. First, the captain had made her his slut by somehow obtaining pictures of her and threatening to send her back to China. Then he had her pussy lips pierced so he could lock them up and she couldn't fuck anyone. Then she had to give her house up to Judy and learn to eat another woman's cunt. She had her ear pierced and a padlock installed to show she was a captive. A collar around her neck and led by a leash. she had been forced to be out in public naked and had to fuck all the prisoners. she even had to suck the mayor's cock. Then sold as a piece of meea at an auction, had her badge put into one tit with a ring in the other. her tits and nipples were enlarged and now, they planned on putting a ring in her clit and the thin membrane between her ass and cunt. But all of this thinking made her so hot, she had an orgasm without even being touched. What a slut she was and now knew that she would always be a slut, even after the six months when the contract stated. Suddenly she was jolted out of her thoughts by someone pulling down on the weights attached to her extended clit. And then the pain hit her as Matt shoved a needle right through her clit. "AAAAAAAGGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHH,OOOOOOOHHHHHHHHH,NNNNNNNOOOOOOOO!" she screamed as the needle was pushed from one side of her clit to the other. Matt said, "We'll let the needle hang there for a little while, while we do the other area." He moved in between her legs and found the spot he was looking for. With her spread apart like this, it wasn't difficult. He pushed his thumb into her cunt and a finger into her ass. Then, he pinched them together, feeling for the right spot to puncture. He felt around until he found the thin wall with nothing else blocking his fingers. Then, with his fingers still inside, he pushed a small piercing tool inside her pussy. Next, he put another tool into her ass and positioned it so when he squeezed them together, a hole would be made. His tools would also push a stud with a ring attached right through the hole. sue tried to squirm, but couldn't do much the way she was hanging. All she could do was try to get away, but that was impossible. Once the tools were in place, Matt squeezed and then twisted it and she had a hole between her cunt and ass. When he moved it again, the stud and ring were in place. He fixed it so the latch was inside her and he sealed it shut. sue now had a ring hanging between her cunt lips and asshole. she didn't feel too much pain this time and couldn't figure out why. she thought there was no feeling in that area, but Matt had put a numbing agent on his fingers to dull the pain. Once it was in place, he went back to her clit. He moved the needle slowly through her extended clit and as soon as the end was almost out, he took another studded ring and pushed it through. He then pulled the needle all the way out and clamped the stud together, knowing that she could never remove it without it being cut off. Standing back to admire Matt's work, David said, "Can I hook the chain on her now?" Matt said, "Sure, go ahead!" David took a small chain and hooked one end to her ring between the cunt and ass and brought it up between her lips to the clit ring. Making sure it was tight enough to pull her clit out, he fastened it all together. sue felt her lips being separated and then closed over the chain. "How would she ever get fucked with that chain running up her pussy," she thought. she didn't mind it being there since it made her hot when it pulled her clit, but all she could think about was how she could get a cock into her cunt like this. What a slut she was. Finally the guys left her all alone, hanging by her wrists. her arms were ached from the pain,. but her cunt was so wet and juicy, she just wanted to cum again. Maybe they would take her down soon and fuck her. They all moved over to where stephanie was hanging. she was about to pass out from the pain in her arms, but they would not allow that. If she did, she would wake up quickly when she got her mark of ownership. Derek said, "I think it is hot enough now, so we need to get her ready. How about all of you playing with her cunt while I get the branding iron." stephanie heard what he said and immediately began to beg him. "Please, Derek, please don't do this. i love you and will do anything for you. But please don't brand me." All Derek and the others did was laugh and went to work on her fully exposed cunt. They all started rubbing her pussy, ass and legs while Derek walked to the stove. He returned and said, "It's not quite hot enough yet, so I think if Matt doesn't mind, we should pierce her tongue. That way we can hook the two sluts together, mouth to cunt and cunt to mouth." Everyone loved that idea and Matt said, "It would be a pleasure to do that. After all, how many did she pierce in her profession. Kind of a pay back wouldn't you say?" He got up on a ladder and forced her mouth open. He grabbed her tongue with a pair of vice grip pliers and pulled it out. He didn't take long and soon she had a ring in her tongue about half way back. stephanie tried to scream, but for some reason she had lost her voice. Probably from screaming so much from her punishment and begging. Everyone laughed when she tried to get away and scream. They all knew that eventually stephanie would be a slut for everyone's use. Derek had left again to go back to the stove and when he checked it this time, it was white hot and ready. He came back to steph without it and said, "steph, you know I love you, but you are now a slut. you have been used by others, which means you are no longer a one man's woman. So I am going to make you mine forever, by giving you a permanent mark to show everyone you belong to me. I am only doing this because I love you!" With that said, he walked back to the stove and picked up the branding iron. It glowed so hot and when he walked back to where the sluts were hanging, he showed it to stephanie. she could make out the letters on it. "DC" she knew what it meant, because she had seen sue's brand. "RS" stood for Ron's slut. And she knew that "DC" was for Derek's Cunt. He rubbed her inner thigh on her left leg, making sure it was ready. stephanie stiffened as he touched her. she was thinking, how could he do such a thing to me. He loves me, yet he wants to brand me and make me into a true slut just like sue. she tried to beg, tears running from her eyes and sobbing noises escaping from her lips. she knew she couldn't get out of it, but wished she could reverse everything, including helping mark sue the way she had. steph now had her cunt lips pierced, her tongue pierced and she was about to get branded by the one she loved. Derek stood back and positioned the white hot branding iron close to her leg. she felt the heat from it and did her best to move away. But, the way she was tied, suspended by her wrists, it was impossible to avoid the approaching iron. The iron was coming closer to her thigh. It was getting hotter and hotter. The closer Derek got, the hotter her skin felt. Then suddenly she felt the searing pain as he placed the white hot branding iron, with his initials on her bare thigh, claiming her as his. All that could be heard throughout the warehouse was the sizzling of flesh as the brand was pushed deeply into her leg. And the nearly silent scream from the defeated stephanie as he touched her with it. "EEEEEEEEIIIIIIIIIIEEEEEEEE,AAAAAAAAAAAAAGGGGGGGHHHHHHHH,EEEEEEE,OOOOOOOOHHHHHHH H!" she wailed but he continued holding it against her leg. Pushing it into her, he knew he had to hold it there for several seconds in order to get it correct and to make sure it was a permanent mark on her, claiming her as his one and only cunt. stephanie passed out before he pulled it back, admiring his mark on her. she was now his slut, bought, paid for and marked. He was pleased with himself for this and she would now do whatever he desired, forever. But as he was admiring his handiwork, he also thought that it was time to get sue away from Hec forever. He knew that when Hec drank too much he was irrational and he didn't want sue to take his undisciplined punishments any longer. He would talk with Ron and Judy once they returned and mention his fears that someday Hec would just go too far with her and they should end that relationship. He also wanted his friend David to get some of this little slut and would try to make arrangements for Ron and Judy to let David have her at times. Derek waited for steph to regain consciousness. He approached the defeated slut, with his hands behind his back. "you are mine, my little cunt, to serve me and to satisfy my desires. you have been marked with both tattoo and brand, and your tongue and pussy lips display symbols of your slavery. But there is one thing missing, something which will remind you of your position at all time." stephanie tried to focus on his words, but the shock of the last few days made concentration difficult. But she knew exactly what Derek was talking about, when he produced from behind his back a silver choker, a collar for his pet. He held it open, the locking clasp clearly visible. "Notice, my little slut, the ring at the front, which has so many purposes, and engraved in the front for all to see, the S. Others may just think it is your initial, but you and I know it means SLUT." As stephanie hung from her wrists, legs spread wide, unable to offer any resistance, Derek placed the collar around her neck, saying, "Look into my eyes, slut." And when she did, he shut the locking clasp with an audible and permanent click.
SPREAD 'EM part 29 Hec had been drinking all night and by the time Derek finished branding stephanie, Hec had passed out in the corner of the room. Victor asked Derek and David if they could take sue with them and return her to Ron and Judy the next day. He was also afraid that Hec would hurt her if she was left with him. Of course Derek and David both agreed and began to get the two sluts down from where they had been hanging for such a long time. While they were taking them down Derek said, "steph, once you are down, don't touch that brand. If you do, it might get infected and it would be hard to explain to a doctor." she agreed not to touch it. she was just happy to be lowered to the floor so she could stretch her sore arms and legs. sue wanted the same thing, just to be able to move and get rid of the pain from being hung by her wrists for so long. Once they were released, each of them twisted and turned, trying to get the kinks from their arms and legs. They were in pain, but knew they couldn't complain for fear of something worse happening, even though they didn't know what could be worse. They all watched as Victor more or less dragged Hec from the warehouse. He couldn't even stand up on his own and Victor had to hold him up. The two girls were very happy to be away from him and now would do anything Derek and David wanted them to do. They even smiled weakly to each other as they saw Victor haul Hec out the door. Once the sluts got limbered up, Derek said, "OK, time to leave, sluts!" They tried to get up to walk, but were still weak, so David said, "Why don't we just have them crawl out of here. Then we can take them to steph's place and have a little more fun." Derek thought for a moment and then said, "Yes, they can crawl out, but we don't want them hurting their knees and one of us has to carry all the toys out." The two guys went in search of something for the sluts' knees and found out that during the week the warehouse was used as a gym. They found kneepads for both sluts and some boxing gloves for their hands. It was perfect and while they were searching, they also decided how to get both sluts and the toys out with ease. The two guys returned to the sluts and put the kneepads and gloves on them and got them on their hands and knees. The sluts could crawl like this with no problem, but the guys weren't finished yet. Derek pushed steph up behind sue, making her face quite close to sue's ass. Then he pulled out a chain and attached one end to the stud in her tongue. Then he ran the other end through sue's ring in the membrane between her cunt and ass, pulling it through and attached it to her clit ring. Now they were joined together mouth-to-cunt. And to make it more interesting, Derek stuck the butt plug with the tail in steph's ass. Now they had a two-headed puppy. In the meantime, David got the leash out and hooked it to sue's nipple ring and pulled it through her collar. Once both had finished, David tugged on the leash, pulling sue forward. her tit pulled up and she started to crawl, but steph didn't move at first. her tongue was being pulled out of her mouth and she was still motionless. However, as it pulled her tongue, it also pulled on sue's two rings, making her clit slide out more from under the hood. sue let out a small yelp and steph realized what she was supposed to do. So off they went, David leading the two sluts while Derek carried all the toys and equipment. He laughed at the sight of the two sluts being led by one person. Every time sue moved forward, steph did her best to keep up, but it was so hard for her since she was still weak. They led the sluts out of the warehouse and through the parking lot. Once they got to the car, Derek opened both back doors and got on the opposite side of where the sluts were. Then he reached over and got the leash from David and pulled. sue had a hard time getting in, but to help her a little, David took the whip and slapped her naked ass a few times. she moved more quickly, but was slowed down when she finally had all of her body in the car. steph was having difficulty getting up into the car and because of that the chain pulled her tongue farther out of her mouth and sue's clit was getting stretched to the limit. David assisted her as well and used the whip on her naked ass. Soon both sluts were kneeling on the back seat and the doors were closed. sue had her face pressed against the window on one side while steph had her ass tight against the other window. The guys got in and drove to steph's house. It was even more fun getting them out of the car since the guys made them reverse the way they went in. Once they had the sluts out of the car, they led them up to the house and inside. The guys were kind of tired from all the action and figured the two sluts were also tired. They decided to put them to bed so they could get some sleep, too. They had to take sue back in the evening, but wanted to play some more during the day. They would sleep for a few hours and then go shopping. The sluts were led into the bedroom and made to get up on the bed. This was a difficult task since they were still hooked together. But, they managed to get on the bed. Then, to their surprise, they were repositioned into a 69 position. The guys then hooked sue to steph's cunt in the same manner as she was hooked to sue. Of course, since steph's clit wasn't pierced, sue had to be hooked to just her pussy lips. It was quite a sight seeing the two girls mouth to cunt and cunt to mouth at both ends. The guys both laughed and Derek said, "OK, it's time to sleep. Don't go anyplace and we'll see you in a few hours." The girls knew better than to complain. The lights were turned off and the door closed. The two guys went to bed also, with Derek sleeping in the spare room and David crawled up on the couch. Both Derek and David fell asleep quickly, but the two sluts had a hard time getting comfortable. And when one moved, the other also had to move and the heat in each other's pussy was immense. They both licked the others cunt, getting each other off one more time and then they drifted off to sleep sucking the other's cunt. It didn't seem very long to the two girls when they were shaken awake. Both the guys were standing beside the bed with big smiles on their faces. They were going to go out shopping with the girls and had made a plan to humiliate both of them some more. But first they had another plan that would horrify their sluts. Derek asked, "Do you sluts need to pee before we go out?" The girls both tried to say yes, but it was quite difficult with their tongues in the other's pussy and they couldn't shake their heads. But the guys knew what they were trying to say. David said, "That's good, because you won't have a chance later on. So you'll have to pee all you can right now." Laughing, Derek said, "I know you don't like this sluts, but it's what we want. So, before we unhook you, you must pee just like you are and please don't get the bed wet." The girls looked up with shock and anger at the two men standing next to them. They couldn't believe these two guys would ask them to do that, especially after what they went through last night. But the guys insisted and said if they didn't do it now, they would have to hold it until they were in public and then they would pee in front of a lot of people, showing just what kind of dirty whores they were. So the girls decided there really was no choice. sue had to swallow someone else's piss before, but steph, being new to this, had never done it. As a matter of fact, she had forced sue to drink her piss. "Payback was beginning to be hell,' she thought to herself. sue just wanted to be free for awhile, so she clamped her lips around steph's pussy and started sucking, trying to encourage steph to do the same and to let it go to get it over with. steph thought about what she had to do and finally clamped her lips over sue's hot pussy and sucked just like sue was doing. Suddenly, both of them started pissing into each other's mouth. sue took it down very well, but steph had trouble swallowing it all and some ran out of her mouth onto the bed. But she did manage to get most of it down her throat and controlled the gagging reflex. The two guys watched them as they pissed and were pleased with the thought that both sluts did whatever they were told to do. Once the girls finished, they were unhooked and told to get into the shower, but not to turn the water on. They got up, worked out whatever kinks they could and headed towards the bathroom and into the shower. Both David and Derek followed them and once the sluts were both in the tub, Derek reached in and turned the water on. Both girls screamed since all he turned on was the cold water. sue and steph tried to get away from the cold spray, but were warned about trying to avoid their torment.. If they moved out of the water, they would go shopping naked. So, they stood under the cold water waiting for more instructions. David said, "OK, now wash each other using just your tits. You may soap up your own tits, but wash your sister slut with what you have on your tits." The girls both grabbed the soap and lathered up their tits and then tried to wash each other at the same time. The guys laughed at the sight, knowing it wouldn't work that way. Finally steph said, "sue, you wash me first then i'll wash you." sue had her little, but enlarged titties all soaped up and began to rub herself all over steph's body, trying to get all of her cleaned. she was having a hard time getting down to her lower half, but did mange it and when she thought steph was clean, she stepped back while she watched steph rinse off. Then, it was steph's turn to wash sue and she soaped up her tiny tits. Derek took note that she really did have tiny titties and soon, she would have to get them enlarged some, just like sue did. The guys watched all of it and taped the whole shower scene on steph's video camera. They would use this later to get both sluts to do more as long as Ron and Judy allowed David to use sue from time to time. Once both girls had cleaned each other, they were not cold any more. Rubbing each other's bodies like that had them hot again and both wanted to cum. But it wasn't going to happen just yet. The guys told them to get out and dry each other off, then they would get dressed. "Oh, no," thought sue, "i don't have any clothes to wear. i was taken from my house naked and no clothes to put on. Wonder what they'll do now?" Well, sue was about to find out. David said, "steph, let's look into your closet to find out what you sluts can wear today to go shopping." steph led them all into her room and opened her closet door. David and Derek started going through her clothes while sue and stephanie stood back to watch. They discarded some clothes as they pulled them out. They just threw them on the floor. steph started to complain and pick them up, but Derek stopped her. He said, "Just stay right there, cunt. We are going to get rid of those clothes that you can no longer wear. We'll let you know what to keep." The sluts knew there was no choice, so they stood there naked, except for their collars, brands, tattoos and piercings. steph just watched as some of her nice, but not so revealing clothes landed on the floor. sue remembered back when Ron and Judy got rid of her nice clothes and she wondered if they were going to make steph burn hers, too. They finally got out two outfits, one for steph and another for sue. They told the sluts to get dressed, and to make it quick since they didn't have lots of time before sue had to be returned to her owners. The two girls got dressed and looked good enough to eat. sue fit into steph's clothes really well, since they were close to the same size, but neither one of them wanted to go out dressed like this. they weren't given a bra or panties, of course. they both had on a very short skirt and loose fitting see-through blouses, with deep necklines. their collars could not be missed. they wore high heals, which caused the already short skirts to ride high on their thighs. their ankle tattoos stood out boldly and the brands on their thighs were visible as they walked. They were ready now to go shopping with the guys, but had no idea where they were going. The guys told them to get out to the car and get into the back seat. Once in the car, Derek said, "OK, sluts, spread em!" sue immediately spread her legs wide apart. she had been trained well, but steph hesitated. David saw this and said, "you were told to spread em slut, now do it!" This scared steph, but she saw how sue was spread and did the same. Now both sluts were sitting with their legs open and cunts and thigh brands showing. The guys got into the car and drove off. They were going down the road with the sluts' pussies wide open and anyone who drove past could see them. Derek was driving and David was watching the sluts. He said, "OK, now play with each other's pussies while we drive. Both sluts automatically reached over and began to rub the other's pussy. After driving for awhile, Derek pulled into a mall parking lot. Neither one of the sluts had ever seen this mall before and didn't know where they were. But they were also aroused from playing with each other's pussies and were almost ready to cum when they stopped. Derek said, "OK, cunts, out of the car!" They got out and stood waiting for the guys to do something. they didn't have long to wait. The guys told them to walk to the entrance, but they had to keep their skirts up until they were told to put them down. steph cried and said, " i can't do that. Someone will see us and we could be in trouble." "Too bad, slut," said Derek, "you'll do it or i'll strip you naked and hook you out here by your pussy rings until we finish shopping." This scared steph and sue so they pulled their tiny skirts up and started walking with both guys following them. The girls still didn't know where they were. As they walked through the parking lot, almost naked, sue whispered to steph, "you need to wiggle your ass more, so the guys get a good show. Captain Ron told me how to do it and it does make the men horny." So, steph started wiggling her ass just like sue. They looked like a couple of hookers walking together. Maybe the guys would let them lower their skirts more quickly if they put on a good show. But it wasn't going to happen until they got to the entrance. Just as they got near the entrance, the order came. "OK, drop them!" The sluts wasted no time in doing that. Derek said, "Follow us, sluts, and you better do everything we say or you'll be naked before we leave." Both sluts answered, "Yes, Sir!" not wanting to disappoint either one of these guys. They were going to do whatever it took to keep their clothes on. They walked through the mall and the first place they stopped at was a Victoria's Secrets.
SPREAD 'EM part 30 They walked into Victoria's Secrets and the guys told them to be quiet and they had better do everything they were told. If they didn't, they would get punished right there. The sluts knew they meant it and agreed to obey. David and Derek went around finding revealing nighties for the girls to try on and when they had found three for each slut, they directed them to the dressing rooms. Derek said, "OK, now you each take a dressing room and strip. When you are naked, we'll hand you an outfit to put on and model for us." The girls thought this was ok, since they were behind curtains and to model the nighties, they could just open the curtains without being visible to the other shoppers. Nothing too bad about that. So they went into the little rooms and removed what little clothes they had on and said they were ready. David opened the curtain to sue and said, "Now, give me your clothes and put this on." He took the clothes and left, leaving the curtain open. sue quickly closed it, only to have it opened back up. "Leave it open, slut!" ordered David. In the meantime, Derek did the same with steph. Now the girls hurried to get the skimpy outfits on, just so they were not totally naked and exposed. The guys watched as the sluts got dressed and then when they had the nighties on, they were ready to play. The sluts stood toward the back of the dressing rooms thinking no one else would be able to see them, but David and Derek had other plans. Derek said, "steph, step out here so I can see. It's way too dark inside that little room." And David added, "And you too, sue. Let's see what a slut you are." The girls just stood there for a moment, but did walk out to the edge of the dressing room in the sheer, short nighties. They didn't want to go any further than that because if they did, everyone in the place would see them. Their rings, brands, collars and sue's badge were out on display so anyone looking could see them. But as they stopped in the doorway, David said, "No sluts, out here!" Both girls stepped out a little more and Derek motioned for steph to come to him. He was away from the door in the aisle and she saw some other people close by. "Please no, Derek, i'm almost naked," she begged. "OUT here, cunt, or I'll spank your hot little ass right here!" he ordered. This shocked her and she knew she had to do it and looked at sue. she was also frightened, but together they walked out a little more. That's when they noticed the two sales girls looking at them. Both had big smiles and watched as the sluts had to walk out and turn around for the men. They had to show off for a few minutes and then were told to get back inside and put the next outfit on. sue and steph hurried back into the dressing rooms and began to get out of one outfit and pull the other on. That's when they noticed that none of the outfits came with panties. The next outfits were even smaller and hid almost nothing. They were completely sheer and if you didn't know better, the sluts looked totally naked. They were once again made to come out of the dressing room and model the little nighties for the boys and the growing crowd. But this time one of the sales girls said, "They would look a lot better with the right kind of jewelry. We have some in the next aisle." "Well, that's a good idea," said Derek, "go with her, sluts, and see what they have." As the sales girl passed David and Derek, they called her aside and whispered something to her, as she smiled widely. The sluts knew they were parading around almost naked and that more people would see them, but knowing what would happen if they didn't, the two sluts went with the girl to the jewelry aisle. The sales girl picked several earrrings from the rack and then told the nearly naked sluts to follow her. they soon realized that they were being led to a corner of the store where piercing took place. they were told to sit in the two available chairs, as the sales girl got out her tools. Without any discussion, she pierced sue's other ear, and inserted a large 2-inch diameter silver loop earring in it. And for steph, she did both ears, one with a heart, and the other with a hoop, with a dangling "c". Had it been an "s", stephanie could have claimed that it was her initial. they didn't say a word during the entire process, knowing it would make no difference. they followed the sales girl back to their waiting masters. "Now that looks good," said David, examining the new ring in sue's ear. Derek agreed as he tugged on the "c" and kissed steph's heart earring as he whispered "cunt" David continued, "One more outfit and we'll be done. But we don't have much time since we need to get some other things done before we take sue back." "You're right, David," said Derek. "Just take those off right here and put this last one on." "BBBBUUUUUTTTTT!" both girls stuttered. "NOW! DO IT SLUTS!" yelled Derek. This was something the girls didn't like. Derek yelling at them, which meant punishment later. So they reluctantly pulled the clothes off and put on the next ones. These were even smaller than the others, but by now sue and steph really didn't pay much attention since there was a large crowd of people watching them. sue didn't notice Judy and her sister Lynn watching from the back of the crowd. If she had, she probably would have shrieked in embarrassment and shock. sue's only hope was that none of her family would ever find out what a slut she had become. But Judy made sure Lynn saw everything. Finally, after showing off in all three outfits, the two sluts were allowed to get dressed again in the clothes they wore in, and then had to pay for the purchases made by the two men. They took the sluts out into the mall and headed towards a hair salon. The girls didn't know where they were going as they walked in front of the men with their cute little asses wiggling like whores. Once they were opposite the entrance to the hair salon, the order came. "Stop, sluts!" They stopped and waited, wondering what was next. they were happy to be away from Hec, but weren't really sure they wanted to be here either. They had been through so much over the weekend and just wanted it to end. The guys caught up with them, led them into the salon, made them sit in the waiting room and whispered to them to "Stay sitting and spread 'em" sue and steph promptly spread their legs, trying to hide their pussies from view. But David noticed what they were doing with their hands and made them put them on the arms of the chair and spread a little more. Now their hot dripping cunts were plainly visible. David and Derek talked to a couple of hairdressers and kept pointing toward the two sluts sitting with their pussies out for everyone to see. They had no idea what was being said, but from the looks on the hairdressers' faces, it wasn't going to be good. After a short time, the guys came back and told the sluts to follow them. They were taken to a back room and made to strip. Once they were naked, they were placed in chairs beside each other. Then the hairdressers came in and Derek said, "OK, they are all yours. We'll be back in awhile to pick them up. And remember, they will do as you order." David added, "And if they don't do as you want, they will be punished for it. So make sure you obey, sluts!" The guys walked out, leaving sue and stephanie in the hands of the two hairdressers. The first thing they were told to do was lean back so they could get their hair washed. They both thought this was great, since neither of them had ever had a professional wash their hair before, so they just leaned back and felt the chairs being tilted so their heads were over a sink. The girls' hair was washed and made shiny with the expert touches of the two hairdressers. However, they were a little embarrassed when they were touched all over by the two girls doing their hair. They asked sue and stephanie all kinds of questions about the rings, collars, brands and of course the badge. The girls answered truthfully and said they were sluts, hoping it would help them out later. All the time the hairdressers were working on their hair, the sluts had no idea what was going on, since there were no mirrors for them to watch. Once their hair had been washed, they felt it being brushed and smoothed out. It felt so good to them, they didn't even realize that their hair was once again wet and being massaged. Both of them almost fell asleep, but the hairdressers kept working and talking to them. More questions about what it was like being sluts and why they were doing it. Of course, the girls didn't want to tell the truth on this part because no one should know they were actually being blackmailed, so they just said it was so much fun having to do what others wanted and they really enjoyed it. The hairdressers continued working and finally they were finished. That's when the sluts realized what had happened to them. The chairs were tilted back up and a big mirror was right in front of them. Both steph and sue gasped when they saw their hair. It wasn't the pretty black hair they once had! It was now a bleached blonde color and had been put into pigtails, making them both look like little blonde-haired teenagers. "Oh, my God," moaned steph. "What the fuck have you done!" "Nnnnooooooo!" screamed sue, "my hair!" The hairdressers just laughed and said "That's what those guys wanted, but we aren't finished yet." Both girls started crying, looking into the mirror to see two young girls looking like naked whores. One of the hairdressers said, "Now for the fun. We are going to sit down in the chairs and you two cunts are going to eat us. Now let's get busy!" They pulled steph and sue out of the chairs and took their place in the chairs, spreading their legs wide. sue and steph were now staring at two cunts that were so hairy, they could almost not see the slits. "Get busy, whores!" shouted the two hairdressers, "or we'll tell your friends you wouldn't do it and then you'll leave here naked. They told us if you didn't do what we wanted we could keep your clothes." Scared of that happening, the two girls got down between the hairdressers' legs and got up close to the hairy pussies they had to eat. And, as soon as they got close enough to lick them the smell made them almost sick. Both sue and steph knew this was going to be bad because they didn't think these two women ever washed down there. But in order to get out with clothes, they both started licking the nasty cunts before them. They gagged and licked until they got both the women off. They were so sick to their stomachs, they almost lost it, but managed to hold it in. Then as soon as the hairdressers had cum, they pulled back and looked up. There was Derek and David, grinning from ear to ear. David said, "That was good, sluts. Now let's move on. Get your clothes." sue and steph hurried up and got their clothes back on and took care of the bill for the services of the hairdresser. It wasn't right they had to pay to get something done they didn't want. And there was even an extra charge for the cunt licking they had to do. But they were out of there, looking like young whores and had no idea what was next. They walked in front of the guys again, shaking their asses like sluts and wondering what was going to happen. They had walked halfway around the mall today and suddenly heard the orders, "Stop, sluts!" They stopped right in front of a uniform shop. This shop catered to the young teens in the area who went to private schools and had to wear a certain type of uniform. The guys took them inside and told the clerk that they had to have the uniform of the public school. And when they were measured for them, they needed to be one size smaller than what they would normally wear. Of course, the sales clerk looked puzzled and tried to say they couldn't do that here, but was silenced when he was told there would be a good reward for him if he complied. The girls were taken to a backroom, with David and Derek following. The sales clerk said he had to measure everything, so Derek said, "Strip, sluts!" steph was crying now! she thought Derek really loved her and now she knew that he would do anything he wanted with her. she felt she was really being used and didn't like it, but he had proof of what she had become. And it even showed she was his cunt with the brand on her thigh. The sluts stripped naked and the sales clerk went to work, making sure he got his fingers in every area he wouldn't normally touch on young girls. He felt their tits, asses and cunts and they didn't move away from him, since it was making them hot. their cunts were flowing like rivers now and both of them needed to cum so bad. Once he had measured them, he got the clothes out that he thought would fit. Of course, he did go one size smaller and when the girls put them on, they couldn't believe it. The skirts were just about one inch from their pussies and the tops were thin and showed their nipples right through them because they were so tight. They couldn't possibly go out in public like this, but both girls knew the guys would make them. Once they were dressed in the new clothes, Derek said, "OK, now for the reward." David said, "Yea, I think we need one slut in front and one in back. Steph, you get his cock, sue his ass." They pushed the girls to their knees and told the clerk to drop his pants and stand between the sluts. Once he was ready, Derek said, "Now sluts, begin. sue lick his ass and steph suck his cock." The girls were beyond arguing and began to take care of the clerk. sue didn't like licking his ass, but did it, while steph was enjoying his stiff dick. Together they made him cum and when he did, steph was told not to swallow. Instead, she had to give sue a "cum kiss" and share it with her. Then they were on the move again, out of the store and on the way to the car. As they were walking out of the mall, sue stopped suddenly and gasped, holding her hands over her mouth. Here she was, looking like a cheap teenage whore, and standing in front of them was Judy with Lynn. "Oh, my God," she thought, not able to make any sense of what she was seeing. Lynn stood staring at her older sister, looking like a slut in front of everyone. Her mind was confused as she thought, "Why is sue doing this? Is she a whore? What have I gotten myself into?"
Part 31 Lynn was equally shocked. she had seen her older sister less than an hour ago, trying on revealing clothes. she remembered her sister with long black hair, but it had been cut much shorter. her ears were pierced, one with a large hoop earring and one that looked like a lock. she moved like a slut around the Victoria's Secret shop. But now her hair was blond and in pigtails. What was going on? Lynn knew that sue was a policeman. Was she working undercover? sue had seemed shocked to see Lynn, and even more shocked when she had seen Judy. Why did Judy make sure the two sisters had seen each other? Why was sue so shocked to see Judy? Was it possible both sisters were trapped? Lynn knew that sue had used her body to make money for their family years ago. Was sue still in the oldest of all professions, just to make more money? All these thoughts flashed through Lynn's mind in just a few seconds. Then she noticed Judy nod to one of the two men that were escorting her sister and another equally sexy-looking asian. The men said something to the two sexpots and they moved away. sue turned to look over her shoulder, making eye contact with Lynn, but almost immediately Judy ordered, "Let's go. Now." "But Mistress Judy, why..." Judy turned with an angry glare at Lynn. "Not another word. Just follow me back to the car." As they walked to the car, Lynn tried to make sense of things. Only a week ago, she had been a fun-loving freshman at college. With midterms behind and a week of spring break ahead, she had looked forward to a night of partying and music and dancing. She was still a virgin, which made her unique among the party crowd, but that was partly because she never drank enough to get drunk and made sure she never went too far. Maybe it was because she always thought of her parents, maybe just her strong sense of morality, maybe it was because years ago she had been shocked, and even disappointed to learn that her older sister had whored her body to help the family financially. Not that Lynn hadn't been tempted. With her cute and petite figure, cat-like eyes, beautiful smile, and long, slim legs, she had been propositioned more times than she could remember. But she had always said "No." At the party she was asked to dance often, but one guy was paying more attention to her than others. He had introduced himself as Nick. Between dances, Lynn had learned from one of the girls that he was the mayor's son, which made things even more interesting. He was cute, a senior, smooth, and made her feel important. So when after one dance he offered her a drink, which she knew was alcoholic, she didn't want to turn him away by declining the drink. Surely one drink would not make any difference. After finishing about half the drink, he offered to set it on a tray and asked her to dance again. They made their way to the side of the dance floor, and within moments she felt lightheaded. The room began to spin and she had to hold onto Nick more tightly. "Are you ok," he asked. Her speech was slurred, but she managed to say, "No." "Just hang onto me. We'll go get some fresh air," and he led her out of the hall, guiding her to the parking lot, and helping her into his car, she assumed. Lynn tried to protest, slurring, "My car. My head. Please." But Nick soothed her concerns and she lay her head against the neck rest as he went around to the driver's side, got in, and started up his car. He turned up the heat in the car, which made her even more sleepy, but he kept talking. She couldn't remember anything he had said. It seemed to be complimentary. About her body. He had reached over and slipped his hands under her dress, fingering her pussy. She tried to stop his advances, but there was no strength in her arms, and she was unable to form meaningful words. She knew something was wrong, but had no idea that Nick had slipped her a date-rape drug. After some time, she noticed the car pulling into the driveway of a strange house. The lights were all on, there was loud music playing and there were many cars out front. Nick helped her out of the car, and guided her towards the house. Upon entering, many people greeted him, and she thought she heard someone say, "So this is our entertainment tonight?" It made no sense to her. She was awake, but not in control. She had no strength to protest when she felt hands removing her dress, then her bra. "NO!" she tried to shake her head, but it made no difference. Next her shoes were removed, then her panties. She was led to the center of the room, made to kneel, and before she knew it, an engorged cock was probing her lips. "Open up, lynn. Be a good girl." Yes, she wanted to be a good girl, so she opened up and the cock slid into her mouth. No, her brain screamed, but she could not possibly resist. "Just suck like a straw. Smile. Have fun," a soothing voice directed her. FLASH. she noticed the flash of a camera. No, she thought again and again. she sucked several cocks, and felt the goo dribble from her lips. The soothing voice encouraged her to swallow, but none of her muscles were working effectively. Then she felt herself lifted from the floor and carried to another room. she was knelt on a bed or couch, and let her head hang limply. she felt something probe her ass, and she forced herself to turn her head to look. A beer bottle was being shoved into her ass, open end first. "Smile, lynn," she heard someone say, so she did. FLASH. Pain. she felt pain, but could do nothing about it. Then a man mounted the bed. she felt the bottle pulled from her ass, but quickly felt strong hands grab her waist and knew her ass was being used again. "Smile, lynn." And so she did. FLASH. The entire night had been one big blur. When she awoke the next morning, she was back in the dorm, in her familiar room, with an awful headache. "Ohhhh," she moaned as she raised her head, quickly noticing she was naked under the sheets. her memory began to function and she started to remember. her ass was sore; her mouth was sour; her heart was pounding. And two feet from her head, propped against the printer, was a picture of her smiling as someone shoved a beer bottle into her ass! she reached over and lifted the picture, and under it was another. And another. And another! The final picture showed lynn arching her back, in the throes of an orgasm, as a male body was pressed tightly against hers. But while her face was clearly enjoying the moment, his face had been cropped from the top of the picture. Why? What happened? Who? She looked across the room for her roommate, but the bed had not been slept in. How? What? But she sensed and knew that her pussy had not been abused! It made no sense. WHY!? she forced herself to take a shower, standing under the warm water for many minutes. Later she brushed her teeth several times, and before long was actually feeling human. But this had not been a bad dream. The damning pictures were real and she was horrified. It was nearly 11 a.m. when the phone rang. lynn had been brushing her hair at the time. she reached over to answer the phone, "Hello." "Hi." Nothing else, just Hi. A man's voice, vaguely familiar. "Who is this?" she returned. "How do you like the pictures?" "Who is this?" she nearly screamed into the phone. "Now, now. That is no way to talk to your friend." "My friend! Who are you!" "Don't you remember? Everyone else does. you were the life of the party. I've never seen anyone suck so many cocks and ass-fucked so many times, and seem to enjoy every moment." "But..." "Just checking you were awake. Don't go anywhere. Someone will come by about noon." With that, the phoneline was disconnected, and lynn was left holding a buzzing receiver. her heart was pounding with fear and embarrassment and anger and shock. she wanted to just walk out the door and go home to her parents, but she knew she had to wait until someone came at noon. It was several minutes after 12 when someone knocked on her door. Upon opening it, lynn saw an attractive policewoman, with a big smile. "Well, are you going to invite me in?" asked the policewoman. lynn stepped aside and the woman walked confidently into the dorm room. "Who are you?" lynn quietly asked. "A friend. Someone trying to protect you and your family from a lot of embarrassment." lynn could only stare, not knowing what to say or do. The woman sat in the desk chair and gestured for lynn to sit on the bed. "you had quite a night last night, didn't you, lynn?" "How do you know my name?" she almost wimpered. "Oh, I know a lot about you. How do you like the pictures?" she asked, pointing to the prints on the bed. lynn reached back to quickly gather up the awful shots of her, but the woman just laughed lightly. "Don't bother. I have seen those and many more. Tsk, tsk. your parents would die of shock if they saw them. Fortunately, I acquired the disc, so you don't need to worry." lynn relaxed slightly. Was this policewoman just going to warn her, give her the disc, and make her promise to be more careful in the future? "Please give me the disc. Please! i didn't know what i was doing. Someone put something in my drink, i'm sure," she begged. "Not quite so fast. There seem to be plenty of witnesses that say you enjoyed every minute, that you knew exactly what was happening, and in fact begged to be fucked and used even more. Those pictures of you smiling certainly do not look like a victim." "But..." "So, here is what we are going to do. That is, unless you want the prints to make their way to your parents." lynn's eyes were wide with fear, and she shook her head slightly, NO, not my parents. "Right. I knew you would not want your parents to see these pictures." "What do you want from me? i don't have any money. What do you want?" "you have a full week of vacation ahead, right? Well, just give us your time and energy for the rest of the week, and I'll give you the disc one week from today." "Who is us? And what do you mean 'time and energy'?" asked lynn. "More about that later. Do we have a deal?" lynn had planned to go home a few days, to rest after the hectic midterms. "But i told my parents i would be home most of the week," she cried. "Oh, I'm sure you can give them a call and convince them that something changed. Maybe an invitation from a girlfriend to visit her family, or an opportunity to do some extra research with a professor." lynn knew it would not be difficult to convince her parents. They trusted her. That was the problem. They trusted her. she couldn't do anything to break their hearts. "Ok," she said, and bowed her head submissively. Judy smiled to herself. It was so easy. So easy. "Good decision. Ok, it's almost 1," she said, as she reached for a bag that lynn had not noticed before. "I'll wait at the front door of the dorm. Change into these clothes, make a call to your parents explaining that you won't be home this week after all, and meet me at the front door in 10 minutes. And only these clothes. Nothing else, do you understand? Don't be late." lynn nodded her understanding, as Judy rose from the chair and headed for the door. "Oh, you may call me Mistress or Mistress Judy," she said as she opened the door and walked out. lynn sat for just a moment. It was all a blur. What was happening? her vacation had just been taken away. Was Mistress Judy a friend? Was she protecting her from those awful pictures? Shaking her head, she got off the bed and reached down for the gym bag. Opening it, she pulled the clothing from the bag and tossed it on the bed. her eyes widened as she noticed that there was very little. A cut-off t-shirt of the school, that would clearly reveal her bellybutton. Cut-off jeans, much shorter than she would normally wear. And a pair of high-heeled sandals. No bra. No panties. She changed quickly, left a note for her roommate that she would be gone until next week, and then made a quick call to her parents. her eyes teared as her mom readily accepted her lie. her heart was saddened by the thought of lying to her mom. One final look around the room, and she realized that she had done nothing about the awful pictures, so she grabbed them and tore them into hundreds of pieces, flushing them down the toilet. As lynn approached the door, Judy checked her watch. "Please be more prompt next time. you are two minutes late." Surely, thought lynn, Mistress Judy was teasing. What is two minutes? "You called your parents?" lynn nodded. Judy looked at lynn, staring at her chest. "Nice. Very nice." Then she looked into lynn's eyes, and back to her breast. She could see lynn's nipples rise through the t-shirt. If she hadn't put on a bra, she probably had not put on panties, but just to be sure... "No panties under the shorts, right?" lynn shook her head slightly. "No." "No, what?" "Pardon?" "You will answer me more politely in the future. 'No, Mistress' is the acceptable answer," Judy commanded and stood looking straight into lynn's almond eyes, waiting. "No, Mistress," responded lynn, as she dropped her gaze, embarrassed by everything that was happening. "Good, let's go." lynn followed Judy to a white Acura. Judy opened the passenger door for lynn and told her, "Sit with your legs spread widely. Do you understand?" "Yes." lynn was shocked by the fury. Up to that point, Judy had spoken softly, but assuredly. But suddenly a hand snaked out and grabbed a handful of lynn's hair, pulling it sharply downward. lynn let out a yelp, and reached up to challenge Judy's grip. Judy slapped away lynn's hands and with an evil snear twisted lynn's hair so that she was forced to look straight into Judy's eyes. "I do not like stupid cunts. So get this straight. you will address me at all times as Mistress or Mistress Judy. you will not answer my questions nor commands with simple one word answers. For the next week, I own you. If you don't like it, then tell me now. I am going out of my way to protect your foolish ass from your parents. You will follow all my orders and directions without fail, immediately. If not, then long before you can try to explain, your parents' hearts will be shattered by pictures of their youngest daughter doing things that only immoral whores do. Is that clear?" "Yessss, Mistress!" Just like sue, Judy half-smiled to herself. A slight stuttering when she knew she was trapped. Judy released lynn's hair, and half-pushed her into the car. She walked to the driver's side, got in, and glared at lynn's crotch. lynn picked up on the cue immediately and spread her legs. "Wider," commanded Judy, and lynn quickly obeyed, spreading her legs so that her right knee touched the door and her left knee stretched achingly towards Judy. With a slight nod and smile, Judy started the car. Her heart was leaping. It had worked! So simple. So easy to connect the mayor to his son to this young cunt. What fun it was going to be!
Part 32 By the time they reached the car, lynn was no closer to understanding what had just happened. Three minutes ago she had seen her sister, yet it was not the sister she knew. she had seen a slut that exuded sex in the way she looked and walked. she had seen a slut expose herself in public. But that slut was still her sister, and while they were not that close, she knew that at one point sue had sold her body so that the family could live more comfortably after moving to America. Judy unlocked the doors to the car and lynn knew exactly what to do. she sat in the passenger seat and immediately spread her legs. The hole that had been cut in the crotch of her shorts opened to expose her bald pussy. she immediately began to play with herself, knowing that her Mistress wanted her hot and panting, but would not allow her to cum. lynn teased her pussy lips, enjoying the sensations and wanting to please her Mistress. If she had learned anything in the last week, it was that she must please Mistress Judy, or suffer the consequences. As Judy pulled out of the mall parking lot, lynn moaned slightly with sensual pleasure and thought back one week earlier, when she sat in Judy's car for the first time, as it pulled out of the dorm parking area... ..."Mistress Judy?" "Yes, slut." "May i ask you a question?" "Go ahead, slut." "Where are we going and what do i have to do for you all week?" Judy was very knowledgeable about captive psychology. She knew about the Stockholm Syndrome, in which the victim would in time identify and agree with her captors. She knew that every captive had their weakness, and to avoid humiliation or pain or embarrassment or suffering, at some point the captive would break. Judy had not planned the whole week, so she honestly could not tell lynn what would happen, but the first steps were clear. Somehow, in these first crucial hours of captivity, Judy had to crush all hope and defiance. Step by step, she had to change lynn from a morally strong college freshman to an obedient slave, and she thought that one week was just about right. The first step was to make a physical change that was psychologically significant to lynn. Like her older sister, lynn's hair was a beautiful black. she clearly took great pride in her long, ebony mane that ran halfway down her back. That would have to go. And like her sister, lynn seemed to wear no jewelry, and had no piercings. That would have to change. What happened after that would depend on lynn's reactions to these modifications to her physical appearance. stephanie would have been an ideal choice to modify lynn's appearance, but that was not possible. Instead, Judy knew of a salon at the mall where two beauticians were known for their artistic and unusual style. "First, we are going to the mall for a beauty treatment. I'm sure after last night, you would enjoy being pampered a little, right?" "Yes, Mistress," lynn said without confidence. Fifteen minutes later they arrived at the mall on the far edge of town. "Walk in front of me, lynn, and swing your hips. I love the way your ass moves and your ass cheeks peek out from under the shorts." With the high-healed sandals, it was natural for lynn's ass to sway slightly as she walked. By swinging her arms a little more than usual, she could easily satisfy Judy's demands. There was little chance she would know anyone in this part of town, so lynn was fairly relaxed and confident that she could satisfy whatever demands Judy made of her while in this public location. If she had to do a little acting for the next week, so what? Anything to get back that disc! Judy guided lynn towards the beauty shop. She had already made the appointment and discussed what she wanted over the phone. "you will do exactly what you are told. These are talented beauticians and already have been informed about your beauty treatment. Just enjoy it, do you understand?" "Yes, Mistress." Upon entering, Judy asked for Ariel, with whom she had spoken over the phone. "Hi, you must be Officer Judy. I'm Emily. Ariel is in the back. this must be lynn," she said as she reached out to shake lynn's hand, but did not let go and continued to hold lynn's right hand as she addressed Judy. "We'll be done in about 90 minutes." Judy nodded, turned to leave, and Emily guided lynn towards one of the private rooms in the back. Judy had already told them she would drop lynn off and return later. Judy's cunt was dripping in the excitement of the past hour, and the surprise of seeing lynn later would surely be explosive! As they walked to the back, lynn was delighted that Judy would not be there. she needed time to think and the pleasant greeting she had received from Emily gave her the feeling that she was in friendly hands. When they entered the private room, Emily led lynn over to the large chair in front of the mirror, which was bordered by a dozen lights. There were cupboards and drawers of cosmetics and equipment. lynn was immediately impressed by the facility. Ariel was standing to the side, preparing something inside a drawer. While Emily had the look of an all-American girl, teased blonde hair, nice tan, looks that killed, Ariel was quite different. Her black hair was spiked, she wore a studded collar, tight blouse, no shoes, and a very short skirt. Her ears were pierced numerous times, and the dark eye shadow gave her a very exotic look. Ariel smiled as they entered the room, and greeted lynn with a friendly Hello. "Hope you will enjoy your treatment. you must be quite special. Why don't you take off your clothes and lay them on that counter," she said, gesturing with her left hand. lynn was immediately surprised. "Take off my clothes? Why?" "When you get a full body treatment, that really is the only way. Don't worry, no one will walk in and embarrass you," Emily replied, with a friendly, disarming smile. Well, if that is what was needed, lynn decided to obey. After all, she was proud of her body, and certainly had paraded around nude in the dorms when no boys were present. she slipped off the sandals, tugged on her shorts, freeing them from her hips, and stepped out of them. Then she pulled the t-shirt over her head and shook her hair back into its normal position. Having set her pile of clothes to the side, lynn sat in the chair and gave a sigh. Emily and Ariel had watched the entire disrobing, mentally licking their lips in anticipation. Judy has described what she expected to occur, and they were prepared. As soon as lynn sat down, Ariel placed her arms flat on the arms of the chair, and Emily squatted down to place lynn's feet on the metal platforms that were part of the chair. Ariel ran her hands through lynn's long black hair, feeling the soft electricity as she did so. lynn closed her eyes and began to relax, when she felt something she had not expected. Something tight closed over her ankles. Lifting her head with a "Wha" forming on her lips, lynn looked down to a smiling Emily. "Oh, don't worry. Just don't want you moving and hurting yourself when we shave you. Judy said you might be a little jumpy." As Emily spoke, she had already moved towards one of the arms of the chair, and a velcro strap was crossing over lynn's left arm, while Ariel had moved to the right and was doing in the same. In less time than lynn could react, both her legs and arms were fastened to the chair." "Wait!" lynn nearly shouted. "I don't..." she tried to move her limbs, and arch her body. Ariel hand reached out and firmly grasped lynn's cheeks, her thumb and forefinger digging into lynn's flesh. She was smiling, but it was not a friendly smile, as she responded. "Look, you can enjoy yourself, or we can play it tough. Or, if you want, I have Judy's cell phone, and I can call her. But if I do that, I promise you Judy will be furious. Is that what you want? Huh, is that what you want?" Ariel's dark eyes were only inches from lynn's face. lynn was almost too frightened to respond, but she managed a weak "No." "No, what?" Ariel continued. lynn didn't know what to say. Was she to address them as Mistress, also? So she just said, "No, Mistress, please don't call her. i won't object." "That's better," Ariel replied, relaxing and allowing the friendly smile to return to her face. lynn looked over at Emily, who had watched the entire confrontation without speaking, and Emily's expression was also relaxing. lynn was too scared to object, but could not keep the tears from flowing. The beauticians tilted the chair until lynn was nearly parallel to the floor. The mechanical legs of the chair separated, exposing her cunt. While Emily washed her hair, Ariel packed hot towels around her pussy. It burned her tender lips, and she started to protest, but Ariel was quicker. She slapped lynn sharply across the face, saying, "Not a word, little slut. We heard about your party last night, so this can't hurt any worse than beer bottles up your ass." Emily giggled at that comment, but lynn was shocked to hear Ariel talk like that. she thought Judy was the only one that knew, besides those at the party. In the next moment, lynn heard Emily cutting large hunks of hair. Once again, she reacted, lifting her head away from Emily's direction. Emily's free hand reached out and pushed against lynn's forehead. "Either keep still or I can strap your head to the chair. Judy says your hair is too long. Sluts have shorter "do's". And besides, what good are earrings in you can't see them," Emily tittered. "Earrings!" lynn shot back. "But..." "Hush, slut. All part of Judy's plan." While Emily continued to work on lynn's hair, Ariel had starting snipping away her soft pubic hair. lynn just sobbed quietly to herself, not knowing what to do to stop this horror. Soon Ariel walked over to the counter, and returned with a handful of warm foam, which she spread over lynn's mound. "Now, don't move, or you could lose something dear to you," Ariel smiled, as she took the sharpened razor and removed every visible hair. By then, Emily was blow drying and fluffing lynn's hair, but since her back was to the mirror, there was no way for lynn to see what had happened to her once beautiful mane. Both beauticians finished up at about the same time, Ariel wiping away the last of the foam with a warm towel, Emily working in some mousse. "That wasn't so bad now, was it?" Ariel gleamed, as she dried her hands on the same towel. Without waiting for an answer, she leaned over to get a closer look at lynn's pussy. "Let's see how it looks now." With her sharp fingernails, Ariel grasped lynn's pussy lips and spread them widely. And with her pinky nail, she entered lynn's cunt and worked her way towards lynn's clit, giving it a light brush with her nail. lynn was jolted to attention. "Please, don't..." "Whoa there, slut. Just checking my work. Emily, you should see this. The little slut's clitty is growing before my very eyes." lynn was horrified! Of course, like all girls, she had stimulated her own clit many times, and masturbated often, but never had anyone else done this to her. she could feel her clit engorging, rising from its hood. "Glad I have this towel here. Something is leaking out of her lips," Ariel giggled sarcastically. Emily laughed pleasantly and then said, "We better finish the treatment. Judy will be back in 30 minutes, and you know how she is when she has to wait." Ariel agreed, and both walked to the side of the chair, opening another cupboard. lynn watched with wide eyes, not having any idea what else would happen. "Please, let me go. Haven't you done enough already?" "Oh, no, little slut. Judy has paid for far more. Just relax," said Emily over her shoulder. When they turned around, lynn knew they each held piercing tools. she had been with friends who had had their ears pierced, so she knew exactly what the beauticians had in their hands. Emily made her way back to the top end of the chair. Momentarily, lynn felt some cold liquid dabbed on both ears, as Emily used cotton pads to sterilize the area with alcohol. But lynn could not help but moving her stomach, when she then felt the same cold applied to her bellybutton! "Oh, no, please no! Please. If you have to pierce my ears, ok, but not my navel. Please!" she cried. "Shhhh, shhhh, little cunt. Personally, I think you should have your tongue, nipples, pussy, eyebrows, lips, and clit pierced, but you are lucky. Judy just wants your ears and bellybutton. Relax. You will look so sexy. Every boy in town will want to fuck you. You will be the most desirable cunt in school," Ariel said matter-of-factly. lynn tried to twist her head, and made it impossible for Emily to work. "Ariel, will you please hold her head for me?" Ariel gave a huff, stood up over lynn, and with one hand grasping lynn's chin, and one on her forehead, lynn could no longer make any significant movement. In moments, Emily had pierced her left ear once and her right ear twice. She showed lynn the large silver hoops for her lobes and one ruby-red stud for the additional piercing, and put them in the piercings. "Oh, that is sexy. Girls with pierced ears beg to have their cunts pierced. That's what all boys believe. And it's true, you know," Emily added. "Ok, now you help me down here," Ariel asked Emily. As Emily held both sides of lynn's stomach, Ariel used the piercing gun on lynn's navel. lynn felt a sharp pain, and let out an awful scream. Emily reacted swiftly, shoving a towel in lynn's mouth. Ariel reached over to the counter, showed lynn the stud with a dangling S, and proceeded to lock the stud into lynn's navel. Through her tears and rasping for breath, lynn saw the S and wondered about it's meaning. As she felt the stud lock, Ariel appeared at her eye level and answered her unasked question. "S is for slut. Congratulations, little slut." Emily patted lynn's head, trying to calm her down. "Relax, we're almost done. Relax. you will love your new look. Believe me. I know you are shocked at the moment, but give it time. Relax. Shhhhh......" A few moments later, lynn's adrenaline had subsided, she was breathing steadily through her nose, and Ariel approached her with a bottle of water. "Do you want something to drink?" lynn nodded, and Emily pulled the towel gag from her mouth. Ariel held the bottle up to lynn's lips, and she drank deeply. And sighed deeply. "Now, no more tears. A little makeup and you are done. I don't want your tears spoiling your looks, ok?" asked Emily. lynn nodded, too exhausted, too shocked to even say a word. Emily finished by applying some eye shadow and dark red lipstick. She plucked a couple of hairs from lynn's eyebrows, took one last look, and pronounced the treatment over. "Ok?" she asked Ariel. "Yes, I'm sure Judy will be pleased. Get dressed little slut," she ordered, as lynn' arms and legs were released. lynn rose unsteadily from the chair and turned towards the counter where she had laid her clothes. she looked into the mirror for the first time. her mouth opened wide in shock, and she put one hand over her mouth to keep from crying out. Put her other hand went automatically to her crotch, for never in her life had her pussy juices raced down her thighs, as they were at the moment.
Part 33 "STOP!" Judy's sudden shout broke lynn's sexual trance. she turned to look at Judy with large, wide eyes. she was within seconds of cumming. she had to cum. she had to. "I said 'STOP'! Now!" shouted Judy as she reached over and slapped lynn's probing fingers away from her throbbing cunt. "Please, Mistress! Please. i've done everything you've asked all week. Please let me cum! Please," she whimpered. Inwardly Judy smiled to herself. lynn had passed the barrier. she would do anything now, anything to be fucked, used, and enslaved. Anything to avoid more punishment and pain. It had taken only 7 days to transform little Miss Perfect into little Miss Perfect Slut. Ron would be so pleased when he arrived later today. But Judy could not let lynn know that she was secretly pleased. she had to keep the little slut simmering until she was presented to Ron as a gift, a virgin gift. "Put your hands behind your neck, now, or we'll stop right here along the road, and I will whip your ass so you can't sit for a week!" Reluctantly, lynn put her hands behind her neck and locked her fingers as Judy had ordered her many times over the past week. her chest heaved, as she slowly climbed down from the near orgasmic high. she knew her little tits were poking out like headlights, but that was ok. she had learned to appreciate her body more and more as the week had progressed. she stared straight ahead, again thinking of the week gone by... ...When Judy arrived at the beautician, lynn was dressed and standing with her hands locked behind her neck. Judy walked slowly towards the little slut, admiring the girls' work, admiring the slut's body, a body now owned by Judy. lynn's eye's were lowered and she was silently whimpering to herself. Judy reached out to finger the little S that hung from her bellybutton ring. She gave it a slight tug, and lynn made a more audible moan. "Look at me, slut," Judy ordered, and lynn raised her sad eyes. her new "do" was perfect, the look of a slut on the prowl. The earrings said it all, "Pierce me, fuck me, use me." Emily and Ariel stood to the side, pleased with their efforts. "Perfect. Perfect. lynn, kneel, but keep your hands locked behind your neck, and don't release them, and don't say a word. Girls, time for your tip." Ariel immediately dropped her skirt and approached the kneeling lynn. Ariel's pussy hair was neatly trimmed, shaved into a fine triangle, and she walked right up to lynn's face. "Ok, slut, time to thank the girls. you are to lick and suck them until they cum. Use that tongue like you used it last night at the party. It is the job of a slut to please, so make sure you do." lynn did not move. she just looked at the gaping pussy inches from her mouth. "Now, slut!" And so she tentatively flicked her tongue in the direction of Ariel's cunt. Ariel took the initiative and grabbed the sides of lynn's head, hooking her fingers behind her pierced ears, and forced lynn's face straight into her cunt. lynn had no choice but to react, if nothing else than to use her tongue to push away from Ariel's cunt, to give herself some breathing space. "Flick your tongue. Find her love button. Deep, fast. Nibble her pussy lips. Faster," Judy coached her young slut. Ariel was already hot from the entire beauty session, and it took only a few moments for her to cum. "Lick her juices, cunt. They're like nectar from the gods. Don't miss a drop." Moments later, Ariel released lynn and stepped away, allowing Emily to step forward. Emily had dropped her shorts, and did as she had seen Ariel, locking her hands behind lynn's ears, and pulling her head forward. lynn had never licked or sucked another girl before. she had seen others doing it in the dorms, but she had always evaded the experience. To her knowledge, there were no girls at last night's party, so even in her drugged state she had never brought another girl to orgasm. So the first thing she noticed was that Emily's musk was somewhat different from Ariel's. Sweeter, she thought. Tastier. Emily's thatch was blond. The fine hairs tickled lynn's nose as she once again serviced the cunt thrust into her face. In a short time, Emily also came. lynn's face was slippery with the pussy juices that she could not lap up. Even her moussed bangs had a drop or two hanging from them. As Emily released her head, lynn looked pleadingly up to Judy. "Excellent, slut. you may release your hands and stand up. We have to get going." Turning to the girls, Judy added. "Thanks for the great job. Maybe we will return again. Next time, you can do as you wish. I'm sure I will be pleasantly surprised." The beauticians expressed their appreciation, gave lynn a hug which she could not understand, but she weakly put her arms around her tormentors and gave them a unenthusiastic hug in return. "Let's go, slut." lynn followed her Mistress out the door and into the mall. "Remember, move that ass," Judy ordered unnecessarily loud to the asian slut walking about 5 feet in front of her. lynn swung her ass more dramatically, and noticed the glances she was getting. Men and boys alike stared at her face, her bellybutton, her crotch, her heels. she knew that she was turning heads left and right. Girlfriends and wives hung onto their men's arms more strenuously, tugging them away from the swinging ass heading their way. Judy guided lynn towards the food service area. Time for another lesson, thought Judy. "Do you need to piss?" "Yes, Mistress." She pointed to the toilet signs, and lynn headed in that direction, with Judy right behind. When they entered the restroom, it was empty. lynn opened one of the stall doors, but Judy stopped her. "What do you think you're doing?" "i was going to pee, Mistress." "Not until I say you can and not until I tell you how you can." lynn looked at Judy with an expression that showed she was confused. "Drop your shorts, hand them to me, and then squat over the toilet. Sluts are not allowed to sit when they pee." "But, Mistress..." "Either do what I say or let's go. you won't have another chance for several hours, so it's up to you." lynn had to pee, so she dropped her shorts, handed them to Judy, and walked into the stall. "Leave the door open, slut," Judy ordered. lynn stood over the seat, her legs spread wide, and the steady stream started almost immediately. she really did have to go bad. her eyes had been lowered in embarrassment, but the sound of snipping caught her attention. Judy had found a pair of scissors in her purse, and was cutting a hole in the crotch of lynn's already short shorts. her pussy would be completely exposed! she finished peeing, wiped herself, flushed the toilet and stood there wondering what to do next. "Come here, slut, and try these on," commanded Judy as lynn walked towards her. she took her shorts, pulled them on, and looked down to see what could be seen. "Spread your legs wider. Let me see if I guessed the location correctly." lynn spread her legs as Judy bent down to look. The hole was slightly off center, so Judy used the scissors to widen the hole slightly on the left side. It was unlikely anyone walking past her would know the hole was there, but lynn would know and that was all that mattered. "Ok, let's go get something to eat. you first. How about a hamburger and fries?" "Ok, Mistress." lynn made her way among the tables of the food court with Judy close behind, admiring the view. They stood in line at the McDonalds. Judy placed the order. "I'll have a Big Mac and my slut will have an order of fries." lynn was shocked to be called a slut in public, and the look she got from the girl behind the counter was one of disbelief. They walked over to an empty table with Judy sitting and commanding, "you will stand, little slut." She took the fries off the tray and placed them in front of the standing lynn. "Each fry gets dipped in your pussy. The hole is perfect, don't you think?" lynn was shocked by this order. she just stared at the fries, not knowing if she should answer Judy or not. "Eat up, cunt. you are going to need your energy for the next few days." lynn reached down, took one fry, and reaching under her crotch, slid it into the hole in her shorts and touched her cunt. There was an immediate burning sensation as the salt on the fry touched her newly shaven pussy lips. she pulled it out and put it in her mouth. There was no particularly different taste, since she had barely touched her bald cunt. she chewed on the fry for several moments and then reached for another. Judy was munching away on the burger, then said, "Stand on the other side of the table so I can get a better look. Spread your legs wider, and make sure the fry gets a good dipping. If I think you are faking it, I will order you to put one foot on the chair, so I and everyone else in the place can get a good view of the action." lynn just stared at the fries, the disbelief continuing to mount in her mind, and then moved directly across from Judy. she spread her legs more than a shoulder's width, and took another fry. Not wanting to risk further embarrassment, she pushed the limpy fry more deeply into her pussy. The salt-induced sting repeated itself, and this time the combination of humiliation and stimulation had its effect. lynn felt her clit beginning to grow and her juices flow. Whether it was her imagination or not, the fry had a distinct taste of her own cum this time. Judy had finished her burger, helped herself to a couple of lynn's fries, and lynn had managed to eat about 10. Judy dabbed her lips with a napkin, then offered the same napkin to lynn. "Maybe you want to clean the oil off your pussy. Wouldn't want to stain your shorts." "Why don't you drop the trash off over there and meet me by the ATM across the way?" Judy needed some extra cash for the activities in the days ahead, so she walked to the ATM and finished the transaction about the time lynn arrived. "Ok, so far so good, don't you think?" "Yes, Mistress," thinking to herself, this is not going well at all. "Two more stops and then we'll head to your new home. Lead on, slut. Back to the car." Arriving back at the car, lynn was happy just to sit down and be out of the sight of the stares and lecherous looks. Judy headed towards the east end of town, again an area that lynn did not know well. Ten minutes later, she pulled up in front of an Adult Video and Novelties shop. "Oh, no," thought lynn. "We need a couple of items that should prove useful in your training, slut. Don't embarrass me in there. The owner is an old friend." They walked into the shop, and the owner greeted Judy, not exactly with a friendly smile, but he clearly knew her from the past. "Hi, Officer, what can I do..." Judy had walked in first, and it was just then that the owner saw lynn walk in behind her. His pupils dilated immediately at the sight of the young, lithe, body, showing a lot of skin, and walking with a lot of swing. "Hi, Denny. Need a couple of items. I'm training a new slut. Whatya think?" "Yummy," he smiled. He hadn't shaven since the previous night, and his less than perfect teeth smiled in approval. "Usual service discount, ok, Denny?" "Sure, Officer. What do you want." "I think a medium and large penis gag. she's a bit new at this, and might need a few days to work up to the large. As for the butt plug, tell me what you think." lynn had never seen any of these items, but the names were self-explanatory, and her stomach started to knot in fear. she took a step back as Denny came around the counter. "Drop the shorts, slut, and let Denny take a look. He's quite an expert." lynn just stared at Judy, her reaction time slowed by fear. "Now!" shouted Judy. lynn pulled down he shorts and stepped out of them. Denny approached and told her to turn around, and bend over. Having no choice, she did as he commanded. she felt a finger enter her ass and immediately raised up and stepped forward, letting out a gasp. "Now, now, little slut. I can't fit you with the right size if you won't stand still." "No, Mistress Judy, please no. i've never..." "Shut up, slut," commanded Judy as she moved swiftly towards lynn. "Sorry, Denny, she's new at this, and still doesn't get it. Time for some discipline, I think." She grabbed lynn's hair from the top center, and jerked her head downward. "Denny, how about I borrow a paddle of yours." "Sure," he agreed, walking behind the counter and coming out with a 15 inch piece of wood, broad at one end, handled on the other. He handed it to Judy and stepped back to watch, the bulge in his crotch growing larger by the minute. Judy immediately hit lynn's ass with a powerful blow. she tried to stand up, and at the same time tried to cover her burning ass with a hand. Judy would have none of it. She was far more powerful than the little asian, and had no trouble forcing her head back down. "Put that hand away, or I will handcuff it in front of you. I told you to obey, that unless you want those triple X pictures of you in the hands of your parents, that you are mine for the rest of the week. Now, put both hands on your knees, and learn your lesson so we don't have to repeat it again." With that, Judy placed 10 sharp blows to various places on lynn's ass. The paddle did not have holes, so no welts were raised, but her ass glowed a bright red when Judy had finished. lynn was sobbing and gasping for breath. she had never felt such physical pain before in her entire life! "Ok, Denny, check here while I still have her bent over." Denny had been enjoying the show and licking his lips in anticipation. He came in from behind and shoved two fingers deep into lynn's ass, meeting resistance after about 5 inches. "I think you should start with a medium. I don't think she has had much action down there." "Go ahead and pick out the right size, and we might as well start expanding her little hole immediately," said Judy, still holding tight to lynn's hair and forcing her body to bend sharply at the waist. Denny pulled one of the new packages off the hook, and tore open the plastic. "If she is going to be a slut, might as well get used to lubing her own plugs," he said. "she won't always have access to KY jelly." He walked around to lynn's head, and said, "Open up, slut. The wetter you get this, the easier it will go in." He put the plug to her lips, but she just stared, nearly in shock. Judy pulled her hair sharply, getting lynn's attention. "Either open up your mouth and suck this plug like you sucked all those cocks last night, or I'll lay another ten on your ass. Your choice." That was no choice at all, and lynn immediately opened her mouth to take in the black plug. Denny held it out away from her face, so lynn had to reach out to surround the plug with her nearly dry mouth. "Suck, slut. Suck like your life depends on it." After a few moments, lynn was able to get some saliva forming in her mouth, and she lathered all over the plug. "That should help," Denny said as he pulled it from her sucking lips. He walked around behind and warned, "This may be a little uncomfortable, but believe me, you'll get used to it. Try to relax." With that he began to steadily shove the plug into lynn's ass. she tried to rise to meet the force, but Judy held her steady. she let out weak gasps of air, but soon Denny announced the job finished. "Ok, slut, pull on your shorts so that the plug has some external support. As your muscle control improves, you'll be able to hang onto almost anything inserted into your precious ass." Judy released lynn and walked over to the counter to pay for the items. lynn rose weakly, and without blinking, walked over to pick up her shorts and pull them on. she felt so uncomfortable. she was unable to even walk normally, the foreign object in her ass causing her to walk almost bowlegged, the pain of the paddling pricking her skin like a million sharp needles. "Get behind the counter, slut. Time to pay for our discount," Judy ordered. lynn walked slowly behind the counter. Denny had dropped his pants, his cock standing nearly vertical in anticipation. "Hurry up, give him a quality blow job. I can tell from the pictures last night that you are a real expert at this." lynn knew she had no choice. And she was not an expert. she had never sucked a boy off before last night, and in her drugged state she remembered very little. But somewhere in the back of her mind, she heard a voice saying, "Just suck, like you are using a straw." And so she bent over, feeling the plug in her ass pushed in more deeply by the tightening shorts, and surrounded his cock with her lips. "And when he cums, take it all. I don't want one drop on the floor," Judy instructed. In only moments, Denny released and filled lynn's mouth. she held her hand under her chin to catch it all, and swallowed as quickly as she could. she nearly gagged, but fear overcame that sensation. When he finished, Judy spoke, "Now, lick off your fingers and hand, and then clean off his cock with your tongue. you did a good job, slut." Good job. lynn actually felt relief when she heard those words. Good job. To avoid punishment, she would try to get more compliments from Judy. "Ok, wipe whatever remains on your face with your clean hand, lick that off, and then wipe your hands on the back of your neck. Time to get going before the next shop closes." Judy thanked Denny, told him she would probably be back for a few more items in a week or two, grabbed lynn's elbow to steer her towards the door, and walked briskly out. lynn tried to keep up, but she was so full of butt plug, so sore from the spanking, ever step was more than just a little uncomfortable. Judy had already started the car, when lynn eased herself into the passenger seat, wondering what else could happen on this awful day.
Part 34 Judy looked over at lynn, with her hands locked behind her neck and her legs widely spread. Moisture around the hole in the crotch of her shorts had stained the material a dark blue. she was taking short, shallow breaths, breathing like a bitch in heat. There was a fine sheen of perspiration around on her neck, which glistened in contrast to the black, ringed and locked collar. she was once again lost in her sexual dreams... ...leaving the Adult Store, her ass plugged and burning from the swats, lynn looked straight ahead and saw nothing. she was unable to think clearly. Everything was a blur, moving too fast, triggering too many new emotions for a teen to comprehend. she knew that she hurt, that she wanted to obey to avoid more pain, that there was light at the end of the tunnel, but that was still 6 days away. They were soon driving in a part of town that was familiar territory to lynn. In fact, her parents lived no more than a mile away. For a moment lynn feared they were headed in that direction, but Judy passed their cross street without saying a word. Signaling left, Judy drove into a shopping corner, with about 5 different stores. "Last stop, slut. Let's go try on a couple of items. Out you go and remember, keep your mouth shut unless spoken to." The burning sensation on her ass had lessened somewhat, but the discomfort of the butt plug was still awful. lynn hurried as fast as she could to catch up with Judy, who was headed into the door of Pet Smart. "Things to try on...Pet Smart?" lynn's mind tried to make a connection. The store had a number of shoppers and more than one looked up as lynn walked by, following Judy to the left side of the store. Judy was standing looking at a variety of collars and leashes. lynn made the connection, but knew there was nothing she could do except obey as quickly as possible to avoid punishment and embarrassment. "I think black would look best on you, don't you think, slut?" "Yes, Mistress." Judy chuckled lightly as she reached up for one that was about an inch wide, with many studs, not unlike the collar Ariel had been wearing. "Try this on, slut." lynn almost said, "But...", then saw the look on Judy's face. Quickly she took the collar, put it around her neck, buckling it tight, and stood there looking blankly at Judy. "A little wide for your slender neck, I think, and rings would be more useful than studs. People might just think you are a punker, rather than a slut, and we wouldn't want that, would we, slut?" "No, Mistress." "Take that one off and try this," Judy commanded as she prepared to hand lynn one that was about half an inch wide, with several rings around the circumference. Once again lynn worked as fast as she could, buckling on the new collar, her heart beating rapidly with fear. "Yes, that's perfect," said Judy as she reached into her purse to get a small lock. "Turn around, slut." When lynn had turned, Judy reached under her hair, found the hole in the collar just before the buckle, slid the lock through it, and shut the lock. lynn could not possibly get the collar off unless she cut the leather or the lock. Judy knew that this was one of the locks that sue, her sister, had picked out weeks ago. "Turn around, slut." lynn obeyed, and looked at Judy with tears in her eyes. she was horrified by what was happening, and by being in a situation over which she had no control and no options. Judy reached up and ran her finger under the collar, announcing, "Perfect. My little slut pet looks just perfect. And since you have been so good, you get to pick out the leash. But make it quick. It's been a long day, and it's time to get home." And she turned to walk towards the front of the store. lynn panicked and knew she had to catch up with Judy quickly, so she just grabbed the first leash that caught her eye, shiny chains linked to a leather handle. she nearly trotted down the aisle to catch Judy, not even noticing the butt plug's discomfort. There was one customer ahead of them, and one stepped in behind, a middle aged man that had come for some pet vitamins, and ended up getting quite a view. Just as they stepped towards the cashier, Judy let out an obscenity that frightened lynn, already on the alert to please Judy in every way. "Shit!" she said quite loudly. "We forgot to get something for you to eat out of, slut pet. Go ahead," she said to the open-mouthed man standing behind them and gestured to lynn to follow her. They went down a different aisle to the dog bowls. Judy looked at the chain leash lynn had picked out and said, "Since you like silvery colors, let's get this one," and she picked up a large silver-colored bowl, and headed back to the front. The man was completing his credit card transaction, and again stared in erotic wonder at lynn. Everything about her was sexually stimulating, and that night his wife would wonder what had come over her husband. He made love to her like he hadn't made in 10 years. The cashier scanned the bowl and leash with her scanning "gun", and Judy said to lynn, "Turn around, slut, so the cashier can scan the tag on the collar." lynn quickly turned, embarrassed to death, pulled up her hair, and leaned backward towards the clerk. Judy got a particularly good look at lynn's arching back, prominent tits, and taut stomach, accented by the bellybutton stud and dangling S. She needed to cum herself, and wasn't sure she could make it home in time. The clerk was just uncomfortable about the whole thing. She knew there were loonies around, but had never seen anyone like these two in the shop before. Judy paid in cash, and then asked, "Do you have a restroom we can use? We still have a little drive home." The clerk directed them towards the back corner, to the employees restroom. They hadn't walked more than a few feet when Judy stopped, took the leash out of the bag, and clipped it onto lynn's collar. "Let's go, pet. I need you." They went inside the small toilet area, and locked the door. Judy removed her skirt and sat on the toilet, never letting go of the leash. "Come here, pet. Kneel before me and rest your chin on the toilet bowl. That's a good slut. Now, your Mistress is in great need. you have made her so wet in the last few hours, so be a good pet will you." Judy leaned back her head, taking in the smell of her own sex, and the electricity generated as lynn flicked her tongue around the edges and then plunged it into Judy's dripping pussy. lynn knew what she needed to do. she had to please her Mistress. she wanted to please her Mistress. In a short time, Judy came with a small shout. she grabbed lynn's hair for both balance and to force lynn's head and warm tongue deeper into her pussy. Oh, what pleasure she enjoyed. Slowly coming down from the sexual mountain, Judy released lynn's head, telling her to stand over near the sink. Judy rose from the toilet with a sly smile. "That was wonderful, slut pet. So wonderful. you have a very talented tongue." lynn was relieved by the compliment. Once again, she tasted cum, and Judy's was in fact the sweetest so far. They left the store rapidly, and 5 minutes later arrived at Judy's former home. It was still furnished, though most of the clothes and personal items had been removed to sue's house weeks earlier. Over the past several days, Judy had restocked the fridge and made the necessary arrangements for lynn's stay. Judy's home was surrounded by hedges and fencing. She enjoyed her privacy, feeling quite free to walk around her home and backyard naked. Judy led lynn by the leash to the front door. At the door, she unhooked the leash. "Take off your clothes and shoes. you can set them on this counter." "Yessss, Mistress." There it was again. That slight stutter that reminded Judy so much of sue. Maybe it was the constant pressure of the butt plug, or once again being ordered to strip, but lynn realized that she was feeling sexual stimulation in her pussy. she was actually getting hot from all this uncertainty and abuse. Judy watched as lynn slowly slid off her shorts. The pain from the spanking and butt plug was obviously there in her expression. She stepped aside, as lynn walked past her into the entryway. Judy reached up to a rack to remove one of two sets of linked cuffs with chain, borrowed from the jail. She told lynn to put her hands behind her back and cuffed both wrists, separated by about 9 inches of chain. Judy knew that this added one more element of psychological abuse on the already crumbling girl. "Raise your hands a little," she ordered and lynn immediately obeyed. Judy tenderly rubbed her ass checks. The redness had turned a bright pink and by tomorrow only the mental pain of the spanking would remain. She tugged a little on the butt plug, but by now lynn's ass muscles had accepted the intruder and were firmly gripping the plug. And finally she reached around the front and after telling lynn to spread her legs widely, she stuck two fingers into the virgin cunt. She looked directly into lynn's eyes as she played with her pussy, and could see from her facial expressions that lynn was becoming aroused. "Do you enjoy that, little slut?" "No, Mistress. Please let me go. Please. i'll suck you and all your friends, i'll clean your house and be your maid. Please." Judy gave a deep and unpleasant laugh. "you're lying. I can tell from your dripping cunt that you are loving every moment." She pulled her fingers from her slave's cunt and held them up to lynn's lips. "Suck off all your juices, pet. Don't waste a drop." And lynn obeyed. Judy walked to a small dresser and returned with something she had obviously prepared ahead of time. "Sit on this chair so I can get a better look," directing lynn to a wooden chair next to the phone. The pressure of sitting on the plug drove it deeper into her ass and increased the unpleasant feelings. A sharp slap to the inside of her right thigh reminded her to spread her legs wider. she whimpered as Judy spread her pussy lips and enticed her clit to enlarge. With one hand holding the lips open, the other manipulated a slip knot of string over her clit. Judy pulled the string tightly, and now a tight noose encircled lynn's clit, and from the string hung a tiny red bell. Judy couldn't help but smile at lynn's shocked expression. "Yes, I know, it would be better if your clit was pierced. All in due time, little slut. Now, stand up." It was not an easy request for lynn to obey. With her hands locked behind her, she had to push down on the butt plug in order to rise from the chair. When she finally made it, Judy was standing there with the other set of cuffs and chain. "Turn around, slut." Then she knelt down and cuffed both ankles, separated by about 18 inches of chain. "Ok, walk around the room for me and make sure the bell tinkles." Knowing that she would have to do more than just glide, lynn made little hopping motions, so the bell, which hung about 5 inches out of her cunt, made a small tinkling sound. Judy was pleased, and commended lynn. "Isn't that lovely, little slut. you make such beautiful music," as she laughed at her own sarcastic sense of humor. "Well, let's see," Judy continued, checking her watch. "The day is still young and there is so much more to do. Follow me into the den." When they arrived, Judy made her way over to the computer, moved the mouse to bring it to life, and sat at the monitor. "Come over here, little slut," she ordered. When lynn arrived at the chair, Judy reached out and grasping the bell, pulled her even closer. She clicked the mouse a few times, typed a few sentences onto the screen, then picked up the microphone. "When I nod, I want you to read this through one time, nice and loud, understand." lynn nodded her understanding and earned a slap on her butt plug. "Sorry. i'm so sorry. Yes, Mistress, i understand." Judy hit "record" and nodded to lynn, who began to read, "i am a slut. i only want to please my mistress. my body belongs to my mistress. i am her slave." "Good, that should be perfect." lynn could see that Judy was copying this message, putting it with a power point presentation, and making a continuous loop. "Ok, I have to get some things done at the station, and I don't want you to be bored while I'm gone." Pushing the chair to the side, she pulled lynn to the front of the computer, about 6 feet away from the monitor. She reached up to grab a piece of rope hanging from a pulley screwed into the ceiling. She tied the rope to the links separating lynn's wrists, and began to pull, until lynn was forced to bend slightly at the waist to take off some of the strain in her shoulders. At that point, Judy left the room for a moment and returned with the medium penis gag she had purchased that afternoon. "Open your mouth, slut," and when lynn obeyed, she pushed the black penis into her mouth and using the straps, buckled it firmly behind her head. It was one thing when lynn could move her lips up and down the shaft, but here is was forced deep into her throat. she started to panic, but Judy just grabbed a handful of air and calmed her down. "Breathe through your nose. Slowly, in, out, relax, let your throat muscles relax. Enjoy. Bring pleasure to the cock. Relax." And soon lynn was able to calm her fears and breathe without gagging. "Now, for the entertainment." Judy pulled the headset from the computer desk and firmly placed it over lynn's ears. She cranked the pulley several more inches, which now forced lynn to bend at a right angle, the pain already very unpleasant in her shoulders. "I'll be back in a few hours. Enjoy," and with that, clicked play, and walked away. The voice began to play back, "i am a slut. i only want to please my mistress. my body belongs to my mistress. i am her slave," and on the monitor slide after slide of lynn's activities from the night before began to play. After looking in shock at all 26 pictures, lynn shut her tear-filled eyes, but there was nothing she could do to stop the repetitious and awful words she had spoken. they played over and over and over. And when her eyes were closed, she began to rock, almost losing her balance. In the end, she had to keep her eyes open, listen to the enslaving words again and again, bear the incredible ache growing in her shoulders, and suck deeply and often on the cock that filled her mouth and throat to stifle the tears which would not stop flowing. And all the time, little rivers of liquid raced down her thighs from her dripping cunt. Never had lynn suffered such torment. she could not help but look at the pictures that flashed in front of her face. she was mesmerized by them. They were the worst moments of her life. They were the best moments of her life. If only there was a way to guarantee they would never fall into her parents hands. Nick. she wanted to see Nick again. Don't fuck my ass, she wanted to scream. Fuck my cunt! FUCK ME!! The room got darker as night began to fall. The brightness of the monitor and the images that flashed upon it became the center of her attention. And all the time, "i am a slut. i only want to please my mistress. my body belongs to my mistress. i am her slave," echoed in her mind. she knew them by heart. she knew what would come next. she began to mouth them around the cock. The tears stopped; the ache in her shoulders became part of her existence. her sense of hearing focused on the words. her sense of sight on the images. her sense of pain on her shoulders. her sense of need on her pussy. she tried to rub her thighs together to stimulate her cunt, but every movement brought more pain to her arms and shoulders. she knew the bell was there, but its sound was too light to enter the earphones. Only when time had stopped, when she was no longer lynn, college freshman, devoted daughter, happy go lucky lynn, did she feel her arms being lowered. Judy had returned. She removed the headsets. "It's ok now, little slut. your Mistress has returned to free you. She unbuckled the penis gag. She unhooked lynn's arms from behind and rehooked them in front. She hugged the traumatized little asian, and with soothing words held on until the tears stopped. "Are you hungry?" "Yessss, Mistress. your slut is very hungry." Another threshold had been passed. Judy knew that with rest and time, lynn would regain what had been taken from her, but Judy did not plan on giving her that rest and time until it was too late to return to what she had been. She walked the half-slumped slut to the kitchen, and helped her to her knees on the floor, where a bowl of water and a large silver dog bowl of cold spaghetti had been set out. Without further instructions, lynn lowered her face to eat the food and lap up the water. Judy sat at the counter eating her warm meal and watched her little slut eat most of what was in the bowls. her face was covered in tomato sauce. The tips of her hair were also a mess. "How about a nice warm shower, slut." "Please, yes, Mistress." "Follow me, but stay on your hands and knees." lynn followed like a domesticated pet, as Judy led her from the kitchen. She turned suddenly and said, "Does my slut need to go to the toilet?" "Yes, Mistress. Please." "Ok, outside you go. Here, I will remove the butt plug in case you need to shit, also. In fact, I want you to shit. Just find any place in the yard. But stay on your hands and knees. Here, let me remove the ankles cuffs so you don't soil them." lynn just looked at her without blinking, and didn't move. her ass felt like an air tunnel. No, like an empty air terminal. she couldn't believe the sensation of emptiness. And she couldn't believe that she had just been ordered to go outside to relieve herself. "you don't think I'm going to allow my pet to shit and pee in my house, do you? Now, go outside. It's dark. And be quick about it before I change my mind." Knowing she had no choice, lynn crawled out the back door, onto the back porch, down one small step, and out onto the lawn area. she separated her legs as far as possible and a steady stream of piss shot into the grass. she hadn't shit since the previous day, and so a few moments later, squatting like a begging dog, she did so on the lawn. Judy had been watching from the back porch and announced, "Good girl. Good slut. Come over here so I can clean you off before you come back into the house." She had already attached a nozzle to the hose, and ordering lynn to turn her ass towards her, she shot a steady stream of water into her crack and ass hole. "Now, roll over on the grass, trying to get some of the water off your skin, drag your ass across the lawn a few feet, and then come back up on the porch." Too embarrassed to even think of arguing, lynn did as ordered. Once inside the house, Judy had lynn stand and they made their way to the bathroom. Judy hooked lynn's hands over the shower head, turned on the water, and joined her in the shower. She shampooed lynn's hair, washed her body, including a thorough cleaning inside her cunt, and then attaching a small hose to the shower head, gave lynn two swift enemas. The butt plug had done its job; lynn showed almost no reaction when the nozzle was inserted into her enlarged anal canal. Judy told lynn to step from the shower, to dry herself, while Judy finished washing her own body. When she had finished, Judy stepped from the shower and ordered, "Use that towel over there to dry me, slut. And when you have finished, you may thank your Mistress by licking her pussy and sucking any liquid out of it that you can find." Both Mistress and slut were satisfied when they left the shower just before midnight. Judy reattached the ankle cuffs, reinserted the butt plug after lynn had sucked on it to moisten the surface, and finally, despite lynn's whimpering, reinserted the penis gag. Only lynn's virgin cunt was unfilled, and the little bell tinkled as she followed her Mistress through the kitchen into the garage. "I hope you sleep well, slut. It's a little small, but then no one said you would be staying at the Hilton. Get down on your knees, turn around, and back in. That's the best way." And so her first day of slavery ended with lynn backing into a 3 by 4 by 4 cage, perfect for a St. Bernard, perfect for a slut. she curled up on the large pillow, tried to pull the lone blanket over her still-aching shoulders, and despite all the anguish and humiliation, fell quickly asleep, with the words "i am a slut. i only want to please my mistress. my body belongs to my mistress. i am her slave," echoing in her mind.
Part 35 "What is she thinking?" Judy wondered. The shock of seeing her own sister dressed and looking like a whore could only add to the complete confusion and shock of the week. Judy had decided that she would allow lynn to return to school on Monday. But things would not be the same. Ever again... ...lynn remembered waking up the day after her enslavement. Cramped in a cage, chained, collared, gagged, and plugged. she heard noise in the kitchen and rather than face the day ahead, pretended to be asleep when Judy opened the door. Judy had purposely made a lot of noise in the kitchen, banging pans, turning up the music, so she was quite sure the slut was faking it. Time for another lesson. She reached through the large mesh, and grabbed lynn's nose. lynn's eyes flew open, but in the cramped quarters there was no way to escape Judy's grip. With the penis gag filling most of her mouth and throat entrance, she quickly began to panic, unable to draw in any significant breath. she made sucking noises, trying to inhale past the gag, but quickly began to turn a dark red. "When I walk into your kennel area, I expect you to immediately get on all fours, with your head straight ahead looking at me. Is that clear, slut?" lynn was almost to the point of passing out, but managed to nod her head. Judy immediately released her nose, and opened the door of the cage. lynn was desperately trying to get oxygen through her nose. Judy reached behind her neck to unbuckle the penis gag, and pulled it from her mouth. lynn immediately took deep breaths to refill her oxygen-depleted body. "Get up on all fours, now!" Judy commanded. lynn struggled to obey, as Judy attached the leash to her collar and pulled her from the cage. lynn followed on all fours to the door which led to the backyard. Judy turned and ordered, "Relax your ass," and without further notice, pulled the butt plug from lynn's gaping ass, uncuffed her ankles, and told her to go outside and relieve herself, and to be quick about it. lynn had not even thought of saying one word of protest. she was speechless from the swift punishment that Judy had inflicted, and frightened to death of doing anything wrong. she crawled outside into the morning air, immediately concerned that someone would see her. But a quick look around told her that the hedges and tall fencing would ensure her privacy. Privacy! What privacy? Crawling naked into the back yard of her Mistress, treated like an animal. her pride had been completely destroyed in the past 24 hours. Only needing to piss, lynn did so and turned to await directions for what to do next. "Come over here, slut." Judy was standing hear the garage wall, by a water faucet. There was a low outdoor cupboard, and when lynn arrived, Judy continued. "Sit, with your back against the wall, and spread your legs. Every morning, without fail, I expect you to reshave your pussy. I want it completely bald to begin each day. In this drawer you will find a razor and cream. you can use this faucet to wash off. And if you have to shit, I expect you to clean your ass and give yourself an enema. There are towels in this drawer. And be quick about it. We have a busy schedule again today. Do you understand?" lynn uttered her first words of the new day, "Yes, Mistress." Five minutes later, freshly shaven, lynn crawled up on the porch and approached the kitchen door. Judy had been preparing breakfast, and decided it was important for a little praise. Opening the kitchen door, she said, "Lay on your back and spread your legs, slut." lynn obeyed swiftly and Judy continued, "Very good, pet. Very good. Are you hungry?" Relieved and happy for the praise, lynn said, "Yes, Mistress. Thank you, Mistress." "First things first," and Judy recuffed lynn's ankles and held the butt plug to lynn's lips. Unlike the previous night, when Judy had washed off the plug before presenting it to lynn, this time lynn knew she would be sucking a plug that only a few minutes ago had been stuffed in her ass. she hesitated, but Judy just shoved it more forcefully into her lips. lynn opened her mouth and caressed the plug with her lips and tongue. When Judy pulled it from her lips, it made a slurping sound. She immediately shoved it into lynn's empty ass. "Down pet. Enjoy your breakfast. And try to not get it in your hair," Judy added, as she reached for a rubber band to make a short ponytail of lynn's hair. lynn crawled into the kitchen door to find a bowl of milk and a bowl of what appeared to be oatmeal. she ate greedily, surprised by her hunger. Judy finished her eggs, toast, bacon, and coffee about the same time and turned to find lynn looking at her Mistress, wondering what to do next. "Ready pet? Ok, stand up, let's go get cleaned up and ready for the day ahead." She led lynn to the bathroom. There were two sinks, so both Mistress and slut brushed their teeth and fixed their hair. Judy put on lipstick, took a look at lynn in the mirror, and decided their was no point until after their appointment. She did instruct lynn to use the eye shadow as applied by Emily and Ariel the day before. "your clothes are on the bed in my bedroom across the hall, slut." lynn took a few steps, then turned, paused, and then stuttered, "Mmmissstresss?" "What do you want, slut?" "Mistress, how can your slut put on her clothes with her hands and legs chained?" "I'm sure you will figure out a way, now move it, before I take this hair brush to your ass." lynn hurried to the bedroom, having no idea how to get dressed, chained as she was. But when she picked up the clothes, she gasped and yet knew that her Mistress would not appreciate any delay. she held two black tube tops, one only slightly bigger than the other. The only thing to do was pull one over her head, feed her chained arms through the tube, and try to cover her breasts as much as possible. And it was not possible. she felt more naked than before. And then she pulled the larger tube over her chained ankles, up to her waist, trying to cover her ass. Another impossible task. her bell actually was visible from the front, and her ass cheeks, puckered from the plug, showed prominently from the back. The same high-heeled sandals she had worn yesterday were on the floor, so she stepped into them carefully, afraid of falling over with her chained ankles. Judy walked in a moment later and smiled at her embarrassed slut as she walked by to put on her uniform. "you look hot enough to eat, and I would, except that we are already late. Let's go." lynn didn't bother to protest, just followed her Mistress to the front door. Judy turned and released her ankles and then her wrists, putting both items in a gym bag she was carrying. "Turn around." When lynn obeyed, Judy pulled out her handcuffs and cuffed the almost naked slut. She hooked the leash on her collar. "Ok, out to the car, and remember, swing that ass when you walk, and when you get in the car, spread those legs." As soon as lynn sat down, she knew what would happen. she knew the plug would be driven more deeply into her ass, but the moment she spread her legs, the tube slid up around her waist, almost like a sash. her pussy was completely open to the world. Judy looked over and smiled. "Very nice, slut." She reached over and pulled on the little bell, making sure to extend lynn's clitty, and scratched her pussy lips with her nails. lynn immediately reacted, pushing back into the car seat, staring at Judy with a look of shock. "I know, little slut. I know. Another few days and you will get your wish." Judy had planned the morning's activities several days ago. She actually had expected lynn to be more sassy and disobedient, but no matter. She had to be at the station until noon, and so made arrangements with a dentist, operating in town only because Judy and Ron allowed it. Dr. Dean had spent time in prison in another state for sexual assault on one of his patients. Ron had made it clear that he could practice only if he kept clean, and kept quiet about some things he was asked to do. Dr. Dean had cancelled all other appointments that morning and given his staff the morning off. He opened the back door when Judy and lynn knocked. There was no sign announcing his business on the back door, so lynn was completely in the dark. "Hi, Doctor. All set?" "Come in, come in. Yes, all set. I take it this is the patient?" he asked unnecessarily, feasting his eyes on the most delicious dish he had seen in years. A body of a goddess, and almost all of it exposed to his devouring eyes. Alluring eye shadow, swinging earrings, tight collar, chic hair style, hands apparently cuffed or bound behind her back. Sexy posture, breasts forced out by the handcuffed hands, legs worth a million, and what an outfit. Nope, nothing much left to the imagination. "Mistress?" "Be quiet, slut. Or do you need a spanking right here to remind you?" "No, Mistress. Please no." "Good enough," said Dr. Dean. "Follow me." He led Judy and lynn down the hall into one of the side rooms. "Have a seat, young lady," he snickered at the obvious joke. "Officer, would you please uncuff her beautiful wrists?" Judy did as asked, and when lynn sat in the dental chair, she experienced the same fear as the day before. The Doctor immediately put velcro straps over her arms, one near the elbow, one at the wrist. And just like the day before, her ankles were strapped to the rotating footrests. "That should do. Are you going to assist, Officer, or..." "What about her head. she may need some encouragement to remain still during the procedure." "No problem," he replied, pointing out two metal attachments hinged to the headrest. "Ok," she smiled, "I'll be back after lunch. Remember, her cunt is off limits. All other openings are available for your enjoyment." And she walked out the door, leaving lynn in a state of fear and confusion. "Another modification to her body, another step deeper into slavery," Judy thought as she closed the back door. "Now, young lady. Did you have braces when you were younger?" "Nnooo, Sir." "Very good. Beautiful teeth, beautiful body, beautiful, beautiful,..." He was lost in wonder, his cock beginning to throb in anticipation. He picked up a small mirror and told lynn to open up. she did and he looked around her mouth. "Be patient," he thought. "Finish the job, first, then the fun." her tongue sexually excited him and he actually had to roll his chair backwards, and take a deep breath. lynn had shut her mouth when he pulled back, so once again he asked her to open it. This time, he reached to the side of her head and rotated the metal devices, more like rounded hooks, inserting one in each side of her mouth. lynn's eyes opened wide, realizing what was happening, but it was too late. He spread the hooked-shaped arms, forcing her mouth to remain open and available. "Relax, my dear. Let me tell you the plan. your Mistress wants me to attach four bands to your four molars. The top bands will have a pivoting hook and the bottom will have a slot soldered to the band. By inserting the hook into the bottom of the slot, you can be effectively gagged, unable to open your jaws, and no one will be the wiser from outside appearances. you can smile, but you just can't talk. By inserting the hook into the top of the bracket, you will be unable to close your mouth. Perfect for certain activities, I'm sure you will agree. So, let's get started. I'll go as quickly as possible, not so much for your comfort, but for my needs," once again snickering at his own joke. Over the next hour, the Doctor used his strongest bonding glue to attach the bands to lynn's back teeth. He had already prepared the soldered attachments, so it was really quite an easy task for him. The most time consuming item was allowing the glue to dry. While it was, the doctor entertained himself playing with lynn's cunt, pulling the bell, checking how it was attached to her clit, making small talk throughout. lynn's breathing and heartbeat became more rapid. she began to groan, as the emotions of fright and sexual stimulation took control of her body. "Oh, my, what have I done. you seem to have sprung a leak," he laughed, releasing her pussy lips. He took his forceps, grabbed several wads of cotton, and shoved them into her cunt. "That should help," he sad with feigned sympathy. He left the room for a bit, and lynn could hear him on the phone. her jaws were aching, and while the bands had not really hurt very much, it was the thought that once again her body was being violated without her permission. her cunt was a source of great embarrassment. Others could read her mind and thoughts just by looking at her pussy. she could not hide her need and desire. she wanted to be fucked, wanted it so bad. "That should do it. Let's check, shall we?" Dr. Dean retracted the metal hooks that had held her mouth open, and lynn could finally close her jaw. she tried to use her tongue to feel what he had attached to her teeth, but almost immediately, he reached into her mouth, and with his right forefinger, she felt him manipulate something in the back of her mouth. Before she could even ponder what to do next, he had done the same with the left side of her mouth. "Now, let's see if it works. Try to open your mouth." And lynn knew right then that her jaw was locked shut. "Say something, like 'i am a hot slut.'" Obeying all orders like a good slut, lynn tried to speak, but a slurred "i em a hut shlut" is all the came out. her lips made it possible to form certain letters, but all conversation would be muffled and nearly impossible to understand unless the listener knew what was coming. Tears of frustration and fear began to run down her cheeks. "Now, now, my dear. Look on the bright side," the doctor spoke as he began to release her arms and legs. "I offered to pierce your tongue at the same time, and attach a stud that could easily be hooked to the bands on your molars. It could be a lot worse." "Now, let's check the other feature," as he reached inside her mouth to release the hooks. "Open," he said. lynn opened her mouth and again the Doctor reached inside, this time connecting both hooks to the top of the lower bracket. "Ok, you can shut your mouth now." It was then that lynn realized she could not shut her mouth. The steel brackets forced her mouth to remain open about one inch, more than enough space for any cock to slide in and for her tongue to slide out. "Perfect. And look at the clock. We have over an hour together before your Mistress returns," and he smiled with great anticipation at the frightened lynn. When Judy returned just before 1, she found Dr. Dean whistling and cleaning up the room, and over to the side, near the x-ray machine, knelt lynn. her arms were locked behind her neck, and her back was perfectly straight. she stared at Judy with wide eyes. her mouth was open about an inch; her eyes had that same look of shock and disbelief. Both tube tops were around her waist, so her breasts and shaved pussy were prominently on display. There were tear stains along her cheeks, but that was to be expected. "Oh, hi Officer. Perfect timing. Your slut and I just finished getting acquainted, orally speaking, that is," and he gave one of his happy chuckles. "I think your idea worked out just fine. When locked, there is no way for her to open her jaws. The open position, as you see her now, has one little flaw. When I fucked her mouth, it was not easy for her to swallow all my ejaculation, because she can't close her lips completely. I found though, that as long as you deep throat her, there won't be too much of a problem. she has a great tongue. I told her she should be happy, that I offered to pierce it for nothing, but that you said not this time." Judy smiled at his report. Yes, no need for that medium penis gag any longer. Her slut would have to get used to cocks projecting deep into her throat. "Are you ready to go, slut?" she asked? "Yes, 'istress," lynn responded with her mouth forced open. "Let me see if I can figure out how this works," said Judy as she walked over to lynn and stuck her right forefinger inside of her cheek. She could see how the hook was caught on the lower band, and with a flick released the catch. She did the same thing to the left side of lynn's jaw. "you can shut your mouth now. Show some modesty and fix your clothes and let's go. Thank you, Doctor. You always do fine work." lynn had risen to her feet and was adjusting the top tube, hopelessly trying to cover her breasts. Then she tried to pull the other tube down far enough to hide her pussy. There was very little else she could do. "Thank the Doctor, slut." "Thank you, Doctor." "Thank him for what, slut?" "Thank you, Doctor, for fixing my teeth and for using my mouth and ass." "Much better," Judy smiled and led lynn out the door and into the sunlight. "Isn't it a beautiful day, pet?" "Yes, Mistress." "Perfect for a walk in the park, don't you think," she laughed. "Yyyesss, Mistress," lynn stammered in fear. "Oh, don't worry, I was just kidding you. We have more important things to do," as she checked her watch. "Into the car." When lynn got in, she quickly spread her legs, and the ridiculously useless tube once again rode up on her waist like a sash. Judy reached over to tug the bell, and spread her lips. "What's this, slut?" she asked, noticing some white cotton protruding from lynn's pussy. "The Doctor put in some cotton to soak up the moisture, Mistress," lynn embarrassingly admitted. Judy laughed at that, and reached over with her other hand to pull out the wads of soaked cotton. "Open up," she ordered lynn, and immediately put the wads into her mouth. "Enjoy." With her mouth filled with her own juices, lynn just stared straight ahead as Judy pulled out of the parking lot and drove off. she wondered what could possibly come next. Several minutes later, Judy pulled into a lot next to a physical therapy center. There were many cars in the lot, and lynn's fear grew. "Here we are slut, our next stop. I have made arrangements for you to work with a personal trainer, a very exclusive trainer, I might add. you have a great body, but there are always ways to improve it. Let's go, and straighten your 'dress' when you get out." lynn got out, and once again tried to pull the tube down to cover her pussy. Judy had gone to the trunk to collect the gym bag and then headed for the entrance door, with lynn close behind. At the door was a trash can, and Judy told her to spit out the cotton. Once inside, Judy led lynn down a hallway, knocked once at a door labeled Private, and walked in. Inside was a small gym, with weight lifting equipment, a variety of machines that lynn had never seen before, a treadmill, stationary bicycles, a large tub with slowly swirling water, and many other items. Walking over to meet them was as handsome a guy as lynn had ever seen. she was immediately horrified to be seen like this, but he seemed unaffected by lynn's appearance. "Hi, Judy, good to see you again." "Hello, Aaron," as they hugged and he gave her a peck on the cheek. "this is lynn, my current project. she was on drugs and I'm trying to teach her how to use her obvious looks and talents to make something of herself, as we talked about on the phone." lynn looked at Judy and stared. On drugs! That was so unfair. she was trapped and now there was no way out, except to obey and survive 5 more days. "It'll be a pleasure, for sure." He laughed softly as he reached out to tug lightly on lynn's pussy bell. "Is this to remind me that this area is off limits?" Judy laughed, also, and said, "Yes, and for other things. Actually, it is only off limits to be fucked. Anything else is ok. In fact, the more you can do to make her pussy beg to be fucked is fine with me. By Sunday night, I want to present the perfect slut to a dear friend." "Leave it to me," Aaron smiled. "So, besides the obvious looks, what modifications have you done with the slut?" "Why don't you tell, him, lynn. Don't leave out any details, beginning with the beauty shop." For the next few minutes, lynn stammered and haltingly told what had been done to her. The new hair style, earrings, pussy shave, collar, leash, cage, and dentist. she purposefully left out the way in which she was ordered to relieve herself. "A good summary, slut, but still a few details missing. For example, how have you been allowed to piss and shit, and how about our meals together and for sure, you can't live out the entertainment yesterday at the computer." Judy stared at lynn, who knew she had to tell about these most embarrassing of all events. And she did, and Aaron just smiled and nodded his approval. "Sounds like a great start, Judy. Well, I better get started. Has she eaten since this morning?" "Except for a little snack at the dentist about an hour ago, she hasn't had anything to eat since breakfast. Ok, well, then I'll be off. Oh, here is a gym bag with some useful items. See you Sunday morning," and Judy walked cheerfully from the room. "Sunday morning!" lynn thought in surprise and shock. "But today is only Monday!" Judy smiled to herself as she got into the car. Aaron was a personal trainer, and he did indeed have some wealthy middle-aged clients trying to preserve their physical appearance, but in the BDSM community, Aaron was also known as one of the most effective trainers of slaves and sluts. Within five days, Judy knew that lynn would walk, talk, and act like she had been a slut for years.
Part 36 sue. The sight of her sister had instantly awakened something within lynn. Something. Over the past week, she had lost everything. No one knew where she was. And after five days with Master Aaron, she thought of nothing but how to please her Mistress or Master. she was nothing. her will meant nothing. And now there was something. When Master Aaron had brought her to Mistress Judy on Sunday morning, she had walked proudly to the front door, naked, in 5-inch heels. Proud to be a slut, wanting the whole world to see her body. she walked with short steps, as though her ankles were chained, as they had been most of the time during the past 5 days. There was nothing she wouldn't do on command. Nothing. The little bell that Mistress Judy had attached the previous Sunday was still there. And the little tinkle became a rhythm that lynn heard constantly, like an external heart beat. she loved the sound. It defined what she was. "i am a slut. i only want to please my mistress. my body belongs to my mistress. i am her slave." As Judy stood at the door watching lynn precede Aaron up the walkway, she had to consciously force herself not to look amazed. Five days ago, lynn had been a frightened teen, shocked to be sure, who obeyed not because she wanted to, but because she wanted to avoid punishment. The slut that walked in her direction now showed none of those qualities. She looked five years older. She noticed that lynn's entire body was beautifully tanned. Aaron had placed a shining silver belly chain on lynn, which accented her wide hips and taut, tanned ass. There was also a silver anklet on her right ankle. she walked with the confidence of someone who knew who she was, or what she was. her hands were held behind her back, either locked there or held there intentionally. her mouth was slightly open, in an erotic sort of way. As she neared the porch, Judy noticed that the silver hoop earrings that went perfectly with the tanned skin. The ruby-red stud reflected the morning sun. The collar would have to be replaced. The black leather looked cheap. lynn's hair was teased and had the look of wild sex. her makeup, from the eye shadow to the dark red lipstick was perfect. her hairless pussy was an eye-catcher. And each step she took in the high heels was breathless. Though she knew lynn to be only 5'4", her naturally long legs, which blended into her hairless cunt, and the 5-inch heels gave her the appearance of a very tall asian beauty. lynn stopped at the bottom of the porch, with eyes respectfully lowered. "Hello, slut." "Hello, Mistress. How may this slut serve you?" Judy arched her eyebrows, smiled and looked over lynn's shoulder to Aaron, who stood about 6 feet behind his project for the week. He was smiling and knew that Judy had to be impressed. Judy stepped off the porch and walked around lynn. The first thing she noticed were red stripes, some with scabs, some just raised welts, all over lynn's back. She reached out to trace the path of one whip mark, and heard a slight intake of breath from her slut. She turned quizzically to Aaron with arched eyebrows, but before she could say anything, he spoke. "Sometimes she needed a reminder. Sometimes she needed to move more quickly. Sometimes a slut just needs it." Judy's pussy began to tingle as he spoke. Yes, he was a true Master. She ran her open palm along lynn's spinal column, and gently continued over her round ass, again stopping and turning to Aaron. "No plug?" "Judy, what makes a young cunt and ass so attractive to a man? Among other things, the tightness. Yes, you could stretch her ass, and later her pussy, but why? her ass has been opened, it can accept any cock, and her muscle control is excellent. You saw her walk. If you fill her ass with a plug, like the one you provided in the gym bag, you may gain a stuffed ass, and later a droopy, sloppy ass, but you will lose the sexy walk and the vice-like grip of a young ass. For me, that's not a fair trade." He dropped the gym bag that he had carried from the van. Soon after Judy left on Monday, Master Aaron had examined every centimeter of her body, causing electric-like shocks with every touch. she whimpered at his touch, silently begged to be fucked. He must have known the effect he was having on her, but his order of silence was obeyed. Without comment, he had withdrawn the butt plug and she had wondered why it had never been reinserted. He had used her ass countless times during the week, her mouth more than countless times. But the butt plug had never been reinserted. Judy may not have agreed, but she nodded her understanding. She continued to run her palm along the contour of lynn's body, along her strong quads, the inside of her thigh, then suddenly she shot two fingers into lynn's unsuspecting cunt. lynn's body tensed, but she did not move, she did not cry out. her training of the past week had prepared her for such an assault. Aaron smiled widely. And so did Judy. "Marvelous, Aaron. Your reputation is well earned. Thank you." "And to say it was my pleasure is an understatement. I hope that when you have popped her cherry, I might borrow her for a week or two." "I'm sure we can make arrangements for some follow-up lessons," Judy smiled and gave Aaron a token kiss on his cheek. He walked around to the front of lynn, and looked her in the eyes, teary eyes, as his finger snaked into her sopping pussy. "Goodbye, slut." "Goodbye, Master," was all that lynn could manage to get out. Master Aaron had abused and punished and made her suffer, and she loved him, and there was no way to tell him this. He held his finger, dripping in her juices, up to lynn's mouth. she opened widely, totally surrounding his finger with her lips, caressing it with her tongue, not wanting to let go, tasting herself, tasting her Master. He pulled it from her mouth, and turned and walked back to his van. lynn did not turn to follow his departure. she had not moved since stopping at the bottom of Judy's porch. Judy waited until the van backed out of the driveway, then turned to address her slut. "you can tell me about your week, later, slut. For now, we have to meet some people. your clothes are laid out on the bed. you'll recognize them from our first meeting, nicely washed. Do you need to pee or shit?" "Yes, Mistress. this slut needs to piss, with your permission." "Fine, might as well do it right here. Just step over onto the grass and spread your legs and make it quick." Without hesitation, lynn walked onto the grass, spread her legs widely, and let loose a steady stream. her bell tinkled constantly. Constantly. Constantly.... ...and now, here she was, having just seen sue. A little flame of hope had suddenly flared to life within her soul. lynn felt the car slow, and opened her eyes. Despite her week of training, she couldn't help uttering, "Mistress..." "Yes, slut. your sister used to live here. I own it now." Judy pulled the car into the drive. lynn just sat still waiting to be told to get out. her mind was racing now. This was sue's house, but Mistress just said she owned it now. Where was sue? What had happened to her? Had she been a whore all these years and kept it hidden? Did sue have anything to do with what happened to her over the past week? lynn was snapped out of her thoughts when Judy yanked the door open and said, "Out, slut, we have things to do." At the front door, lynn was ordered to strip. Judy watched, once again in awe of what a change had occurred since Aaron had taken over her training. In fact, for the first time, Judy actually envied lynn. She pushed those thoughts from her mind. There was a lot to do before Derek and David arrived with the other two sluts, and before Ron arrived home in a couple of hours. Once inside the house, Judy took the cuffs and chains from the gym bag. She locked lynn's wrists in front of her and then did the same to her ankles. She led lynn through the living room, past the den, which had been decorated, as if for a party, and into the back bedroom. The cage from the other house had been moved over here, and lynn paused at the bedroom door. her last experience in that cage had not been a pleasant one. "Like last time, slut. Down on all fours and back into the cage. I have things to do, and you need to take a nap so you are fresh for tonight." lynn complied and was soon locked inside. "If you can't sleep, I will put on a little entertainment for you." Judy turned on the VCR/TV and left the room. In a few minutes, lynn was entranced by a pornographic video. Judy knew that there were at least 2 hours of fucking and bondage. It was a favorite of hers and Ron's. The noise from the video and the location of the back bedroom ensured that lynn would have no idea what was happening in the den. Judy knew that Derek, David and their sluts would not be far behind, and indeed, within a few minutes, there was a knock at the front door. Judy opened the door and there stood the two guys. And standing behind them, completely horrified, were two blond, "teenaged" asian whores, dressed in school uniforms. "Come in, guys. Thanks for bringing slut sue home. I heard from Victor about the party and that Hec was making a fool of himself by getting drunk. And would you look at steph," she laughed aloud. "Let me see what changes have occurred since last time I saw them," Judy requested, peeking around the two guys. "Strip," ordered Derek. "Then, kneel." Both sue and steph immediately removed their skirt, blouse, and heels. They dropped to their knees, spreading them wide. Judy watched the whole show, her pussy tingling with excitement. Both Derek and David were clearly getting a hard-on. While sue was stripping, she was looking around the room, expecting to see lynn. "I like the changes, guys. Am I missing anything? Ankle tattoos, very chic. slut sue got another piercing here and there? And, do my eyes deceive me or are those tits a size or two larger," she smiled, reaching out and pinching sue's ringed tit, and admiring her badge. sue was trying not to show she was getting aroused. "And a new earring," Judy added, tugging on her hoop, causing sue to grimace. "Am I missing anything?" she asked, as she walked around the kneeling slut. David ordered, "sue, lay on your back and pull up your knees to your tits. Show Mistress Judy your other piercing. sue knew she had no choice, so with her eyes beginning to tear, she lay on her back, tucked her knees, and Judy immediately noticed the ring between her cunt and ass. "Ooohhh," cooed Judy. "I've never seen one there. What a great idea!" Turning her attention to steph, she walked around her kneeling body, taking in all the changes. "Lovely. Absolutely lovely. Open your mouth, cunt, and let me see if they pierced that pussy-licking tongue of yours." steph obeyed, hating every moment of Judy's appraisal. "David, I hope you can stay for the party we have planned. And Derek, you and your slut are also invited." "Sure," both guys echoed their desire to stick around for the "party". "How about getting the sluts ready. I have a couple of ideas," Judy began, moving toward the den. The guys followed, gesturing to sue and steph to follow. Both sluts got to their feet, looked at each other for moral support, and followed. sue looked around her house, which now belonged to Judy, remembering all she had, all her hopes. Now there was nothing, but to follow orders and plunge deeper into a dark abyss. Where was lynn? When they entered the den, Judy ordered sue to get up on the dining table, and to sit in the middle of the turntable which had been set in the middle. Like a large lazy-susan, the turntable was typically seen in all asian homes. sue climbed up on her table and sat on the turntable her parents had given her. "Kneel, but keep your arms to your side," ordered Judy, reaching for some cuffs and chains. "David, would you chain her ankles to her wrists, and when you've done that, have her lean back on the table. she's very flexible, let me tell you, so I know she can do this." David went to work. "Derek, we don't have another turntable, but I brought this chair from the station," said Judy, pointing to the chair that weeks ago had been used to further humiliate sue. Attached to the seat of the chair were a large dildo and butt plug. "Perfect, Judy. Ok, slut, have a seat," and when stephanie hesitated, a harsh slap to her ass followed, and he added, "Now!" stephanie eased her cunt and ass onto the large dildo and plug, not sure she could make it all the way down. Derek was chaining her cuffed ankles to the chair legs, and gave her shoulder a little push, completely impaling his slut. she groaned with discomfort, embarrassment, and pain. Derek completed chaining her wrists behind the chair, as David finished with sue. There was no way for sue nor steph to rise from their position. Judy had called an Italian take-out, ordering enough pasta, pizza, and salad for the party. She had invited Nick and Aaron, knowing that both had played a major role in enslaving lynn. Soon after 8, they arrived, joining Derek and David in the living room. The doorbell rang at 8:15, and Judy asked David to help her with the food. They were gone about 10 minutes, leaving Derek, Nick, and Aaron more time to get acquainted. At 8:30, Judy heard the car door shut and knew that Ron had arrived. Everything was set. Ron had seen the cars in the street, and wondered who was having a party. He had rushed home as quickly as possible, knowing that sue was to be dropped off that night by Hec. When he opened the door, he was more than surprised. Judy greeted him with a passionate kiss and said, "Welcome home, darling. I have a surprise for you." Ron recognized Nick, having seen him in the mayor's presence many times, and Aaron, having met at BDSM gatherings, but had no idea who David and Derek were. Ron had known nothing about the plan Judy had concocted to enslave lynn. Judy made all the introductions, not explaining why Aaron and Nick were there, but clarifying what had happened with Hec and Victor. "And now, let's have dinner," she cheerfully announced, and led the guys into the den. Ron whispered to Judy as they walked down the hallway, "I understand this Derek and David, but what are Aaron and the mayor's son doing here?" "Be patient, darling," Judy reassured him. And what a sight they beheld. At the center of the table, sue was chained, on her back, legs spread. A pile of salad was arranged as though it had poured from her cunt. Plates of pasta and pizza surrounded her body. Ron could hardly take it all in. He knew it was sue, but the blond hair and enlarged tits took him by surprise. His cock immediately began to swell. He saw the food, and the uncomfortable look on stephanie's face as she sat in the chair that he recognized from the office. He was literally speechless, but had a big, wide grin on his face. Judy tucked her arm in his, and led him to the head of the table. He walked by sue's bound form, and spoke for the first time, a simple, "Well, well." He reached out and fingered the badge piercing sue's nipple. "Hello, slut." "Hello, Master," she whimpered. Judy led him to the seat right in front of sue's open crotch. He immediately saw the ring piercing the wall between her cunt and ass. He made a somewhat irritated smirk, but said nothing, as everyone else sat down. He didn't like all the modifications to his slut, but except for the tattoos, all could be undone. And the tattoo he did like very much. For the next 45 minutes they talked, ate, dipped pizza in sue's oozing cunt, fed the two sluts, commented about their physical changes, and even talked some sports, much to Judy's obvious displeasure. When everyone had eaten enough, and Ron had pushed back his chair to stretch, Judy knew the moment had arrived. "And now, the best part. Dessert. Aaron, Nick, if you would join me in the hallway, I could use your help."
Part 37 Aaron and Nick were happy to help Judy. They got up from their chairs and followed her into the hallway. Ron, Derek and David continued to talk and eye the two helpless sluts. Nearly everything had been eaten from around sue, allowing everyone to see her naked form on the turntable. steph was squirming now, because the dildo and butt plug in her were making her hot and she wanted to cum. But the way she was positioned, she wasn't able to get to the point of no return. God she needed to get off. The three men discussed the things that had happened at the bondage club and Ron grew angrier and angrier as they described the way Hec had acted. Clearly Victor used his head, but Ron knew he would have to have a very one-sided discussion with Hec as soon as possible. Hec would no longer play any role in sue's enslavement, nor in this town. lynn had been shocked to see both Nick and Aaron with Judy. her heartbeat immediately raced above 100, seeing the two men that occupied her dreams and desires. her cunt began to juice. Judy had released lynn from the cage, and she had crawled out. The chains were removed from her wrists and ankles. her eyes stared straight ahead. "KNEEL," had ordered Judy, and lynn immediately took the position, legs spread, hands locked behind her neck, tits out, wanting to make Master Aaron proud, wanting to show Master Nick what she had become. Judy had reached inside her mouth, locking it in the open position. At Judy's direction, Aaron had pulled a hood out of the cupboard, and strapped it about lynn's head. Nick had clipped a leash on her collar, and ordered her to crawl along as he led her to the living room. When they got to the living room, Judy had opened the sofa into a bed. She had placed lynn in the middle with her legs wide open, showing off her young virginal cunt, ankles chained to the legs of the bed. All conversation stopped when Judy came to the door and announced, "It is now time for the special surprise of the night. You ready Ron?" "Oh, yes," he replied. "I do hope it's good and won't take too long. I'm so horny that all I want to do is fuck. And our little sluts look like they are ready, too!" sue and stephanie were removed from their positions,led into the living room, and ordered to KNEEL beside the sofa, facing the wide open cunt of lynn. They obeyed immediately with the hopes that they could get some relief soon. They both noticed the young girl, but had no idea who she was. They also saw the other guys standing close by and already naked with their cocks fully hard. sue licked her lips wanting them and stephanie eyed them with wanton lust. Once everyone was prepared, Judy brought Ron in. His eyes went right to the spread open cunt of lynn and his cock grew hard in his pants. God how he wanted some pussy and here was one ready for him. Judy said to him, "Honey, I have always known how much you like young pussy and tonight, you are going to get one. And not only is this cunt young, it is still a virgin." "MMMMMMM, and it looks so inviting Judy, who is it?" he asked. The tanned, taut body, with belly chain, anklet, and an S dangling from her bellybutton ring, begged to be fucked. "You will find out soon enough, but I want to be sure she is ready for you. So susie slut is going to get her nice and wet for you while you get undressed," Judy said, then turned to sue and said, "Get between those legs, cunt, and lick. Make sure it is nice and wet, but you better not make her cum!" sue knew better than to disobey and had become a very obedient slut, so she got up from the floor and crawled between the young girl's legs and began to lick the cunt that would soon be fucked by Master Ron. she licked and sucked it like a pro, making the young girl squirm. lynn had heard everything, but during her training, she had learned not to speak unless she was told to. And besides, hooded and gagged as she was, speaking clearly was out of the question. she knew it was her older sister licking her hot cunt, but really didn't care! All she wanted was to have a big hard cock in her tight virgin hole. she pushed her pussy into her sister's face, trying to get more of the tongue that was teasing her so much. Everyone watched as sue ate out the young pussy and knew it wouldn't be long and they would watch as Ron deflowered her and then everyone else would get the chance to fuck it too. Ron was naked now, standing beside stephanie, watching his former sergeant lick the pussy he would soon be fucking. He was stroking his cock and getting so hard that he had to stop so he wouldn't cum too early. While sue was licking her sister Judy said, "steph, why don't you help Ron with that cock. Suck it for him!" steph had also learned that when given an order she must comply, so she turned just enough to take Ron's hard cock into her mouth and slowly sucked him. she knew she had better not make him cum and she didn't want too, either. she wanted to see this young girl getting fucked for the first time. They watched as sue licked her little sister's pussy and saw that she was doing a great job. lynn was squirming now and shoving her bald little pussy into sue's face, wanting more. Judy kept a very close eye on her little slut, making sure she didn't cum until Ron got his cock into her. She had made lynn wait to cum ever since she had taken control of her. She wanted this little whore to beg for cock and knew that she would be begging hard very soon. It got closer and closer to lynn cumming and Judy would stop sue very soon. Judy was getting hot from watching all the sex around her and removed her clothes as well. David and Derek had never seen Judy naked before and loved the sight before them. They both stepped over to her and helped her get naked, and had some good feels while doing it. They even got their fingers in her pussy and she didn't stop them either, since she was really enjoying it. But she kept a close eye on her little slut, making sure to stop sue before lynn got off. And she was getting really close now. Judy stopped the guys and said, "susie slut, stop, NOW!" sue tried to continue, wanting to get this young cunt off in her mouth. The girl tasted so good and kind of reminded sue of her own taste. It was so familiar tasting, she thought for a moment it was her own cunt she was licking. Judy reached over and grabbed a handful of sue's blond hair and pulled her back, twisting her hair viciously. "I said stop, slut!" sue cried out. she just wanted to get back to that sweet little pussy. But she knew better. sue got off the bed and automatically resumed her KNEELING position beside the bed. "OK, it's time to fuck the cunt. Ron, are you ready?" Judy asked. "You bet I am," he replied, "I have never had a tight little virgin before and it looks so damn good. But Judy, who is it?" "You will see who she is very soon. But I want to tease you just a little more. How's slut stephanie doing with your cock?" asked Judy. "MMMMM, she is one good cocksucker and if she keeps it up, I'm going to shoot into her mouth," he said in reply. Judy walked over to lynn, reached down and pinched her pointed nipple, and asked, "Are you ready, slut?" lynn nodded her head immediately and a muffled groan could be heard from behind the hood. "Then it is time for the deflowering. Ron, the virgin slut is all yours!" "Great!" said Ron, "But I want help getting my cock into this cunt. sue, please help me!" "Yes, Master," sue said, "Ill be glad to help." sue was thinking that if she pleased Ron that he would enjoy this little slut so much he would release her and keep this one instead. Little did she know that the slut she was going to help him fuck was her own sweet, little sister. Ron got into position and sue took his big cock in her little hands and guided it toward the virgin cunt laying before him. she stroked it for a short time and then put it up to the lips of the spread-eagled girl, forcing the head into the opening. Ron wanted to go slow, so he held back even though sue was trying to get his cock into her tight pussy. He said, "Now, susie slut, you know we can't just ram it into a virgin hole. We need to go slow, so make sure I don't pop the cherry right away. Let's take our time with this slut." "Yes, Sir." she whimpered as she held back on his cock. sue wanted it over with and then maybe if he liked this little cunt, she would get to move away and be with David, which she really wanted. He had shown her he was dominate and possessive but also very caring toward sue. Ron rocked back and forth with just the head of his cock in the tight cunt, enjoying the feel and tightness of her. But he wasn't going to hold out for much longer. Not after slut steph had been sucking him and now this cunt that was as tight as steph's mouth. He was going to ram it home very soon, but for now he just enjoyed the feeling and knew that once he fucked her, she would be begging for more. Then it happened! He said, "sue let go of my cock, now!" sue released his cock and he pulled out until just the very tip of his cock was at her entrance. Then he howled and drove his cock deep inside the virgin cunt. lynn gasped with the shock of her cherry being busted, but at the same time thrust her hips up to meet him. she wanted to be fucked so much and maybe she could finally cum. Ron began to fuck her with long deep hard strokes. lynn met his every thrust with her hips risng to meet him. Both were in pure ecstacy as they fucked in front of everyone. Ron rode the little whore hard and because of the tightness of her pussy and the control she had with her muscles, Ron took one last plunge, driving himself deep into the ex- virgin cunt and shot a huge load of cum deep inside her womb. "AAAAAAAAAAAAAAAAGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGGHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH, OOOOOOOOOOOHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHHH, YYYYYYYYYYYYYYYYEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEEESSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSS!!" he yelled as he came. At the same time, lynn finally got what she had waited for so long. "MMMMMMMMMMMMMMMMM,YYYYYYYYYYYYYYYYEEEEEEEEEEEEEEESSSSSSSSSSSSSSS,MMMMMMMMAAAAAA AASSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSSTTTTTTTTTEEEEEEEEEEERRRRRRRRRRRRRR,FFFFFFUUUUUUCCCCCCCKKKKKK MMMMMMEEEEEE!"she screamed as best she could through her hooded and open mouth. The two rested for a moment, catching their breath and panting very heavily. It was time to move on to other things. "OK," said Judy, "Nick and Aaron would you please reveal the identity of this hot little slut?" "Oh, yes," they replied, "Happy to." Nick put his hand under lynn's sweaty back and lifted her to a sitting position. A quiet moan could be heard from behind the hood. Aaron began to unbuckle the hood and slowly lifted it over lynn's head. sue and steph had their eyes glued to the naked girl, wanting to find out who they had tricked this time. Both of them had been blackmailed into being sluts and now it was someone new. Maybe they would get some of their freedom back if this little cunt was good enough and was willing to take over for them. David and Derek were also watching with anticipation. They both wanted to fuck her and have sue and steph watch them. They had turned into very demanding Masters, especially Derek. David was a little different than Derek because sue was not his. At least not yet. He was planning on trying to get her away from Ron and Judy so he could have her for himself. Now, with a new slut on the scene, this might happen. The rising hood revealed a collared, petite neck, then a mouth, open about an inch, as though anticipating a cock. The ears were pierced, with large hoops and a ruby red stud in the right earlobe. With a final tug, the hood was released. sue saw it was lynn immediately. It took lynn a second to focus on the group that surrounded her, until her eyes finally met sue's. "lynn!" exclaimed sue, unable to be silent, and breaking her KNEEL position. David was swift, slapping sue's ass and forcing her back into position. "Yes, slut sue, she was your sister. Now she is just another slut, owned body and soul," triumphantly declared Judy. Ron was speechless, standing to the side of the sofa, cock at attention. What a high! He had seen lynn months ago, had wanted her the very moment he had seen her sensual body. lynn gave a quiet moan through her opened mouth. It was a moan of pleasure, of delight, and of release. It was a moan that sue readily recognized, knew how her sister felt, knew that she wanted the same. "Aaron, you're next. This gorgeous piece of slave meat," she continued, nodding at lynn, "is a direct result of your training!" "I'ld be glad to Judy, but I don't want to fuck a cummy cunt!" Aaron replied. "No problem. sue, lick Master's cum from your slutty sister's cunt!" she ordered. sue hesitated in doing it since she was still in shock from knowing that she helped deflower her little sister. But she didn't hesitate for long. Judy slapped her hard across the face and said, "I told you to suck her cunt, NOW, do it cunt!" sue quickly got between her sisters legs and began to suck Ron's cum from her young pussy. God she hated this. she vowed that someday she would get revenge, especially revenge with Judy and she knew she would have help from steph and hopefully lynn and David. steph was still kneeling beside the bed and Judy said, "Well, slut, don't just sit there, clean Master's cock!" Ron laughed and stuck his cock into steph's mouth. she could taste the young pussy that he had just finished fucking. It did taste quite good, she thought to herself. Kind of like sue's cunt, but kind of different too. As she sucked his cock clean, she watched sue finish up on lynn and then Aaron took his turn with the young one he had trained. He had wanted to fuck this little girl for so long now and it was going to be so good having his hard cock into the young hole. Even if he wasn't the first in her, he was the second. steph continued sucking Ron, making him hard again, hoping that someone would fuck her soon. her cunt was so wet, the juice was running down her legs. she couldn't say anything because she had her mouth full of cock and she was taught never to speak without permission. Aaron was fucking lynn hard and fast now. she met his thrust with her cunt and begged for more. she was a natural whore and they all loved watching her fuck. Suddenly Ron pulled his cock out of steph's mouth and pulled her onto the bed next to lynn. He pushed her legs apart and drove his cock into her cunt. He was so hot from watching the new slut with Aaron, he needed some more pussy and steph was available. He had always liked her tight little cunt and he was going to get as much as he could before everyone left. sue was still kneeling beside the bed and David stepped over to her and pushed her upper body to the bed. Their eyes met, and sue silently begged him to fuck her. He pushed his cock into her pussy. David was in love with sue, but right now he just wanted to fuck the little asian slut. Aaron finished off with lynn and Judy saw that sue was getting fucked, but she could still lick all the cum from her sister's well-fucked cunt. she repositioned lynn right at sue's face and said "Suck it out, bitch!" sue had no option at this point. she was being fucked and now was licking and sucking her little sister's cunt again. When would this ever end, she wondered. David was pounding her hard now and she knew he would cum soon. Ron was fucking steph like he had never fucked anyone before. He was going to get his fill of pussy tonight. Nick had stepped over and had put his cock into her mouth so she was getting it from both ends sue sucked all the cum from her sister's pussy and Judy said, "Ok, Nick, your turn to fuck the new cunt. That is if you can get out of steph's hot mouth." Nick pulled out, climbed over sue, and pushed his cock into lynn's pussy, right in front of sue's face. she had a close up view of her sister being fucked. Ron had finished fucking steph and David finished fucking sue. But Judy hadn't been fucked yet. Aaron's cock was getting hard again and he walked over to Judy and forced her to bend over the chair next to the pulled out sofa. Once she was over, he plunged into her hot cunt. She groaned with pleasure and while he fucked her, he whispered, "You'll be mine someday Judy!" She looked over her shoulder at Aaron and gave a smile that said, "Yes." The night went on with all four women being fucked over and over and over. They also sucked cocks and ate each others' cunts. That is, all but Judy. she loved to have her cunt licked, but didn't like to lick any herself. But she got her share of cocks in her cunt and mouth, just as the other three were getting. Everyone was covered in cum and it seemed like the more they were used, the more they liked it. Derek was fucking lynn while she was sucking David and Ron were fucking her again. sue was licking her clit and David's cock as he fucked steph. It was one big orgy and no one could stop fucking.
Part 38 Ron agreed with Judy that they needed to take lynn back to the dorms that night; that at least for the near future, she needed to attend classes as expected. At least until they figured out a way to keep her permanently. So after Nick, Aaron, David, Derek and steph departed, soon after midnight, they prepared the two slut sisters. sue was manacled with leg and wrist cuffs, naked, and told to KNEEL near the front door. she was exhausted and just wanted to sleep. lynn was led by her leash to the den, and told to stand facing Ron and Judy. "Well, your week is up, slut," began Judy. "But we have become quite fond of you, and that's a problem. We know you are expected back in the dorm tonight, and that you have classes to attend three days a week. And that these classes finish by 1:00 each afternoon. So, basically, here is the plan." "First, your friends will notice a change. The haircut and earrings will grab their attention. But your clothes must fit your new status as our slave slut. We took the liberty to remove or alter the clothes in your closet at the dorm, and added a few others. "From now on, you will wear no underwear. Is that clear, slut?" "Yes, Mistress." "At no time will your bellybutton be covered. That means cut-off T's and short halters or camisoles only. You will find blouses, shorts and skirts that we approve in your closet and drawers. The high-heeled sandals are fine for the moment, until we find something more seductive. "you will address all boys, regardless of age, as Sir. If asked by anyone about the S on your navel ring, you will say that is stands for SLUT. If anyone asks to fuck you, you will say YES without hesitation. If a girl asks you to suck her, you will say YES without hesitation. your body is available to anyone for the asking. Is that clear?" lynn stared at Judy in disbelief. she had been promised her freedom one week ago, but this was not freedom. Yet, she didn't argue; her training had emphasized total obedience and if the truth be told, she had enjoyed every moment this evening, especially when Aaron and Nick had used her pussy and mouth. "Yes, Mistress." "Let's get her ready to return to the dorms," Ron chimed in. "I think the collar will stay, as will the anklet. Very sexy. But let's remove the belly chain for later use. I think it detracts from the piercing. Put on these shorts and T," as he handed lynn the clothes, unlocked her handcuffs, and removed her belly chain. "One more thing. you will meet me in front of your dorm at 1:30 sharp tomorrow. Don't be late," warned Judy. As lynn began to pull on her shorts, she realized immediately that these were the ones with the crotch cut out, but she didn't say a word. Unless she spread her legs, no one would know. But before she could finish pulling them all the way up, Ron spoke. "Whoa, almost forgot something. Can't allow your little pussy to be empty, can we? Drop your shorts down to your ankles, squat, and insert this dildo, and make sure you have it in at all times, day and night. If we ever catch you with your cunt empty, except when you are being fucked or sucked, you will be punished severely. Is that clear, slut?" "Yes, Master," and lynn proceeded to fill her pussy with the medium sized dildo, then rose and pulled up her shorts. she realized that with the hole in the crotch, the dildo had no external support. Unless she gripped tightly, it could easily slide out. The sisters had no chance to communicate. lynn followed obediently without restraints; sue's ankles were released and she was led by a leash out the door. lynn was instructed to get into the back seat first and to spread her legs and arms widely. sue was ordered to crawl into the small space on the floor in the backseat. "Suck her pussy, slut sue, while we drive to the dorm," ordered Judy. sue looked into her sister's shocked eyes, but knew there was no choice. she tenderly licked and nibbled at her sister's puffy pussy lips in the space that had been cut from the shorts. lynn arched her neck and tried to think of other things. When sue pushed her pierced tongue into lynn's cunt, it was too much and lynn began to pant and whimper. "That's enough, cunt. STOP," Ron ordered. "Put your head down on the floor of the car, slut sue." In a few minutes they pulled up in front of the dorms. They ordered lynn out and reminded her of the meeting at 1:30 tomorrow after classes. lynn walked towards the door, her ass swaying as she had been taught, and glanced over her shoulder as the car pulled away. The nightmare was continuing, and there was nothing she could think of to stop it. As lynn walked away, Ron ordered sue to take up the same position lynn had been holding in the back seat. she got up off the floor, Ron unlocked her wrist cuffs, and she sat on the seat with her legs and arms spread. They drove back to Ron's house, where sue knew she would suffer another night of humiliation and slavery. her spirit was broken by the appearance of her sister. Now all was lost. There were only a few people walking the halls when lynn walked to her dorm room. she tried to act normal. Several greeted her and she tried to be her usual self, but the clothes, haircut, walk, and jewelry immediately attracted attention. Things were not normal, but everyone seemed complimentary and no one asked about the S that dangled from her navel. As she approached her door, she realized that her Master and Mistress had not returned her purse with her keys and wallet. Fortunately, when she knocked on the door her roommate, Helen, was there and opened the door. lynn could only smile at the surprised expression on Helen's face. There was nothing she could say to explain the situation. "Wow! you must have had a great week," exclaimed Helen. "Yes, it was," lynn faked a giggle as she walked in the door. "Lost my purse, though, so i am really glad you were here. How was your week off?" "Boring, but forget mine. Let me look at you!" lynn turned and faced her roommate. "Like my new look?" she asked. "The only word that comes to my mind is 'HOT'. I can see the new earrrings, haircut, anklet, bellybutton ring and great tan. Is that a necklace or collar or what? Am I missing anything? Who is the guy?" lynn tried to act nonchalant as she responded, "No guy. Just thought i would surprise a few people." she ignored the question about her collar and whether Helen was "missing anything". she could hardly tell Helen about the dildo in her pussy, her lost virginity, her shaved pussy and the bands placed on her molars. "Well, you succeeded, that is for sure. you look great. Where did you go?" "Oh, my family and i went to Charleston, South Carolina. Great weather, a lot of action. But I am really tired. Guess I will take a shower and try to get some sleep," and she headed for her dresser to find something clean to wear. No way was she going to strip in front of Helen. When she opened the dresser drawers, she discovered that Judy had indeed removed most of her clothes and replaced them. she walked over to the closet and saw only a few dresses, all of them obscenely short. her tennis shoes, slippers, and sandals had all been removed. Several pairs of high-heeled and platform shoes lay on the floor of the closet. she returned to the dresser, trying to figure out what do wear. she couldn't take too long, or Helen would start asking more questions. And she had to find something to wear when she left the bathroom. Helen had seen her naked, but not with a shaved pussy and protruding dildo. Well, the dildo could be removed. Even if Judy knocked on the door, she could quickly insert it. she just had to keep it with her all the time. she usually wore an extra-large T-shirt to bed, but they had been removed. No panties, no bras, no socks remained. The top drawer had cut-off T's and short blouses, none of which would cover her midriff. The second drawer had camisoles and halter tops. The third had very short shorts and hotpants, and it was obvious from the way they were laid out that each had a hole in the crotch area. The bottom drawer made lynn's heart pound. There was an assortment of dildos, gags, cuffs, and chains. she quickly shut the drawer. What was she going to wear to bed? There was nothing that would no draw Helen's attention. she grabbed a pair of shorts and a halter top. They would have to do until she could think of something else. she walked into the bathroom and felt suddenly alone. For a week there had not been one minute she was not under someone's control. she took off her shirt, dropped her pants and squatted to remove the dildo. As she looked in the mirror, she paused and just stared. she reached up to finger the lock at the back of the collar. With her hands raised to work on the collar, her tanned breasts stood out. she nearly gasped and took a step back to see more. The bellybutton piercing could be seen at the bottom of the mirror. Then she moved closer and opened her mouth. she pulled her cheeks to the side to look at the bands on her molars. A deep and sad sigh escaped her lips. she turned on the water and enjoyed a relaxing shower. she decided to shave her pussy tonight, instead of in the morning. When she got out and had dried herself, she had a mental argument with herself. The dildo, anklet, and earrings could be removed. No one would know. But her training over the past week compelled her to follow orders. she even admitted to herself that her well-used pussy felt empty without the dildo. she put the dildo in her mouth to suck while she blow-dried her hair, enjoying the sensation of sucking the cock. Then she squatted and inserted the dildo, and pulled on the halter top and the tight-fitting shorts. she decided to just go barefoot. Standing back from the mirror she felt satisfied that she could once again face Helen and anyone else who might stop in. It was only a few minutes after midnight, and few went to sleep before 1 a.m. When she stepped from the bathroom, another student from down the hall was sitting on Helen's bed. She looked up at lynn and smiled. "Hi Katy," lynn said, as though nothing were different. "Hi lynn. Wow, you really are different" lynn tried to brush it off and smiled. "Just had fun over vacation." Katy got up off the bed and walked over to where lynn was tossing her soiled clothes into a hamper. "Is that a collar, or what?" she had not thought of a reason for the collar. "Yeah," she smiled weakly. "i kinda like the punk look." "Can i see your bellybutton piercing. I always wanted to do it, but my parents would kill me," and without waiting for lynn to respond, she reached down to finger the S. She looked quizzically into lynn's eyes. "S?" Now lynn was trapped. she knew her orders, but she could not obey them. she just couldn't. "Oh. Everyone puts their initial. i just thought i would put my astrological sign, Scorpio." There, she had done it, disobeyed a direct order from her Mistress. her heart pounded furiously and she tried to change the subject by asking Katy what she had done over the holidays. But Katy had turned to Helen and they were both smiling widely, as though they shared some secret. lynn decided not to pursue it. she just wanted to change the subject as quickly as possible. she turned and walked towards her desk, not really listening as Katy said something about her vacation. lynn turned when she heard her name. "Pardon?" "I said, how was the party last weekend?" asked Helen. "I heard from someone that you fainted or something and some hunk helped you outside." "Oh, that was nothing. Guess it was just so hot in that room that I got lightheaded." "Who was the guy?" "i think his name was Nick, or something like that. He drove me back to the dorm and then left." "Everyone says he was hot." Once again lynn felt as though this conversation was leading her into dangerous territory. her heart was pounding and she just wanted to cover herself and go to bed. "i was pretty out of it. Guess i don't really remember." "Uh, huh," and both Helen and Katy laughed aloud, enjoying the moment. "Would you braid my hair, lynn?" asked Katy, as she turned around on the bed. lynn would normally be happy to do this, and would normally just sit on the bed with her legs crossed, but if she did there was no way to hide the hole in her crotch and dildo in her pussy. she could not say No, however. "Sure." lynn made her way over to Helen's bed. "Slide back a little towards me," she asked Katy, who had moved to the far side of the bed to make room for lynn to sit on it, also. "Just sit up here with us, lynn, and tell us some more about your week." There was no choice. It would have seemed odd if she had turned down Katy's request, so she got up on the bed and knelt back on her heels, ankles crossed, trying to keep her legs closed. she sneaked a quick look to check her position and was satisfied. No one said anything about her kneeling, and she worked quickly braiding Katy's hair. But not before Helen had moved more closely to her roommate and touched her new earring. lynn had become so sensitive to the touch of others on her skin or jewelry, primarily thanks to Master Aaron's training over the past week, that Helen's gentle touch, plus the dildo embedded in her pussy caused a definite shiver to erupt in lynn's cunt. she only hoped she could hide the reaction from her friends. "Is that a real ruby?" asked Helen, in a seemingly innocent way. "Yes, i hope so," lynn responded, trying to keep calm. "That's so nice," complimented Helen. "Thanks." she finished the braids and backed off the bed, saying, "There. That should do it. Now, i better get some sleep. I have a 9 o'clock class tomorrow and didn't get much sleep all week." her friends seemed to accept that comment and lynn got into bed. "you are going to sleep in your shorts and top?" asked Helen, who knew that lynn always slept in a long T-shirt. "Yeah, i guess so. Everything else is dirty." "Wanna borrow one of mine?" offered her roommate. lynn was very tempted, but breaking one order was more than enough and she declined and rolled over, facing away from her friends and the light, and soon fell asleep. The alarm caused lynn to jump from her sound sleep. Helen did not have a class until 10, so only lynn got up and went to the bathroom. she removed the dildo, went to the toilet, reinserted the dildo, brushed her teeth, teased her hair, put on a little eye shadow, much less than Master Aaron would have expected, and walked back into the room to get something to wear. she decided on one of the dresses Judy had provided. The moment she pulled it over her head, she knew it would never work. The hem was right at the bottom of her ass cheeks, and that was without heels. she took it off and decided on a pair of crotchless shorts and cut-off T. she selected a pair of platform sandals and as quietly as possible, left for her first class of the spring quarter. she felt like a whore as she walked down the hallway. The dildo and platform shoes guaranteed that her ass would sway enticingly as she walked. As she made her way to the front door, she looked straight ahead, not wanting to attract attention from anyone in the rooms that had their door open. As she left the dorm, she pulled down a pair of sunglasses that she had propped on the top of her head before leaving her room. Even though she was very hungry, she decided to skip breakfast and head straight for class. If she could get there early, she could be seated before most of the students arrived. Several passed her on the way to class, and behind the shades, she could look at their expressions. It seemed to her that nearly everyone, even if they were talking to someone else, turned her way as they passed. she did her best not to draw attention, but dressed as she way, and walking as she did, there was no chance. The first class went ok. It was a lower division econ class, and only one person seemed to know her. He stopped by her desk on the way to a place in the back of the room and said, "Hi, lynn. I love your new look." lynn had been trying to avoid any eye contact, and had been reading through the campus paper. she looked up to see Jeremy, an average 5 on her scale of 1 to 10. "Hi," she smiled, intentionally not adding "Sir" to her greeting. she would normally have said more, but wanted nothing to do with anyone today. she knew she couldn't avoid people forever, but she needed time to think. He seemed to get the hint and just wandered to the back of the room. At 10:00, lynn had an Asian lit class. she was worried about this class, since it had a large enrollment of students from first year through fourth year. By the time she arrived, dozens of students were already seated. she had no choice but to walk down an aisle towards the front. she felt her face begin to get hot and wondered if her ass cheeks were also blushing. Many of the students knew her from parties and gatherings of the Asian clubs on campus. It seemed to her that all eyes were watching her, that even those already seated ahead of her turned to get a good look. Maybe it was just her imagination, and maybe it was not. Several spoke a word of greeting, all seemingly innocent, and she took a seat three from the front. "Nick says to tell you HI." her heart sunk at the greeting. lynn turned to look at the guy directly behind her, who had shocked her with the simple greeting. An 8 or 9 on her scale. she was already getting hot and it was still early in the morning. "Pardon," she asked innocently. "Nick. you know. Last weekend." lynn had no idea if this meant at the original party or the "private party" that had led to her enslavement. "Yes. Thanks for telling me," she smiled, on guard for what might come next. He leaned closer to her and whispered, "I could use a blowjob after class. you were fantastic at the party." lynn just stared, an entire week flashing before her eyes. she knew the orders her Mistress and Master had given her. she knew that this guy had seen her or used her last weekend. There was no choice. "Yesss, Ssssir, after class. OK," she spoke quietly and quickly. The hour class was torturous for her. she could not concentrate on the lecture. The minute hand of the clock on the wall had her full attention. As the time neared 10:50, her pussy began to juice and her heartbeat increased. she wiped a fine layer of sweat from her upper lip. When class was dismissed, she turned to him and he just smiled. He held out his hand, and she had no choice but to take it and follow him out the back door. "Sir," she whispered. "Please, let's be quick. i have one more class from 11:30 to 1." They walked outside, hand in hand, and he led her towards the science wing. In fact, that was where her last class of day was held, a lab class in bio. They walked up to the second floor and entered a darkened classroom, the only light coming indirectly from the windows. "Sir", she said, "what if someone comes in here?" "Don't worry", he replied, "there is no class here untli late this afternoon, so we will be alone." And he chuckled, knowing that others would soon arrive.
spreadem 39 After dropping lynn off at the dorm the night before, Ron and Judy had driven home with their slut, sue, spread in the backseat. When they got to Ron's house, sue was ordered out of the car, and was manacled as usual, like a convicted criminal. her ankles were separated by only a few inches of chain, as were her wrists. A chain connected her wrist chain to ankle chain, so that she could only raise her hands to the top of her head. "Go out back, slut, and get ready for bed," Ron ordered sue. she knew this meant to go to the toilet and then go inside and use the guest bathroom to brush her teeth. she gave no thought to escape. In fact, her mind was unable to focus on much of anything. her sister was trapped, as was she. There seemed no way out. Judy and Ron took a shower together and ordered sue to kneel at the foot of their bed while they made love once again. Ron thanked Judy for the wonderful surprise and they giggled and laughed together. "Up on the bed, slut. Clean your Mistress' pussy and my cock before you can go to sleep on the floor." sue did just that, enjoying the sweet tastes of her Mistress and Master. By the time she curled up on the floor, she could hear they had both fallen into a deep sleep. Judy got up first and poked sue with her foot to awaken her. She put her finger to her lips, signaling sue to be quiet and pointed to Ron's limp cock, and stuck out her tongue, directing sue to get up on the bed and awaken her Master. sue climbed quietly onto the bed, the only sound being made from the chain links that bound her. she tenderly licked her Master's cock with her pierced tongue, and as he roused, she took him completely in her mouth. He laughed lightly, pulling her head into his crotch, and eventually came in her mouth. "Clean off my dick, slut, and then kneel over by the chair." sue did as she was instructed. In the following minutes, she could hear Judy and Ron having breakfast, talking and occasionally laughing. her head was bowed in both resignation and weariness. she heard Judy leave for the station and soon Ron arrived back in the bedroom. "I'm going to leave for about 2 hours. When I am gone, take a shower, have some breakfast, clean the house and be ready to go about 10:30. I'll be back to pick you up. Understand?" "Yes, Master." sue did as instructed, and waited kneeling near the front door for her Master to arrive home. When he opened the door, he was pleased to see her, so beautiful, so sexy, so hot. "Ready to go, slut?" "Yes, Master." He reached down to unmanacle her wrists and ankles and ordered her to follow him into the guestroom. He threw out a tank top, hotpants, and heels and told her to dress. Several minutes later, they were on their way. As they pulled into the mall, sue knew that it would be another terrible experience ahead. Ron led her to the salon where Emily and Ariel worked. Judy had told him about their work, and there were some things he wanted. He had called them from the station, explaining who he was, what he wanted, and making the appointment. Emily guided Ron and sue into the back room, and led sue to the same chair her sister had sat in the previous week. On the way, Ron complimented Emily on their work with Judy's pet, and explained that his pet, sue, was her sister. "Really! Cool," cooed Emily. sue was strapped in the chair, and made no protest. "Ok, slut, just to let you know. I don't like all your adornments and changes, so we will undo a few. The girls will change your hair back to its usual stunning black, remove the badge on your nipple and lock on your ear and replace them. And I don't like that ring connecting your ass to your cunt. They may also do one or two other things, depending on their professional imagination. I expect a perfect report on your behavior. Understand?" "Yes, Master," she answered fearfully. "I'll be back after lunch," Ron said. He handed the keys to the ear lock and pussy rings to Ariel and walked away. Ariel and Emily took an inventory of what had been done to sue. They commented about her brand, tattoo, collar, and piercings. As they ran their fingers across her brand, sue began to moan and juice. "Another hot one, even hotter than her sister it looks like to me," commented Emily, and tugged on sue's pussy rings. "Feel good?" she giggled. sue wasn't sure if that demanded an answer or not, so she just kept quiet. Emily reached further into sue's pussy, scratching her clit, and said again, more sharply, "I asked you a question, slut. Feel good?" "Yes, Mistress, i mean No, Mistress," and sue started to whimper. Ariel and Emily laughed at their captive's plight, and went to work. Emily tilted sue's head over the sink and began to work on her hair. sue felt a tug on her nipple and a clipping sound, as Ariel removed the badge and tossed it in the trash can. She examined the other nipple ring, and deciding she could not match it perfectly, replaced both rings with new silver ones, each about 1 inch in diameter. She pinched sue's bellybutton, and thought about another piercing there. "That wasn't too difficult," Ariel said. "Ok, now I am going to uncuff your ankles. I want you to pull your knees up to your chin so I can do something about that ring near your ass." sue did as ordered, happy to have that ring removed, also. With a clip it was gone. "That will heal over nicely and you won't even know it was there. You can put your legs down." When sue did so, her ankles were again cuffed to the feet of the chair. "Looks great, Emily," Ariel complimented her friend, who was working on sue's hair. "Now, for this ear." Ariel tugged on the lock, unlatched it, and with a little effort removed it from sue's ear. "Hmm, that hole is quite a bit bigger than usual. I guess it will eventually heal over. What do you think, Emily? Maybe a pearl stud here? The white of the pearl and the black of an Asian's hair usually has a great look." "I guess, but what about the other side. Ring on one side, pearl stud on the other. I don't think much of that." "Right. Well, I think this hole needs to heal for some time, so I guess we will just have to make another to match. Oh, I know," and with that, Ariel walked over to the cupboard and returned with her piercing tools. "Well, slut, I hope you like my brainstorm," and with that Ariel proceeded to put one more hole in each of sue's ears. A pearl stud was placed in the lower hole and a silver ring in the one above it. Holding a mirror up to sue, Ariel asked, "Whatya think, slut?" sue could see her hair was now black, thankfully, and that the dreadful lock was gone. she now had two piercings in each ear, but it seemed to look attractive to her. So far, she was very pleased with the way things had gone this morning. "Thank you, Mistress." "Ok, now that we have fixed the things he wanted corrected, what else does she need?" The two stylists discussed various ideas, as sue listened to them decide her fate. "I think that since they are both sisters, they should match in some way. You know that chain collar that Judy ordered this morning, let's call in and make it two. There are a lot of things we can do with that." Ariel gripped sue's septum, testing it for a possible nose piercing. sue's heart leaped in fear, but she said nothing. "Stick out your tongue, and let me see what they did to you." sue obeyed and Ariel nodded her approval. "I don't know, Emily. We could add a bellybutton stud or ring, and the same with her nose, but I think she looks hot as hell right now. Let's call it quits and get our tip." "Ok," agreed Emily. They released sue from the chair, ordered her to bring them both off, and had her kneel in the corner for Ron's return. When Ron arrived, sue was kneeling in the corner of the salon's back room, knees spread wide, naked, hands locked behind her neck, chest out. she felt better than she had for a long time. Gone were the lock in her ear, the badge on her nipple, and the ring in between her ass and cunt. her hair was black once again, and she liked the pearl stud earrings. she actually smiled when Ron greeted her. He walked around his kneeling slut. "I like it, girls. Great job." Ariel and Emily beamed with delight. "We thought about a nose or bellybutton ring, but we think that the piercing can be overdone. I mean, we've all seen eyebrow rings and lip studs, but why bother. she is clearly marked as your slut, she has a great body, why mess with a good thing? And we took the liberty to order another collar, to match her sister's. It will be here this afternoon, so we can give it to Judy if you like." "OK. Great, well, we need to get going," and with that told sue to get dressed and paid for the treatment. sue proudly walked out to the front desk where Ron was finishing signing his credit card receipt. she felt hot and sexy, less of a freak than she had. High-priced call-girl, maybe. Pretty Woman. Little did sue know that at the same time, in a science lab on campus, her sister was faring far worse. ---------------- "you are one hot slut," he said. "Get on your knees and get my cock out, just like you did at the party," he ordered. lynn didn't remember much from the party, but she guessed that's what she did for him there. she got on her knees and unzipped his pants, reached inside to pull his hardening cock out. she wanted to get this over with quickly so she could get to her next class. she took his cock into her mouth and began to suck, just like she had been trained to do. But as she was sucking on his hard cock, she heard the door open. she immediately reacted and began to pull off his cock, but he held her firmly. she made pleading noises, but he just laughed. Then she heard the door open and close again and again. she wanted to look up, but he had hold of her head, face fucking her. she was doing a great job of getting him ready to cum. Was another class of students about to arrive? But no one turned on the lights, and there were oohhs and aahhs from the new arrivals. lynn felt his cock getting ready to squirt his cum down her throat and she was ready. Even though she hated doing this, she loved to suck cock. Aaron had made sure of that during her week with him. she sucked harder on his cock, closing her mouth tighter around his shaft, and then she felt it. He tensed up and shot his big cream load right down her throat. lynn swallowed all she could, but he had so much, it squirted from the corners of her mouth and ran down her chin. she continued to suck him until he pulled out. she actually wanted more. Then she heard him say, "Ok, guys she's all yours. I'll bet she fucks as good as she sucks and as soon as you all get done, I'm going to find out." lynn turned around quickly to see 5 other boys with their cocks out and rock hard. "Please, Sir, i have one more class in just a few minutes. Please!" she tried to tell them but one of them pulled her up and said, "Get those clothes off, bitch. We all want to fuck you! No big deal if you miss the first day." she started to plead again, but decided against it. If she didn't do it, they would rape her and just leave her alone. If Mistress Judy found out she refused to get fucked, she would pay for it later. And besides, her desire to be fucked and used was great. They all laughed and the biggest one said, "I'm first, cunt, now lay down on the front table and spread those legs. I'm going to fuck your brains out!" lynn followed the orders, just like she was trained to do. But she had forgotten the dildo in her cunt. When she spread her legs to take on the boys, it showed. The boy that brought her out here said, "What the fuck is that?" lynn was embarrassed now, but said, "It's my dildo, Sir!" Another boy asked why she had it in her and she proudly said, "Because my Master and Mistress say i have to have my cunt full all the time. i'll get it out so you can fuck me." lynn was so horny now she didn't care if the whole school fucked her. she wanted cock and wanted it now. she reached to her pussy and pulled the dildo out, leaving her cunt feeling empty and she knew it was wide open and dripping. "Please, fuck my cunt, Sir!" she screamed, "i need cock and need it now. Fuck me! All of you fuck me!" lynn didn't know why she was saying these things, but her mind didn't control her body anymore. her cunt was controlling all of her and she wanted to get fucked more and more. It seemed as though she craved cock and couldn't get enough of it. Within seconds, she forgot about her last class of the day, and just wanted to please the guys. The boys all took turns fucking lynn's hot cunt and mouth. she was lost in sexual splendor. Suddenly she was empty. The boys had cum, left one by one, leaving her alone and naked on the table. her clothes were strewn about and her dildo was sitting on the ledge with the dry erase markers. lynn looked at the clock and almost screamed. It was after 1:00 and she had to meet Mistress Judy at 1:30. she jumped up and without thinking pushed the dildo back inside her. It made a squishing sound as it went in, pushing out the cum the boys had put into her. she had nothing to wipe with, so just pulled on her shorts and t-shirt. she didn't have much time and had to get across campus quickly. she stopped for just a moment in the restroom. she had to get the cum off her face and hair and arms. she did her best to look presentable. she ran out of the building and half-jogged, half-speed walked along the sidewalks back to the dorm. she knew if she was late she would be punished. It was hard to run with the heels on and the dildo in her pussy, but she did her best. At 1:25, lynn walked quickly around the corner of the dorm. she was shocked. Standing next to Mistress Judy's car was Helen! And they were talking! Helen saw lynn first and a big smile came to her face. When Judy turned, she also smiled, in her sadistic way. lynn nearly stopped in her tracks, barely able to keep her knees from buckling. There was no way for lynn to avoid what was sure to follow. "Hi, lynn," Helen cheerfully called. "Hi, Helen," lynn smiled, as best she could. she looked at Judy and knew there was no choice. "Hi, Mistress Judy." "Hi, lynn." lynn was surprised. her Mistress could have called her "slut" or "pet", but instead used her name. lynn was so thankful! "I knew there was more to your week than you let on," Helen continued, not seeming to take any notice of lynn's reference to "Mistress Judy." "I knew there was more to your looks than just a family trip. Modeling. So cool!" lynn just smiled, not sure what they had discussed, not sure what was going to happen. "I came over early and knocked on your door. Helen was there and we had a few minutes to talk. I asked her what she thought of your new looks, and I told her about the modeling contract we have. Sorry, if I let the cat out of the bag," Judy kept up the pretense. "It's ok, Mistress." "Why do you call her Mistress?" Helen asked lynn. lynn looked at Judy to intercede, but Judy just stared with her paste-on smile. Finally, lynn had no choice but to answer. "Mistress Judy asked me to address her in this way." Not much of an answer, yet Helen responded with an unsure, "Oh." "Anyhow, Helen, what do you like most about the new lynn?" Judy asked. "Everything, really! The do, earrings, new clothes. Oh, I guess the bellybutton piercing. I always wanted to do it, but never had the nerve. I don't really understand why the S for Scorpio, but what the heck." lynn knew from that moment that she was in trouble. Judy's glare was frightening. "Scorpio," Judy repeated, as though echoing Helen's words, staring straight into lynn's shocked face. "Well, we better get going, lynn. she'll be home late tonight, Helen. No class tomorrow, right, lynn?" "No, Mistress," lynn responded, her heart beating fiercely. Helen waved goodbye, and without a word, Judy headed for the driver's door. lynn meekly entered the passenger door, spread her legs widely and put her hands behind her neck. The dildo was clearly visible in the hole in her shorts. she expected a verbal attack, but none came. They drove for several minutes in silence. Finally Judy spoke. "you understand the orders you were given, right, slut?" "Yesss, Mistress. i'm sssorry, Mistress. i did everything else you said. i called every boy 'Sir', i obeyed when they ordered me to suck and be fucked after my second class. In fact, i missed my lab class, because 6 of the guys who saw me that night wanted to fuck me. i just couldn't tell Helen and Katy the truth about the S. i just couldn't. i'm ssso sssorry, Mistress. i'm so sorry," she repeated in sobs. "I'm very disappointed, pet. I know Master Aaron and Ron would be equally disappointed. We have invested a lot in you and done our best to protect your parents from what you did at that party. And this is how you repay us. We give you some freedom and you disobey our orders," Judy just shook her head, as though amazed. And they drove on in silence. lynn soon realized they were headed to the mall where she had had her "beauty treatment" with Ariel and Emily. her heart began to beat rapidly once again. Judy pulled into a parking space and ordered lynn to walk ahead of her, "and walk the way you know I like it." lynn walked like the perfect whore, just like Master Aaron had instructed. she wanted nothing more than to please her Mistress and hoped that if she did, her disobedience would be forgotten or forgiven. They walked into the beauty salon, and Emily greeted them with a wave from behind the counter. She was on the phone, but quickly hung up. "Hi," she said to Judy and smiled pleasantly at lynn. "Thanks for working us in, Emily. I told you last week I would bring her back for you to make some improvements. Did the item arrive from the engraver?" "Yeah, sure did, just a little while ago. Looks great." "We had a little problem awhile ago. Seems like my pet told her roommate that the S on her bellybutton stood for Scorpio, when I had clearly told her to tell anyone that asked that it stood for 'slut'. Anything you can do to improve her memory would be greatly appreciated. I'll be back for her about 4, ok?" "Perfect. Leave it to us," and with that, Emily took lynn's hand and guided her to the back room. Judy handed her a key and with a final glaring look at lynn, turned and walked away.
spreadem40 Ariel had heard the conversation through the open door, and was waiting at the chair as Emily led lynn into the room. "Hi again. Hope you enjoy what we have planned for you. Take off your clothes, and have a seat, just like last time," Ariel ordered. lynn said nothing and did as she was told. Soon they had cuffed her wrists and ankles to the chair. her eyes were wide with apprehension and fear. What now, she thought. What now? The first thing Ariel did was unceremoniously pull the dildo from lynn's cum-filled cunt. "Open up," she commanded and pushed the dildo deep into lynn's mouth, effectively gagging her. Emily opened the lock that had been used to fasten lynn's black collar. The collar was removed and Emily said, "Yuk, this is ugly," and dumped it in the trash can. Then she ran her fingers through lynn's hair, finding many tangles. She put her nose into lynn's hair and smelled deeply. "Cum. It smells like cum." She brought her face around and stared into lynn's face. "Is it?" lynn nodded. "Well, I understand. Let's give it a wash, and a snip here and there," and with that went to work on lynn's hair. Ariel had been over by the side, preparing a tray. When she returned, lynn could see the piercing tools and rings. she began to whimper and breathe in gasps. But she said nothing. she knew there was nothing she could do to stop what was coming. "So, you told someone the S stands for Scorpio. Very imaginative, but very stupid, slut," Ariel scolded lynn. "We can't have you disobeying your Mistress, can we, cunt?" lynn shook her head in uncertain agreement.and stared with wide eyes as Ariel bent over and began to suck lynn's right nipple. It immediately responded, as did lynn, whose body tensed and breathing rate increased. In moments, both nipples were standing at attention. Ariel swabbed each with alcohol and quickly pierced both nipples, inserting a half-inch diameter ring in each. lynn sucked mightily on the dildo, never biting into the plastic, never allowing her teeth to touch the cock, and her body heaved with tears and frustration. "Not so bad, was it, slut?" asked Ariel, as she reached to remove the dildo. "No, Mistress," as lynn continued to sob. "Now, now. you look great. All sluts need to be ringed in many places. The rings accent your best assets and besides, guys love the look. And girls, too," Emily giggled. Emily had brought the new collar over to the chair. "Lean your head forward a little, so I can attach your new collar." lynn obeyed, as her sobbing decreased. she looked at collar that Emily held before her. It actually looked like a silver necklace, with large links. her pupils dilated when she saw that a one-inch ring, with a large silver S, hung from the middle of the collar. Emily latched the collar around the back of lynn's neck. It was not snug, but hung slightly like a fashionable piece of jewelry. Ariel held up a mirror for lynn to look at it. "Cool, huh? Better than that old black leather dog collar. The silver looks great against your skin." lynn nodded her agreement as Emily used the lock to permanently latch the collar on lynn's neck. The click of the lock echoed in lynn's ears. "Now, we still have the problem of your disobedience," voiced Ariel, as she walked over to the counter and returned with two, small linked silver chains, each about 6 inches long, with more sturdy clasps at each end. She reached down and latched one end of the first chain to the ring with the S, and the other to lynn's right nipple ring. The chain was taut, pulling slightly on lynn's tit, and pressing the ringed S against her lower neck. She did the same with the other chain. Using a pliars, she pressed all the latches tightly together. Emily began to uncuff lynn's wrists and ankles, and told her to stand up. She handed her a red halter top and told her to put it on. As soon as lynn stretched her arms to put on the halter, the tension on her nipples made her gasp. The S pressed against her skin, and she knew it would be the first thing anyone would notice. And the direction of the silver chains left nothing to the imagination. There was only one place they could be attached, and that was her tits. lynn whimpered in embarrassment and anguish. "Knock it off. If you lie again, I will suggest that we tattoo SLUT right below your navel, so there are no doubts," spoke Ariel harshly. "Now, get back in the chair. We aren't done, yet." lynn could not believe they had more planned. What else could they do to humiliate her? When they had cuffed her into the chair, Emily ordered her to "Open your mouth and stick out your tongue." lynn just stared. No, she silently screamed, not my tongue, please no. "Open it, slut. NOW." lynn knew there was no choice, so she opened her mouth and stuck out her tongue. Emily grasped the end with a padded tong and pulled it the full length that it would go. Ariel unceremoniously took her piercing gun, loaded it with a silver stud, and without another word, pierced lynn's tongue in the center, about an inch from the front. "If it makes you feel any better, your sister has two studs in her tongue, but we think one is enough for you. you will love it. you can use the stud when you suck and lick. you will be amazed what you can do with it. Now thank us, slut." Emily had released the tongs and lynn had slowly withdrawn her tongue into her mouth. It hurt terribly, but she managed to say, with a slight speech defect, "Thank you, Mistresses." "Thank you for what, slut?" "Thank you for piercing my tongue and nipples and for the new collar and..." she could not finish the sentence. The humiliation of having to thank Ariel and Emily for inflicting pain and embarrassment on her body was too much. she lowered her head and began to sob. lynn sat up straight and stopped immediately when Ariel slapped her face harshly. "Knock it off. you know it could be a lot worse, and it will be if you don't obey. You are going to obey, right, slut?" "Yes, Mistress," lynn sniffled. "Yes, Mistress, what?" "Yes, Mistress, your slut will obey, she will tell everyone that asks that she is a slut. she will suck every girl that asks and be fucked by every boy. she will obey all orders, Mistress." Ariel and Emily smiled their approval. They released lynn from the chair, and ordered her to bring them both off for the second time that day. lynn's pierced tongue flickered into their cunts, the stud having its desired effect. Judy returned 30 minutes later and found her slut kneeling naked, legs spread, hands locked behind her neck, and jaw locked in the open position. The sight of lynn made her heart race and her pussy drip. Emily had escorted Judy to the back room, and smiled as Judy made her way towards lynn. She lifted lynn's chin with her middle finger, saying, "Were you a good cunt?" "Yes, istress. your shlut was a good cunt," she spoke with her lips unable to form some of the consonants. Judy fingered the new collar and praised Ariel and Emily. She ran her finger down the right chain to lynn's nipple, and gave a slight tug on the ring. lynn inhaled deeply. Judy did the same with the left nipple ring. "We told her that the next time she lies about the S, it will be tattooed, or even branded on her belly for all to see," said Ariel. Judy nodded. "Stick out your tongue." lynn obeyed and Judy felt the stud. "Girls, I hope you understand, but I can't wait." Ariel responded, "We understand. Go ahead, as long as you want, we have things to do and other clients in the other room." They left Judy and lynn alone. Judy immediately stepped out of her shoes and dropped her skirt. She wore no panties, and her neatly trimmed pussy was only inches from lynn, who knew exactly what she had to do. she moved her head forward and nibbled Judy's lips, and teased her Mistress' cunt with her pierced tongue. Judy grabbed lynn's head and forced it deeply into her crotch. lynn knew what to do, and drove her tongue into Judy's cunt, flicking and searching and moving rapidly. In moments, Judy came and lynn tasted the sweet juices of her Mistress. "Oh," Judy exclaimed simply. "Oh, my." lynn knew that she had pleased her Mistress. The dripping cum on her chin and cheeks were clear evidence of her success. Judy stepped back and breathed deeply, composing herself. With a deep sigh, she bent over to get her skirt, speaking as she dressed. "You will still be punished for your Scorpio lie, but that was a wonderful treat just now, slut. Maybe your punishment will be light, this time." She reached down and unhooked lynn's teeth, so she could close her mouth. "Thank you, Mistress." "Get dressed. Time to start earning your keep. Be sure to put the dildo back in and toss the cut-off T and put this on." She tossed lynn a skimpy halter top, so that her collar and chains were clearly visible. lynn dressed quickly and followed Judy out of the back room. Judy thanked Ariel and Emily once again, told them they would be back again in the near future, and told lynn to walk ahead of her, towards the exit and the car, and loud enough for everyone to hear, "walk like the slut you are." lynn cringed in humiliation, but made sure her hips and posture were perfect. Everyone she passed got a good look at lynn's new jewelry. As they exited the mall, a valet that catered to the wealthy mall patrons, looked up from the book he was reading. He could not help blinking in wonder. Judy noticed his reaction and said, "Wait here, slut. I will get the car and pick you up. Stand straight and lock your hands behind your neck." lynn had no choice but to stand right next to the valet's podium, hands locked, chest forward, nipples erect. "slut?" he asked, unable to think of anything but the sight before him and the word that perfectly described her. "Yes, Sir," lynn responded, shuddering in embarrassment. He walked around the podium to get a better look. It didn't take great intelligence to realize he was standing before a sexpot, and the chains that extended from her collar to her nipples could only be attached in one way. He eyes never blinked, as his gaze wandered up and down, missing nothing. He paused at her navel ring and even longer at her collar. "What does the S stand for?" There was no choice. None at all. "slut, Sir," she declared. "slut," he echoed, to no one in particular. "Are you her slut?" he asked, nodding in the direction Judy had headed. "Yes, Sir." Oh, please Mistress, hurry. "Those chains that run across your chest...," he continued, but not sure how to finish the sentence. lynn was gaining some confidence, realizing the valet was almost as uncomfortable as she was. "Yes, Sir?" she asked, staring straight into his wide eyes. "I mean, well, are they clipped on or something?" "Yes, Sir. They are attached to my nipple rings. i would show you, but i cannot release my hands unless my Mistress changes her orders." Judy drove up at just that moment, and called out the open passenger window. "Let's go, slut." As lynn walked towards the car, Judy stepped out and looked over the car's top. "Was my slut polite, young man?" "Polite? Uh, sure, yeah." "Did she tell you what the S on her collar and navel stands for?" "Uh, yes. slut." "Good. Bye," and with that Judy ducked back into the car, rehooked her seatbelt, noticed that lynn was in the correct position, and drove out of the mall parking lot. "That wasn't so hard, was it, pet?" "No, Mistress." Judy smiled, knowing that another barrier had been breached. "you are an expensive slut. Did you know that?" "Yes, Mistress." "I mean, beauty treatments, personal trainer, new clothes. It all costs money and on my salary, you are becoming a burden." "Sorry, Mistress." "So, let's see if we can't earn some of that back." "Yes, Mistress." They drove in silence for a few minutes, when Judy ordered, "We are getting close. Play with yourself, but don't cum." "Yes, Mistress," and lynn began to fondle her pussy lips and finger her cunt. she closed her eyes and enjoyed the moment, and the tingling sensation. "We're here." Judy's words jolted lynn from her trance. she looked at the house; it looked familiar, very familiar, but she could not place it. Judy had given a brief beep-beep, and the front door opened. And out stepped Nick onto the porch. And then she knew. Despite her drugged state, she knew that this was the house were he had brought her the night of the party, when her drink had been drugged, when they had videotaped her actions and when her life as a free woman, as a student, as a toe-the-line daughter had ended. Nick waved and Judy said to lynn, "Time to go to work." her heart sank. Nick approached the car, shook hands with Judy and turned to lynn. "Phew. you look good enough to eat," and both Nick and Judy laughed lightly at the silly play on words. lynn just smiled with a grimace, not knowing what to say. "I'll leave her with you. Have her back at the dorm by 1, and remember, make sure she is not permanently scarred in any way. Just give my percentage to the slut, and I will get it from her tomorrow. Here's a bag of cosmetics." Turning to lynn, she said, "Have fun, pet. Make me proud. I will pick you up tomorrow at noon." "Yesss, Mistress," lynn stuttered slightly, her fear growing. Nick took her hand and they walked towards the house. On the front porch, he turned to look at her. "Take off the shorts and top. You can keep on the heels. Let's see what changes have occurred." lynn did as ordered, without hesitation. Nick took her clothes, and his eyes were wide. "S?" "It stands for 'slut', Sir." "Oh, excellent," he laughed lightly. "Excellent." He reached and began to fondle the nipple rings, then tugged lightly on the chain, causing lynn to inhale sharply. "I don't really care for these chains. Any changes to your cunt? Ringed there, also?" "No, Sir." "Oh, I just noticed. Stick out your tongue, slut." When lynn obeyed, he smiled with a leer. "Let's see. Give me a passionate kiss," and he opened his mouth and swallowed her tongue. she moved it quickly around, caressing his teeth and tongue with the stud. He pulled her tightly to him, one hand around her waist, the other entering her pussy. she immediately began to juice, to react to his passion. she felt herself nearing ecstasy, to a point of no return. she let herself writhe with him, to match his rhythm, and just when she was about to take flight, he pulled free, with a smile on his face. "Almost got carried away. There will be plenty of time for that later." lynn stared back in disbelief, feeling robbed and cheated. "Please, Sir," she begged. "Later," was all he said. "Let's go get ready for the party." she followed him into the house. They made there was to the kitchen, and he opened a drawer. "Gotta be a pair pliars here, somewhere. Ah, here they are. Let's get those chains off. Makes it harder to suck your tit and I don't like the way they lift the rings and distort your breasts." He used a pliars and screwdriver to open the four links, freeing her nipple rings to fall lightly against her breast. "Feel better?" "Yes, Sir. Thank you, Sir." He smiled pleasantly, stared a few moments as though lost in thought, and then lightly sighed and put away the tools. "So, the frat guys thought you were something else last time. They thought of a welcome back to school party, and a fund raiser at the same time. you are the guest of honor. Won't cost you a thing," he laughed, "except for a few hours of your time. If things go as planned, we won't need to raise dues next year, Judy will get a few bucks, you will get a few fucks, and everyone will be happy. "And then one of the guys told his girl, and she thought it was a great idea, also. Anyhow, we are expecting quite a crowd, and you shouldn't be bored," he smiled, while checking his watch. "You mean both girls and guys, Sir? Tonight. To use me?" "Yep, you got the idea. Just be friendly and open to new ideas." Again, that same smile, which seemed kind, but was not. "It's about 6. I expect a few early arrivals in about 30 minutes, so why don't you go use the toilet, over there, down the hall, do what you need to do, and here is your bag of cosmetics. I suspect you know the look we want. Be back here in 15 minutes." "Yes, Sir," she said, taking the bag and walking away towards the restroom, knowing that if girls would also be here, the whole school would soon know about her. she used the toilet, applied the make-up as Master Aaron had taught her, gave a deep sigh, and headed back to the kitchen. Nick met her there, nodded approvingly, and led her to the den. The furniture, what little there was, had been pushed along the walls. she looked to the ceiling and so two eye bolts, about 4 feet apart, and another pair screwed into the floor. He picked up some pieces of white rope and four cuffs from the couch, and guided her to the center of the room. "Cuff your ankles." He watched as she obeyed. He took her wrists and cuffed them and then tied one end of each rope to each cuff. In moments, she was tied spread-eagled in the center of the room, naked except for her slutty jewelry and high heels. "Don't worry, you won't have to be like this all night. Just want to give the guests a chance to get an unobstructed view of what they are paying for." Again, the "kind" smile. lynn's eyes were wide, the adrenaline rush of fear beginning to build. she heard the doorbell ring, and moments later Nick guided two guys and two girls into the room. And..."lynn!" lynn raised her eyes and wanted to die on the spot. It was Katy, from her dorm.
Chapter 41 It was Nick's idea. When he saw lynn the night of her deflowering, he was knocked over by her sexuality. He complimented Aaron on his work. she secreted sex. He had to have her. And he said so to Aaron. "Dream on, buddy boy. she's a little young for me, but I would give anything to train and own Judy." "Lotsa luck, Aaron. Looks like we both have dreams that we can't bring to life." "Oh, I don't know." Nick and Aaron turned to find David. "Oh, I don't know. I couldn't help overhearing your conversation. I've been thinking for several days how I might acquire sue. The only person standing in the way of all our dreams is the Captain. If we could get him out of the picture, anything is possible." "And how do we, as you say, 'get him out of the picture'?" asked Aaron. "I'm not willing to go to jail for life for any slut." "So, let's put our minds together," suggested David. "We have to find some way to blackmail him. And since he controls the police force, and probably has something on every officer and most public officials, it has to be something that involves someone clearly innocent, something that even he cannot talk his way out of." Nick nodded to himself. He knew that his dad, the Mayor, would be no help. The Captain knew of his dad's weakness for pussy. In fact, his dad had told him that Ron had set up sue to entertain his cock during Tuesday's council meeting. The three guys tossed around a few other ideas, and eventually agreed to keep in touch, that something might come up. They traded email addresses and spoke no more of their desires for the rest of the deflowering party. Nick couldn't keep his eyes off of lynn, David was drawn like a magnet to sue's delicious body, and Aaron kept imagining Judy with her back striped with his whip marks. It was the next day that Nick got the inspiration, and he shared it with Aaron and David via email. They agreed and David had the perfect location, a house on the edge of town, vacant for over a month, and at an asking price of $1 million, nary a nibble. It was still furnished; the owners had only a few days to pack up when the opportunity to move to England for double his current salary could not be resisted. Aaron sent out the invitations for Friday night. It made perfect sense. And they all came. Literally a Who's Who of the bondage scene from the entire corner of the state. Aaron was well known for his parties. Masters and Mistresses, and the most delicious collection of sluts imaginable. Many had been trained by Aaron, and it showed. But many other less capable trainers were also invited. It was important that many witnesses were present. Ron and Judy arrived with sue and lynn. All eyes turned to stare and comment, so impressive were the slut sisters. lynn saw Aaron within minutes. her lips were already parted, since Judy had locked her jaw in the open position. she stuck her pierced tongue to the edge of her lips in a manner meant to raise Aaron's blood pressure. As she stood there, waiting for Judy to move forward, her pussy juices began to trickle down her thighs. sue walked in with an equally erotic stride and posture. her eyes scanned the crowd, looking for familiar faces. she saw David standing off to the side. He smiled and made a kissing motion with his lips. her heart leaped and her clit began to swell. she shyly cocked her head and noticed stephanie and Derek out of the corner of her eye. Derek was sitting in one of the overstuffed chairs, talking to another master next to him. steph was kneeling between the two masters, back straight, wrists behind her back, pulled painfully up and chained to the back of her collar. her breath-taking tits were clearly on display, the nipple rings glowing in the subdued light. steph was clearly the most beautiful slut at the party Both sisters were naked, except for 6-inch heels. their hips swayed from side to side as they took short, precise steps. they were led by a leash, attached to very similar silver collars. their make-up was exotic, with purplish eye shadow, dripping red lipstick, matching red fingernail and toenail polish. Nick arrived with his slut and attracted little attention. she was gagged and looked scared to death. He had tied blue and yellow scarves around her ankles and wrists, blue and yellow being the college colors. she looked like a cheerleader and walked like a cheerleader. she was clearly new to the bondage scene; no piercings, no swing to her ass as she walked; in fact, she wobbled unattractively on her high heels. her ass was a bright red, evidence of a recent paddling. The party progressed, the sluts being felt up and down, examined like animals. Compliments were exchanged, and even a few trades were made. All sluts were available for anyone's use. No request was turned down. The highlight of the night was a raffle, ostensibly to pay for the evening's expenses. There were three virgin sluts in attendance, and their respective Masters, all arranged ahead of time by Aaron, agreed that three raffle winners would pop the three cherries. The three virgins were tied to large X-frames, Nick's slut on the far right. All three were gagged. No one wanted to hear their pleadings. The first virgin was given to the first raffle winner, a man not from the area. He took his time and played with her clit and pussy lips until she sobbed with need. A video was made of each slut, as they lost their virginity, and presented to the raffle winner, to do with as he wished. The second slut also lost her virginity to the cheers of the crowd. Aaron reached inside the leather pouch and pulled out the third winner. "Master Ron," he announced loudly, and Captain Ron stood to the round of applause. It was a set up, but only Aaron, David, and Nick knew. Ron had a hard-on from the moment he arrived at the party. His eye did not miss a slut. He had already ranked the sluts from one to ten, and looked forward to sampling as many as possible before his cock wore out. He had already sampled 4 of the top 10. And a girl new to this life was especially exciting to him and the third virgin, the college cheerleader, was clearly new. she moaned and tried to plead through her gag, and all this did was excite Ron even more. He dropped his pants, raised his hands like a champion boxer as the crowd cheered him on, and without further ado, took her virginity. she screamed into her gag, and eventually passed out from the combination of fear, pain, and shock. The crowd gathered around the three raffle winners, slapping them on the back, as the ex-virgins slumped in their bonds. No one noticed that the video of Ron's winning effort was removed from the camera and handed to David, who walked immediately from the room. By midnight, every slut had been used many times. sue and lynn were particularly popular. Every opening was sore. They had had numerous orgasms, and were completely exhausted. they were relieved when Ron and Judy rehooked their leashes and led them from the room. Ron would have stayed later, but he had to be on duty in 6 hours; Judy had to be in the office by 8. And it was still a 45-minute drive home. The package arrived on Tuesday, addressed to Captain Ron. He opened it, thinking it was another manual of some sort. It was a video. And a note, typed. "Hope you enjoyed the raffle. she was only 16. 11th grade. University High just happens to have the same colors as the college. Tough luck." Ron was first shocked, then angry. What was going on here? He popped the video in the TV, and relived the moment when he took the virginity from slut number three. He searched the wrapping paper for more information, and there was none. He immediately called in Judy and shared what had happened. She suggested he call Aaron and the mayor's son, and see what was going on. He got Aaron's answering machine, and left a message to call him back. He called the mayor, and asked for his son's cell phone number. "Is there a problem, Captain?" "No, I just wanted to ask him about one of his friends." Ron called the cell phone number and Nick answered. "Who was that slut you brought to the party Friday night?" "she said her name was evelyn. I met her at a party Thursday night, and asked if she wanted a little excitement on Friday night. she lives with her mom, who runs around and makes a fool of herself most nights." "Does she go to Southwest State?" "No idea. Never really asked. I cuffed her in the back of the van, removed the cheerleader outfit she was wearing, by my request, and...now that you mention it, her skirt and bikini top had UHS on them. I just didn't notice." "You mean I fucked a minor! You ass, you idiot!! I'll have your..." "Please, Captain, I think you should talk to my father about this," and he hung up on the Captain. Ron immediately recalled the Mayor, but before he could say a word, the Mayor spoke. "A package was delivered to my office this morning, and I just had a chance to view its contents. There was also a note. Captain, you have a problem." Over the next half-hour, Ron's emotions went from anger to surprise to concern and back again to anger. The Mayor had as much on him as he had on the Mayor. But the video, if presented to the news station, as was threatened in the note to the Mayor, was even more damning. He could see the headlines now: POLICE CAPTAIN ARRESTED FOR HAVING SEX WITH A MINOR. "Well, what do we do, Captain?" "I don't know. What does the blackmailer want? We have no idea." And so they hung up, agreeing to wait until the demand or demands were made. The demand was attached to the Captain's windshield wiper when he left later in the day. He read the demands, put two and two together, and knew that his life and his reputation were worth far more than theirs. As long as he was sure that the video would be destroyed, he would agree. He called a number, and simply said, "I accept your terms. they will be there between 7 and 7:30 tonight." --- Judy drove in the driveway soon after 6:30. It had been a long day, but knowing that two sluts and Ron awaited her made the drudgery of the day bearable. she stepped out of the car, in the near darkness of the garage, when a hand snaked around her throat, a powerful grip, and another placed a rag soaked in some awful smell over her mouth and nose. she knew the right moves, and kicked viciously backward, but connected with nothing. she tried to yell, "Ron", but no sound came out. she felt light-headed, getting weaker by the moment. she tried to pivot, use every move she had been taught, but nothing worked. her attacker anticipated her every move. And then everything went black. Ron had already hogtied, blindfolded, and gagged lynn and sue, and placed them in the back of the van. After stripping judy, he did the same to her. It was time to go. The drop off location was several miles out of town, in a rest area along the interstate. He pulled into the dimly-lit parking area, opened the van doors, and one by one carried lynn and sue and laid them each on a picnic table behind the toilet facilities. He returned to the van for judy, and when he arrived at the picnic area, an envelope had been left on the one available table. He put the still unconscious judy on the table, picked up the envelope and turned to walk towards the van. He paused, tempted to say something into the dark, but couldn't think of a catchy comeback, so he continued back to the van. The envelope gave him directions, where he would find the original tape, and a promise that as long as he didn't seek revenge, that would be the end of it. Ron knew he could find a new slut or two or three without much trouble, so he did indeed plan to drop this sordid affair. judy had no family, so he could easily explain to the other officers that she had taken a job elsewhere. There was no reason to explain sue's disappearance; she had been on unpaid leave for several weeks and was all but forgotten. And as for lynn, well, that was someone else's problem. No one could connect him to lynn. Yes, he thought. Things worked out just fine. The End
Review This Story || Email Author: Charles Frank